Work: A Story Of Experience.

Transcription

Work: A Story Of Experience.
Work: A Story Of Experience.
By Louisa M. Alcott
To My Mother, Whose Life Has Been A Long Labor Of Love, -This Book Is Gratefully Inscribed By Her Daughter.
Contents
I. Christie
Ii. Servant
Iii. Actress
Iv. Governess
V. Companion
Vi. Seamstress
Vii. Through The Mist
Viii. A Cure For Despair
Ix. Mrs. Wilkins's Minister
X. Beginning Again
Xi. In The Strawberry Bed
Xii. Christie's Gala
Xi.L Waking Up
Xiv. Which?
Xv. Midsummer
Xvi. Mustered In
Xvii. The Colonel
Xviii. Sunrise
Xix.' Little Heart's-Ease
Xx. At Forty
Work:
A Story Of Experience
Chapter I
Christie.
" AUNT BETSEY, there's going to be a new
Declaration of Independence."
"Bless and save us, what do you mean, child?" And the
startled old lady precipitated a pie into the oven with
destructive haste.
"I mean that, being of age, I'm going to take care of
myself, and not be a burden any longer. Uncle wishes
me out of the way; thinks I ought to go, and, sooner or
later, will tell me so. I don't intend to wait for that, but,
like the people in fairy tales, travel away into the world
and seek my fortune. I know I can find it."
Christie emphasized her speech by energetic
demonstrations in the bread-trough, kneading the dough
as if it was her destiny, and she was shaping it to suit
herself; while Aunt Betsey stood listening, with uplifted
pie-fork, and as much astonishment as her placid face
was capable of expressing. As the girl paused, with a
decided thump, the old lady exclaimed:
" What crazy idee you got into your head now?"
"A very sane and sensible one that's got to be worked
out, so please listen to it, ma'am. I've had it a good
while, I've thought it over thoroughly, and I' sure it's the
right thing for me to do. I'm old enough to take care of
myself; and if I'd been a boy, I should have been told to
do it long ago. I hate to be dependent; and now there's
no need of it, I can't bear it any longer. If you were
poor, I wouldn't leave you; for I never forget how kind
you have been to me. But Uncle doesn't love or
understand me; I am a burden to him, and I must go
where I can take care of myself. I can't be happy till I
do, for there's nothing here for me. I'm sick of this dull
town, where the one idea is eat, drink, and get rich; I
don't find any friends to help me as I want to be helped,
or any work that I can do well; so let me go, Aunty, and
find my place, wherever it is."
"But I do need you, deary; and you mustn't think Uncle
don't like you. He does, only he don't show it; and when
your odd ways fret him, he ain't pleasant, I know. I
don't see why you can't be contented; I've lived here all
my days, and never found the place lonesome, or the
folks unneighborly." And Aunt Betsey looked
perplexed by the new idea.
"You and I are very different, ma'am. There was more
yeast put into my composition, I guess; and, after
standing quiet in a warm corner so long, I begin to
ferment, and ought to be kneaded up in time, so that I
may turn out a wholesome loaf. You can't do this; so let
me go where it can be done, else I shall turn sour and
good for nothing. Does that make the matter any
clearer?" And Christie's serious face relaxed into a
smile as her aunt's eye went from her to the nicely
moulded loaf offered as an illustration.
"I see what you mean, Kitty; but I never thought on't
before. You be better riz than me; though, let me tell
you, too much emptins makes bread poor stuff, like
baker's trash; and too much workin' up makes it hard
and dry. Now fly'round, for the big oven is most het,
and this cake takes a sight of time in the mixin'."
"You haven't said I might go, Aunty," began the girl,
after a long pause devoted by the old lady to the
preparation of some compound which seemed to
require great nicety of measurement in its ingredients;
for when she replied, Aunt Betsey curiously interlarded
her speech with audible directions to herself fiom the
receipt-book before her.
" I ain't no right to keep you, dear, ef you choose to take
(a pinch of salt). I'm sorry you ain't happy, and think
you might be ef you'd only (beat six eggs, yolks and
whites together). But ef you can't, and feel that you
need (two cups of sugar), only speak to Uncle, and ef
he says (a squeeze of fresh lemon), go, my dear, and
take my blessin' with you (not forgettin' to cover with a
piece of paper)."
Christie's laugh echoed through the kitchen; and the old
lady smiled benignly, quite unconscious of the cause of
the girl's merriment. "I shall ask Uncle to-night, and I
know he won't object. Then I shall write to see if Mrs.
Flint has a room for me, where I can stay till I get
something to room for me, where I can stay till I get
something to do. There is plenty of work in the world,
and I'm not afraid of it; so you'll soon hear good news
of me. Don't look sad, for you know I never could
forget you, even if I should become the greatest lady in
the land." And Christie left the prints of two floury but
affectionate hands on the old lady's shoulders, as she
kissed the wrinkled face that had never, worn a frown
to her. Full of hopeful fancies, Christie salted the pans
and buttered the dough in pleasant forgetfulness of all
mundane affairs, and the ludicrous dismay of Aunt
Betsey, who followed her about rectifying her mistakes,
and watching over her as if this sudden absence of mind
had roused suspicions of her sanity.
"Uncle, I want to go away, and get my own living, if
you please," was Christie's abrupt beginning, as they sat
round the evening fire. "Hey! what's that?" said Uncle.
Enos, rousing from the doze he was enjoying, with a
candle in perilous proximity to his newspaper and his
nose. Christie repeated her request, and was much
relieved, when, after a meditative stare, the old man
briefly answered: "Wal, go ahead." "I was afraid you
might think it rash or silly, sir." "I think it's the best
thing you could do; and I like your good sense in
pupposin' on't." "Then I may really go?" "Soon's ever
you like. Don't pester me about it till you're ready; then
I'll give you a little suthing to start off with." And Uncle
Enos returned to " The Farmer's Friend," as if cattle
were more interesting than kindred. Christie was
accustomed to his curt speech and careless manner; had
expected nothing more cordial; and, turning to her aunt,
said, rather bitterly: "Didn't I tell you he'd be glad to
have me go? No matter! When I've done something to
be proud of, he will be as glad to see me back again."
Then her voice changed, her eyes kindled, and the firm
lips softened with a smile. "Yes, I'll try my experiment;
then I'll get rich; found a home for girls like myself; or,
better still, be a Mrs. Fry, a Florence Nightingale, or" -"How are you on't for stockin's, dear?" Christie's castles
in the air vanished at the prosaic question; but, after a
blank look, she answered pleasantly: c Thank you for
bringing me down to my feet again, when I was soaring
away too far and too fast. I'm poorly off, ma'am; but if
you are knitting these for me, I shall certainly start on a
firm foundation." And, leaning on Aunt Betsey's knee,
she patiently discussed the wardrobe question from
hose to head-gear. "Don't you think you could be
contented any way, Christie, ef I make the work lighter,
and leave you more time for your books and things? "
asked the old lady, loth to lose the one youthful element
in her quiet life. ( No, ma'am, for I can't find what I
want here," was the decided answer. "What do you
want, child? " " Look in the fire, and I'll tiy to show
you." The old lady obediently turned her spectacles that
way; and Christie said in a tone half serious, half
playful: "Do you see those two logs? Well that one
smouldering dismally away in the corner is what my
life is now; the other blazing and singing is what I want
my life to be." "Bless me, what an idee! They are both
a-burnin' where they are put, and both will be ashes tomorrow; so what difference doos it make? Christie
smiled at the literal old lady; but, following the fancy
that pleased her, she added earnestly:
" I know the end is the same; but it does make a
difference how they turn to ashes, and how I spend my
life. That log, with its one dull spot of fire, gives neither
light nor warmth, but lies sizzling despondently among
the cinders. But the other glows from end to end with
cheerful little flames that go singing up the chimney
with a pleasant sound. Its light fills the room and shines
out into the dark; its warmth draws us nearer, making
the hearth the cosiest place in the house, and we shall
all miss the friendly blaze when it dies. Yes," she
added, as if to herself, "I hope my life may be like that,
so that, whether it be long or short, it will be useful and
cheerful while it lasts, will be missed when it ends, and
leave something behind besides ashes." Though she
only half understood them, the girl's words touched the
kind old lady, and made her look anxiously at the eager
young face gazing so wistfully into the fire. "A good
smart blowin' up with the belluses would make the
green stick burn most as well as the dry one after a
spell. I guess contentedness is the best bellus for young
folks, ef they would only think so." "I dare say you are
right, Aunty; but I want to try for myself; and if I fail,
I'll come back and follow your advice. Young folks
always have discontented fits, you know. Didn't you
when you were a girl?" "Shouldn't wonder ef I did; but
Enos came along, and I forgot'em." "My Enos has not
come along yet, and never may; so I'm not going to sit
and wait for any man to give me independence, if I can
earn it for myself." And a' quick glance at the gruff,
gray old man in the corner plainly betrayed that, in
Christie's opinion, Aunt Betsey made a bad bargain
when she exchanged her girlish aspirations for a man
whose soul was in his pocket. "Jest like her mother, full
of hi-falutin notions, discontented, and sot in her own
idees. Poor capital to start a fortin' on." Christie's eye
met that of her uncle peering over the top of his paper
with an expression that always tried her patience. Now
it was like a dash of cold water on her enthusiasm, and
her face fell as she asked quickly:
"How do you mean, sir?" "I mean that you are startin'
all wrong; your redic'lus notions about independence
and self-culture won't come to nothin' in the long run,
and you'll make as bad a failure of your life as your
mother did of her'n." "Please, don't say that to me; I
can't bear it, for I shall never think her life a failure,
because she tried to help herself, and married a good
man in spite of poverty, when she loved him! You call
that folly; but I'll do the same if I can; and I'd rather
have what my father and mother left me, than all the
money you are piling up, just for the pleasure of being
richer than your neighbors." " Never mind, dear, he
don't mean no harm!" whispered Aunt Betsey, fearing a
storm.
But though Christies eyes had kindled and her color
deepened, her voice was low and steady, and her
indignation was of the inward sort. "Uncle likes to try
me by saying such things, and this is one reason why I
want to go away before I get sharp and bitter and
distrustful as he is. I don't suppose I can make you
understand my feeling, but I'd like to try, and then I'll
never speak of it again;" and, carefully controlling
voice and face, Christie slowly added, with a look that
would have been pathetically eloquent to one who
could have understood the instincts of a strong nature
for light and freedom:
"You say I am discontented, proud and ambitious; that's
true, and I'm glad of it. I am discontented, because I
can't help feeling that there is a better sort of life than
this dull one made up of everlasting work, with no
object but money. I can't starve my soul for the sake of
my body, and I mean to get out of the treadmill if I can.
I'm proud, as you call it, because I hate dependence
where there isn't any love to make it bearable. You
don't say so in words, but I know you begrudge me a
home, though you will call me ungrateful when I'm
gone. I'm willing to work, but I want work that I can
put my heart into, and feel that it does me good, no
matter how hard it is. I only ask for a chance to be a
useful, happy woman, and I don't think that is a bad
ambition. Even if I only do what my dear mother did,
earn my living honestly and happily, and leave a
beautiful example behind me, to help one other woman
as hers helps me, I shall be satisfied." Christie's voice
faltered over the last words, for the thoughts and
feelings which had been working within her during the
last few days had stirred her deeply, and the resolution
to cut loose from the old life had not been lightly made.
Mr. Devon had listened behind his paper to this unusual
outpouring with a sense of discomfort which was new
to him. But though the words reproached and annoyed,
they did not soften him, and when Christie paused with
tearful eyes, her uncle rose, saying, slowly, as he
lighted his candle:
"Ef I'd refused to let you go before, I'd agree to it now;
for you need breakin' in, my girl, and you are goin'
where you'll get it, so the sooner you're off the better
for all on us. Come, Betsey, we may as wal leave, for
we can't understand the wants of her higher nater, as
Christie calls it, and we've had lecterin' enough for one
night." And with a grim laugh the old man quitted the
field, worsted but in good order. "There, there, dear,
hev a good cry, and forgit all about it!" purred Aunt
Betsey, as the heavy footsteps creaked away, for the
good soul had a most old-fashioned and dutiful awe of
her lord and master. "I shan't cry but act; for it is high
time I was off. I've stayed for your sake; now I'm more
trouble than comfort, and away I go. Good-night, my
dear old Aunty, and don't look troubled, for I'll be a
lamb while I stay having kissed the old lady, Christie
swept her work away, and sat down to write the letter
which was the first step toward freedom. When it was
done, she drew nearer to her friendly confidante the
fire, mid till late into the night sat thinking tenderly of
the past, bravely of the present, hopefully of the future.
Twenty-one to-morrow, and her inheritance a head, a
heart, a pair of hands; also the dower of most New
England girls, intelligence, courage, and common
sense, many practical gifts, and, hidden under the
reserve that soon melts in a genial atmosphere, much
romance and enthusiasm, and the spirit which can rise
to heroism when the great moment comes. Christie was
one of that large class of women who, moderately
endowed with talents, earnest and truehearted, are
driven by necessity, temperament, or principle out into
the world to find support, happiness, and homes for
themselves. Many turn back discouraged; more accept
shadow for substance, and discover their mistake too
late; the weakest lose their purpose and themselves; but
the strongest struggle on, and, after danger and defeat,
earn at last the best success this world can give us, the
possession of a brave and cheerful spirit, rich inl selfknowledge, self-control, self-help. This was the real
desire of Christie's heart; this was to be her lesson and
reward, and to this happy end she was slowly yet surely
brought by -the long discipline of life and labor. Sitting
alone there in the night, she tried to strengthen herself
with all the good and helpful memories she could recall,
before she went away to find her place in the great
unknown world. She thought of her mother, so like
herself, who had borne the commonplace life of home
till she could bear it no longer. Then had gone away to
teach, as most country girls are forced to dq. Had met,
loved, and married a poor gentleman, and, after a few
years of genuine happiness, untroubled even by much
care and poverty, had followed him out of the world,
leaving her little child to the protection of her brother.
Christie looked back over the long, lonely years she had
spent in the old farm-house, plodding to school and
church, and doing her tasks with kind Aunt Betsey
while a child; and slowly growing into girlhood, with a
world of romance locked up in a heart hungry for love
and a larger, nobler life. She had tried to appease this
hunger in many ways, but found little help. Her father's
old books were all she could command, and these she
wore out with much reading. Inheriting his refined
tastes, she found nothing to attract her in the society of
the commonplace and often coarse people about her.
She tried to like the buxom girls whose one ambition
was to " get married," and whose only subjects of
conversation were "smart bonnets" and "nice dresses."
She tried to believe that the admiration and regard of
the bluff young farmers was worth striving for; but
when one well-to-do neighbor laid his acres at her feet,
she found it impossible to accept for her life's
companion a man whose soul was wrapped up in prize
cattle and big turnips. Uncle Enos never could forgive
her for this piece of folly, and Christie plainly saw that
one of three things would surely happen, if she lived on
there with no vent for her full heart and busy mind. She
would either marry Joe Butterfield in sheer desperation,
and become a farmer's household drudge; settle down
into a sour spinster, content to make butter, gossip, and
lay up money all her days; or do what poor Matty Stone
had done, try to crush and curb her needs and
aspirations till the struggle grew too hard, and then in a
fit of despair end her life, and leave a tragic story to
haunt their quiet river.
To escape these fates but one way appeared; to break
loose from this narrow life, go out into the world and
see what she could do for herself. This idea was full of
enchantment to the eager girl, and, after much earnest
thought, she had resolved to try it. " If I fail, I can come
back," she said to herself, even while she scorned the
thought of failure, for with all her shy pride she was
both brave and ardent, and her dreams were of the
rosiest sort. " I won't marry Joe; I won't wear myself out
in a district-school for the mean sum they give a
woman; I won't delve away here where I'm not wanted;
and I won't end my life like a coward, because it is dull
and hard. -I'll try my fate as mother did, and perhaps I
may succeed as well." And Christie's thoughts went
wandering away into the dim, sweet past when she, a
happy child, lived with loving parents in a different
world from that. Lost in these tender memories, she sat
till the old moon-faced clock behind the door struck
twelve, then the visions vanished, leaving their benison
behind them. As she glanced backward at the
smouldering fire, a slender spire of flame shot up from
the log that had blazed so cheerily, and shone upon her
as she went. A good omen, gratefully accepted then,
and remembered often in the years to come.
Chapter II
Servant.
FORTNIGHT later, and Christie was off. Mrs. Flint
had briefly answered that she had a room, and that work
was always to be found in the city. So the girl packed
her one trunk, folding away splendid hopes among her
plain gowns, and filling every corner with happy
fancies, utterly impossible plans, and tender little
dreams, so lovely at the time, so pathetic to remember,
when contact with the hard realities of life has
collapsed our bright bubbles, and the frost of
disappointment nipped all our morning glories in their
prime. The old red stage stopped at Enos Devon's door,
and his niece crossed the threshold after a cool
handshake with the master of the house, and a close
embrace with the mistress, who stood pouring out last
words with spectacles too dim for seeing. Fat Ben
swung up the trunk, slammed the door, mounted his
perch, and the ancient vehicle swayed with premonitory
symptoms of departure. Then something smote
Christie's heart. "Stop!" she cried, and springing out ran
back into the dismal room where the old man sat.
Straight up to him she went with outstretched hand,
saying steadily, though her face was full of feeling:
"Uncle, I'm not satisfied with that good-bye. I don't
mean to be sentimental, but I do want to say,' Forgive
me!' I see now that I might have made you sorry to part
with me, if I had tried to make you love me more. It's
too late now, but I'm not too proud to confess when I'm
wrong. I want to part kindly; I ask your pardon; I thank
you for all you've done for me, and I say good-bye
affectionately now." Mr. Devon had a heart somewhere,
though it seldom troubled him; but it did make itself felt
when the girl looked at him with his dead sister's eyes,
and spoke in a tone whose unaccustomed tenderness
was a reproach. Conscience had pricked him more than
once that week, and he was glad to own it now; his
rough sense of honor was touched by her frank
expression, and, as he answered, his hand was offered
readily. "I like that, Kitty, and think the better of you
for't. Let bygones be bygones. I gen'lly got as good as I
give, and I guess I deserved some on't. I wish you wal,
my girl, I heartily wish you wal, and hope you won't
forgit that the old house ain't never shet aginst you."
Christie astonished him with a cordial kiss; then
bestowing another warm hug on Aunt Niobe, as she
called the old lady in a tearful joke, she ran into the
carriage, taking with her all the sunshine of the place.
Christie found Mrs. Flint a dreary woman, with
"boarders" written all over her sour face and faded
figure. Butcher's bills and house rent seemed to fill her
eyes with sleepless anxiety; thriftless cooks and saucy
housemaids to sharpen the tones of her shrill voice; and
an incapable husband to burden her shoulders like a
modern " Old man of the sea." A little room far up in
the tall house was at the girl's disposal for a reasonable
sum, and she took possession, feeling very rich with the
hundred dollars Uncle Enos gave her, and delightfully
independent, with no milk-pans to scald; no heavy lover
to elude; no humdrum district school to imprison her
day after day. For a week she enjoyed her liberty
heartily, then set about finding something to do. Her
wish was to be a governess, that being the usual refuge
for respectable girls who have a living to get. But
Christie soon found her want of accomplishments a
barrier to success in that line, for the mammas thought
less of the solid than of the ornamental branches, and
wished their little darlings to learn French before
English, music before grammar, and drawing before
writing. So, after several disappointments, Christie
decided that her education was too old-fashioned for the
city, and gave up the idea of teaching. Sewing she
resolved not to try till every thing else failed; and, after
a few more attempts to get writing to do, she said to
herself, in a fit of humility and good sense:
" I'll begin at the beginning, and work my way up. I'll
put my pride in my pocket, and go out to service.
Housework I like, and can do well, thanks to Aunt
Betsey. I never thought it degradation to do it for her,
so why should I mind doing it for others if they pay for
it? It isn't what I want, but it's better than idleness, so
I'll try it!" Full of this wise resolution, she took to
haunting that purgatory of the poor, an intelligence
office. Mrs. Flint gave her a recommendation, and she
hopefully took her place among the ranks of buxom
German, incapable Irish, and " smart" American
women; for in those days foreign help had not driven
farmers' daughters out of the field, and made domestic
comfort a lost art. At first Christie enjoyed the novelty
of the thing, and watched with interest the anxious
housewives who flocked in demanding that rara avis, an
angel at nine shillings a week; and not finding it,
bewailed the degeneracy of the times. Being too honest
to profess herself absolutely perfect in every known
branch of house-work, it was some time before she
suited herself. Meanwhile, she was questioned and
lectured, half engaged and kept waiting, dismissed for a
whim, and so worried that she began to regard herself
as the incarnation of all human vanities and
shortcomings. "A desirable place in a small, genteel
family," was at last offered her, and she posted away to
secure it, having reached a state of desperation and
resolved to go as a first-class cook rather than sit with
her hands before her any longer. A well-appointed
house, good wages, and light duties seemed things to be
grateful for, and Christie decided that going out to
service was not the hardest fate in life, as she stood at
the door of a handsome house in a sunny-square
waiting to be inspected. Mrs. Stuart, having just
returned from Italy, affected the artistic, and the new
applicant found her with a Roman scarf about her head,
a rosary like a string of small cannon balls at her side,
and azure draperies which became her as well as they
did the sea-green furniture of her marine boudoir,
where unwary walkers tripped over coral and shells,
grew sea-sick looking at pictures of tempestuous
billows engulfing every sort of craft, from a man-of-
war to a hencoop with a ghostly young lady clinging to
it with one hand, and had their appetites effectually
taken away by a choice collection of water-bugs and
snakes in a glass globe, that looked like a jar of mixed
pickles in a state of agitation.'
Madame was intent on a water-color copy of Turner's "
Rain, Wind, and Hail," that pleasing work which was
sold upsidedown and no one found it out. Motioning
Christie to a seat she finished some delicate sloppy
process before speaking. In that little pause Christie
examined her, and the impression then received was
afterward confirmed. Mrs. Stuart possessed some
beauty and chose to think herself a queen of society.
She assumed majestic manners in public and could not
entirely divest herself of them in private, which often
produced comic effects. Zenobia troubled about fishsauce, or Aspasia indignant at the price of eggs will
give some idea of this lady when she condescended to
the cares of housekeeping. Presently she looked up and
inspected the girl as if a new servant were no more than
a new bonnet, a necessary article to be ordered home
for
examination.
Christie
presented
her
recommendation, made her modest little speech, and
awaited her doom. Mrs. Stuart read, listened, and then
demanded with queenly brevity:
" Your name?" "Christie Devon." "Too long; I should
prefer to call you Jane as I am accustomed to the
name." "As you please, ma'am." " Your age?" "Twentyone." "You are an American?" "Yes, ma'am." Mrs.
Stuart gazed into space a moment, then delivered the
following address with impressive solemnity.
" I wish a capable, intelligent, honest, neat, wellconducted person who knows her place and keeps it.
The work is light, as there are but two in the family. I
am very particular and so is Mr. Stuart. I pay two
dollars and a half, allow one afternoon out, one service
on Sunday, and no followers. My table-girl must
understand her duties thoroughly, be extremely neat,
and always wear white aprons." "I think I can suit you,
ma'am, when I have learned the ways of the house,"
meekly replied Christie. Mrs. Stuart looked graciously
satisfied and returned the paper with a gesture that
Victoria might have used in restoring a granted petition,
though her next words rather marred the effect of the
regal act, "My cook is black." "I have no objection to
color, ma'am." An expression of relief dawned upon
Mrs. Stuart's countenance, for the black cook had been
an insurmountable obstacle to all the Irish ladies who
had applied. Thoughtfully tapping her Roman nose with
the handle of her brush Madame took another survey of
the new applicant, and seeing that she looked neat,
intelligent, and respectful, gave a sigh of thankfulness
and engaged her on the spot. Much elated Christie
rushed home, selected a bag of necessary articles,
bundled the rest of her possessions into an empty closet
(lent her rent-free owing to a profusion of cockroaches),
paid up her board, and at two o'clock introduced herself
to Hepsey Johnson, her fellow servant. Hepsey was a
tall, gaunt woman, bearing the tragedy of her race
written in her face, with its melancholy eyes, subdued
expression, and the pathetic patience of a wronged
dumb animal. She received Christie with an air of
resignation, and speedily bewildered her with an
account of the duties she would be expected to perform.
A long and careful drill enabled Christie to set the table
with but few mistakes, and to retain a tolerably clear
recollection of the order of performances. She had just
assumed her badge of servitude, as she called the white
apron, when the bell rang violently and Hepsey, who
was hurrying away to " dish up," said:
"It's de marster. You has to answer de bell, honey, and
he likes it done bery spry." Christie ran and admitted an
impetuous, stout gentle. man, who appeared to be
incensed against the elements, for he burst in as if
blown, shook himself like a Newfoundland dog, and
said all in one breath:
"You're the new girl, are you? Well, take my umbrella
and pull off my rubbers." " Sir?" Mr. Stuart was
struggling with his gloves, and, quite unconscious of
the astonishment of his new maid, impatiently repeated
his request. "Take this wet thing away, and pull off my
over. shoes. Don't you see it's raining like the very
deuce!" Christie folded her lips together in a peculiar
manner as she knelt down and removed a pair of muddy
overshoes, took the dripping umbrella, and was walking
away with her agreeable burden when Mr. Stuart gave
her another shock by calling over the banister:
" I'm going out again; so clean those rubbers, and see
that the boots I sent down this morning are in order."
"Yes, sir," answered Christie meekly, and immediately
afterward startled Hepsey by casting overshoes and
umbrella upon the kitchen floor, and indignantly
demanding:
"Am I expected to be a boot-jack to that man? "
"I'spects you is, honey." " Am I also expected to clean
his boots?" " Yes, chile. Katy did, and de work ain't
hard when you gits used to it." " It isn't the work; it's
the degradation; and I won't submit to it." Christie
looked fiercely determined; but Hepsey shook her head,
saying quietly as she went on garnishing a dish:
"Dere's more'gradin' works dan dat, chile, and dem dat's
bin'bliged to do umn finds dis sort bery easy. You's paid
for it, honey; and if you does it willin, it won't hurt you
more dan washin' de marster's dishes, or sweepin' his
rooms." "There ought to be a boy to do this sort of
thing. Do you think it's right to ask it of me? " cried
Christie, feeling that being servant was not as pleasant a
task as she had thought it. "Dunno, chile. I'se shore I'd
never ask it of aly woman if I was a man,'less I was sick
or ole. But folks don't seem to'member dat we've got
feelin's, and de best way is not to mind dese ere little
trubbles. You jes leave de boots to me; blackin' can't do
dese ole hands no hurt, and dis ain't no deggydation to
me now; I's a free woman."
"Why, Hepsey, were you ever a slave? " asked the girl,
forgetting her own small injury at this suggestion of the
greatest of all wrongs. "All my life, till I run away five
year ago. My ole folks, and eight brudders and sisters,
is down dere in de pit now, waitin' for the Lord to set
'em free. And He's gwine to do it soon, soon!" As she
uttered the last words, a sudden light chased the tragic
shadow from Hepsey's face, and the solemn fervor of
her voice thrilled Christie's heart. All her anger died out
in a great pity, and she put her hand on the woman's
shoulder, saying earnestly:
"I hope so; and I wish I could help to bring that happy
day at once! " For the first time Hepsey smiled, as she
said gratefully, " De Lord bress you for dat wish, chile."
Then, dropping suddenly into her old, quiet way, she
added, turning to her work: "Now you tote up de
dinner, and I'll be handy by to 'fresh your mind 'bout
how de dishes goes, for missis is bery'ticular, and don't
like no 'stakes in tendin'." Thanks to her own neathanded ways and IHepsey's prompting through the
slide, Christie got on very well; managed her salver
dexterously, only upset one glass, clashed one dishcover, and forgot to sugar the pie before putting it on
the table; an omission which was majestically pointed
out, and graciously pardoned as a first offence. By
seven o'clock the ceremonial was fairly over, and
Christie dropped into a chair quite tired out with
frequent pacings to and fro. In the kitchen she found the
table spread for one, and Hepsey busy with the boots.
" Aren't you coming to your dinner, Mrs. Johnson?" she
asked, not pleased at the arrangement. "When you's
done, honey; dere's no hurry 'bout me. Katy liked dat
way best, and I'se used ter waitin'." "But I don't like that
way, and I won't have it. I suppose Katy thought her
white skin gave her a right to be disrespectful to a
woman old enough to be her mother just because she
was black. I don't; and while I'm here, there must be no
difference made. If we can work together, we can eat
together; and because you have been a slave is all the
more reason I should be good to you now." iTiIepsey
had been surprised by the new girl's protest against
being made a boot-jack of, she was still more surprised
at this sudden kindness, for she had set Christie down in
her own mind as " one ob dem toppin' smart ones dat
don't stay long nowheres." She changed her opinion
now, and sat watching the girl with a new expression on
her face, as Christie took boot and brush from her, and
fell to work energetically, saying as she scrubbed:
"I'm ashamed of complaining about such a little thing as
this, and don't mean to feel degraded by it, though I
should by letting you do it for me. I never lived out
before:
"that's the reason I made a fuss. There's a polish, for
you, and I'm in a good humor again; so Mr.. Stuart may
call for his boots whenever he likes, and we'll go to
dinner like fashionable people, as we are." There was
something so irresistible in the girl's hearty manner, that
Hepsey submitted at once with a visible satisfaction,
which gave a relish to Christie's dinner, though it was
eaten at a kitchen table, with a barearmed cook sitting
opposite, and three rows of burnished dish-covers
reflecting the dreadful spectacle. After this, Christie got
on excellently, for she did her best, and found both
pleasure and profit in her new employment. It gave her
real satisfaction to keep the handsome rooms in order,
to polish plate, and spread bountiful meals. There was
an atmosphere of ease and comfort about her which
contrasted agreeably with the shabbiness of Mrs. Flint's
boarding-house, and the bare simplicity of the old
home. Like most young people, Christie loved luxury,
and was sensible enough to see and value the comforts
of hersituation, and to wonder why more girls placed as
she was did not choose a life like this rather than the
confinements of a sewing-room, or the fatigue and
publicity of a shop. She did not learn to love her
mistress, because Mrs. Stuart evidently considered
herself as one belonging to a superior race of beings,
and had no desire to establish any of the friendly
relations that may become so helpful and pleasant to
both mistress and maid. She made a royal progress
through her dominions every morning, issued orders,
found fault liberally, bestowed praise sparingly, and
took no more personal interest in her servants than if
they were clocks, to be wound up once a day, and sent
away the moment they got out of repair. Mr. Stuart was
absent from morning till night, and all Christie ever
knew about him was that he was a kind-hearted, hottempered, and very conceited man; fond of his wife,
proud of the society they managed to draw about them,
and bent on making his way in the world at any cost.
If masters and mistresses knew how skilfully they are
studied, criticised, and imitated by their servants, they
would take more heed to their ways, and set better
examples, perhaps. Mrs. Stuart never dreamed that her
quiet, respectful Jane kept a sharp eye on all her
movements, smiled covertly at her affectations, envied
her accomplishments, and practised certain little
elegancies that struck her fancy. Mr. Stuart would have
become apoplectic with indignation if he had known
that this too intelligent table girl often contrasted her
master with his guests, and dared to think him wanting
in good breeding when he boasted of his mioney,
flattered a great man, or laid plans to lure some lion into
his house. When he lost his temper, she always wanted
to laugh, he bounced and bumbled about so like an
angry blue-bottle fly; and when he got himself up
elaborately for a party, this disrespectful hussy confided
to Hepsey her opinion that "master was a fat dandy,
with nothing to be vain of but his clothes," -a
sacrilegious remark which would have caused her to be
summarily ejected from the house if it had reached the
august ears of master or mistress. "My father was a
gentleman; and I shall never forget it, though I do go
out to service. I've got no rich friends to help me up,
but, sooner or later, I mean to find a place among
cultivated people; and while I'm working and waiting, I
can be fitting myself to fill that place like a
gentlewoman, as I am." With this ambition in her mind,
Christie took notes of all that went on in the polite
world, of which she got frequent glimpses while "living
out." Mrs. Stuart received one evening of each week,
and on these occasions Christie, with' an extra frill on
her white apron, served the company, and enjoyed
herself more than they did, if the truth had been known.
While helping the ladies with their wraps, she observed
what they wore, how they carried themselves, and what
a vast amount of prinking they did, not to mention the
flood of gossip they talked while shaking out their
flounces and settling their topknots. Later in the
evening, when she passed cups and glasses, this
demure-looking damsel heard much fine discourse, saw
many famous beings, and improved her mind with
surreptitious studies of the rich and great when on
parade. But her best time was after supper, when,
through the crack of the door of the little room where
she was supposed to be clearing away the relics of the
feast,. she looked and listened at her ease; laughed at
the wits, stared at the lions, heard the music, was
impressed by the wisdom, and much edified by the
gentility of the whole affair. After a time, however,
Christie got rather tired of it, for there was an elegant
sameness about these evenings that became intensely
wearisome to the uninitiated, but she fancied that as
each had his part to play he managed to do it with spirit.
Night after night the wag told his stories, the poet read
his poems, the singers warbled, the pretty women
simpered and dressed, the heavy scientific was duly
discussed by the elect precious, and Mrs. Stuart, in
amazing costumes, sailed to and fro in her most swanlike manner; while my lord stirred up, the lions he had
captured, till they roared their best, great and small.
"Good heavens! why don't they do or say something
new and interesting, and not keep twaddling on about
art, and music, and poetry, and cosmos? The papers are
full of appeals for help for the poor, reforms of all sorts,
and splendid work that others are doing; but. these
people seem to think it isn't genteel enough to be
spoken of here. I suppose it is all very elegant to go on
like a Set of trained canaries, but it's very dull fun to
watch them, and Hepsey's stories are a deal more
interesting to me." Having come to this conclusion,
after studying dilettanteism through the crack of the
door for some months, Christie left the "trained canaries
" to twitter and hop about their gilded cage, and devoted
herself to Hepsey, who gave her glimpses into another
sort of life so bitterly real that she never could forget it.
HEPSEY. Friendship had prospered in the lower
regions, for Hepsey had a motherly heart, and Christie
soon won her confidence by bestowing her own. Her
story was like many another; yet, being the first Christie
had ever heard, and told with the unconscious
eloquence of one who had suffered and escaped, it
made a deep impression on her, bringing home to her a
sense of obligation so forcibly that she began at once to
pay a little part of the great debt which the white race
owes the black. Christie loved books; and the attic next
her own was full of them. To this store she found her
way by a sort of instinct as sure as that which leads a
fly to a honeypot, and, finding many novels, she read
her fill. This amusement lightened many heavy hours,
peopled the silent house with troops of friends, and, for
a time, was the joy -of her life. Hepsey used to watch
her as she sat buried in her book when the day's work
was done, and once a heavy sigh roused Christie from
the most exciting crisis of "The Abbot." "What's the
matter? Are you very tired, Aunty?" she asked, using
the name that came most readily to her lips. "No,
honey; I was only wishin' I could read fast like you
does. I's berry slow'bout readin' and I want. to learn a
heap," answered Hepsey, with such a wistful look in her
soft eyes that Christie shut her book, saying briskly:
"Then I'll teach you. Bring out your primer and let's
begin at once." "Dear chile, it's orful hard work to put
learnin' in my ole head, and I wouldn't 'cept such. a ting
from you only I needs dis sort of help so bad, and I can
trust you to gib it to me as I wants it."
Then in a whisper that went straight to Christie's heart,
Hepsey told her plan and showed what help she craved.
For five years she had worked hard, and saved her
earnings for the purpose of her life. When a
considerable sum had been hoarded up, she confided it
to one whom she believed to be a friend, and sent him
to buy her old mother. But he proved false, and she
never saw either mother or money. It was a hard blow,
bilt she took heart and went to work again, resolving
this time to trust no one with the dangerous part of the
affair, but when she had scraped together enough to pay
her way she meant to go South and steal her mother at
the risk of her life. "I don't want much money, but I
must know little 'bout readin' and countin' up, else I'll
get lost and cheated. You'll help me do dis, honey, and
I'll bless you all my days, and so will my old mammy,
if I ever gets her safe' away." With tears of sympathy
shining on her cheeks, and both hands stretched out to
the poor soul who implored this small boon of her,
Christie promised all the help that in her lay, and kept
her word religiously. From that time, Hepsey's cause
was hers; she laid by a part of her wages for "ole
mammy," she comforted Hepsey with happy prophecies
of success, and taught with an energy and skill she had
never known before. Novels lost their charms now, for
Hepsey could give her a comedy and tragedy surpassing
any thing she found in them, because truth stamped her
tales with a power and pathos the most gifted fancy
could but poorly imitate.
The select receptions upstairs seemed duller than ever
to her now, and her happiest evenings were spent in the
tidy kitchen, watching Hepsey laboriously shaping A's
and B's, or counting up on her worn fingers the wages
they had earned by months of weary work, that she
might purchase one treasure, -- a feeble, old woman,
worn out with seventy years of slavery far away there in
Virginia. For a year Christie was a faithful servant to
her mistress, who appreciated her virtues, but did not
encourage them; a true friend to poor Hepsey, who
loved her dearly, and found in her sympathy and
affection a solace for many griefs and wrongs. But
Providence had other lessons for Christie, and when
this one was well learned she was sent away to learn
another phase of woman's life and labor. While their
domestics amused themselves with privy conspiracy
and rebellion at home, Mr. and Mrs. Stuart spent their
evenings in chasing that- bright bubble called social
success, and usually came home rather cross because
they could not catch it. On one of these occasions they
received a warm welcome, for, 'as they approached the
house, smoke was seen issuing from an attic window,
and flames flickering behind the half-drawn curtain.
Bursting out of the carriage with his usual impetuosity,
Mr. Stuart let himself in and tore upstairs shouting
"Fire!" like an engine company. In the attic Christie
was discovered lying dressed upon her bed, asleep or
suffocated by the smoke that filled the room. A book
had slipped from her hand, and in falling had upset the
candle on a chair beside her; the long wick leaned
against a cotton gown hanging on the wall, and a
greater part of Christie's wardrobe was burning
brilliantly. "I forbade her to keep the gas lighted so late,
and see what the deceitful creature has done with her
private candle!" cried Mrs. Stuart with a shrillness that
roused the girl from her heavy sleep more effectually
than the anathemas Mr. Stuart was fulminating against
the fire. Sitting up she looked dizzily about her. The
smoke was clearing fast, a window having been
opened; and the tableau was a striking one. Mr. Stuart
with an excited countenance was dancing frantically on
a heap of half-consumed clothes pulled from the wall.
He had not only drenched them with water from bowl
and pitcher, but had also cast those articles upon the
pile like extinguishers, and was skipping among the
fragments with an agility which contrasted with his
stout figure in full evening costume, and his besmirched
face, made the sight irresistibly ludicrous. Mrs. Stuart,
though in her most regal array, seemed to have left her
dignity downstairs with her opera cloak, for with skirts
gathered closely about her, tiara all askew, and face full
of fear and anger, she stood upon a chair and scolded
like any shrew. The comic overpowered the tragic, and
being a little hysterical with the sudden alarm, Christie
broke into a peal of laughter that sealed her fate. "Look
at her! look at her!" cried Mrs. Stuart gesticulating on
her perch as if about to fly. " She has been at the wine,
or lost her wits. She must go, Horatio, she must go! I
cannot have my nerves shattered by such dreadful
scenes. She is too fond of books, and it has turned her
brain. Hepsey can watch her to-night, and at dawn she
shall leave the house for ever." "Not till after breakfast,
my dear. Let us have that in comfort I beg, for upon my
soul we shall need it," panted Mr. Stuart, sinking into a
chair exhausted with the vigorous measures which had
quenched the conflagration. Christie checked her
untimely mirth, explained the probable cause of the
mischief, and penitently promised to be more careful
for the future. Mr. Stuart would have pardoned her on
the spot, but Madame was inexorable, for she had so
completely forgotten her dignity that she felt it would
be impossible ever to recover it in the eyes of this
disrespectful menial. Therefore she dismissed her with
a lecture that made both mistress and maid glad to part.
She did not appear at breakfast, and after that meal Mr.
Stuart paid Christie her wages with a solemnity which
proved that he had taken a curtain lecture to heart.
There was a twinkle in his eye, however, as he kindly
added a recommendation, and after the door closed
behind him Christie was sure that he exploded into a
laugh at the recollection of his last night's performance.
This lightened her sense of disgrace very much, so,
leaving a part of her money to repair damages, she
packed up her dilapidated wardrobe, and, making
Hepsey promise to report progress from time to time,
Christie went back to Mrs. Flint's to compose her mind
and be ready a la Micawber "for something to turn up."
Chapter III
Actress.
FEELING that she had all the world before her where
to choose, and that her next step ought to take her up at
least one round higher on the ladder she was climbing,
Christie decided not to try going out to service again.
She knew very well that she would never live with Irish
mates, and could not expect to'find another Hepsey. So
she tried to get a place as companion to an invalid, but
failed to secure the only situation of the sort that was
offered her, because she mildly objected to waiting on a
nervous cripple all day, and reading aloud half the
night. The old lady called her an " impertinent
baggage," and Christie retired in great disgust,
resolving not to be a slave to anybody. Things seldom
turn out as we plan them, and after much waiting and
hoping for other -work Christie at last accepted about
the only employment which had not entered her mind.
Among the boarders at Mrs. Flint's were an old lady
and her pretty daughter, both actresses at a respectable
theatre. Not stars by any means, but good second-rate
players, doing their work creditably and earning an
honest living. The mother had been kind to Christie in
offering advice, and sympathizing with her
disappointments. The daughter, a gay little lass, had
taken Christie to the theatre several times, there to
behold her in all the gauzy glories that surround the
nymphs of spectacular romance. To Christie this was a
great delight, for, though she had pored over her father's
Shakespeare till she knew many scenes by heart, she
had never seen a play till Lucy led her into what
seemed an enchanted world. Her interest and
admiration pleased the little actress, and sundry lifts
when she was hurried with her dresses made her
grateful to Christie. The girl's despondent face, as she
came in day after day from her unsuccessful quest, told
its own story, though she uttered no complaint, and
these friendly souls laid their heads together, eager to
help her in their own dramatic fashion. "I've got it! I've
got it! All hail to the queen!" was the cry that one day
startled Christie as she sat thinking anxiously, while
sewing mock-pearls on a crown for Mrs. Black.
Looking up she saw Lucy just home from rehearsal,
going through a series of pantomimic evolutions
suggestive of a warrior doing battle with incredible
valor, and a very limited knowledge of the noble art of
self-defence. "What have you got? Who is the queen?"
she asked, laughing, as the breathless hero lowered her
umbrella, and laid her bonnet at Christie's feet. " You
are to be the Queen of the Amazons in our new
spectacle, at half a dollar a night for six or eight weeks,
if the piece goes well." "No!" cried Christie, with a
gasp.
"Yes!" cried Lucy, clapping her hands; and then she
proceeded to tell her news with theatrical volubility.
"Mr. Sharp, the manager, wants a lot of tallish girls, and
I told him I knew of a perfect dear. He said:' Bring her
on, then,' and I flew home to tell you. Now, don't look
wild, and say no. You've only got to sing in one chorus,
march in the grand procession, and lead your band in
the terrific battle-scene. The dress is splendid! Red
tunic, tiger-skin over shoulder, helmet, shield, lance,
fleshings, sandals, hair down, and as much cork to your
eyebrows as you like." Christie certainly did look wild,
for Lucy had burst into the room like a small hurricane,
and her rapid words rattled about the listeners' ears as if
a hail-storm had followed the gust. While Christie still
sat with her mouth open, too bewildered to reply, Mrs.
Black said. in her cosey voice:
"Try it, me dear, it's just what you'll enjoy, and a capital
beginning I assure ye; for if you do well old Sharp will
want you again, and then, when some-one slips out of
the company, you can slip in, and there you are quite
comfortable. Try it, me dear, and if you don't like it
drop it when the piece is over, and there's no harm
done." "It's much easier and jollier than any of the
things you are after. We'll stand by you like bricks, and
in a week you'll say it's the best lark you ever had in
your life. Don't be prim, now, but say yes, like a trump,
as you are," added Lucy, waving a pink satin train
temptingly before her friend. "I will try it!" said
Christie, with sudden decision, feeling that something
entirely new and absorbing was what she needed to
expend the vigor, romance, and enthusiasm of her youth
upon. With a shriek of delight Lucy swept her off her
chair, and twirled her about the room as excitable
young ladies are fond of doing when their joyful
emotions need a vent. When both were giddy they
subsided into a corner and a breathless discussion of the
important step. Though she had consented, Christie had
endless doubts and fears, but Lucy removed many of
the former, and her own desire for pleasant employment
conquered many of the latter. In her most despairing
moods she had never thought of trying this. Uncle Enos
considered "play-actin'" as the sum of all iniquity. What
would he say if she went calmly to destruction by that
road? Sad to relate, this recollection rather strengthened
her purpose, for a delicious sense of freedom pervaded
her soul, and the old defiant spirit seemed to rise up
within her at the memory of her Uncle's grim
prophecies and narrow views. "Lucy is happy, virtuous,
and independent, why can-.t I be so too if I have any
talent? It isn't exactly whaz I should choose, but any
thing honest is better that idleness. I'll try it any way,
and get a little fun, ever if I don't make much money or
glory out of it." So Christie held to her resolution in
spite of man) secret misgivings, and followed Mrs.
Black's advice on all points with a docility which
caused that sanguine lady to predict that she would be a
star before she knew where she was. "Is this the stage?
How dusty and dull it is by daylight! " said Christie
next day, as she stood by Lucy on the very spot where
she had seen Hamlet die in great anguish two nights
before. "Bless you, child, it's in curl-papers now, as I
am of a morning. Mr. Sharp, here's an Amazon for
you." As she spoke, Lucy hurried across the stage,
followed by Christie, wearing any thing but an
Amazonian expression just then. "Ever on before?"
abruptly asked. a keen-faced, little man, glancing with
an experienced eye at the young person who stood
before him bathed in blushes. " No, sir." "Do you sing?"
" A little, sir." "Dance, of course?" "Yes, sir." "Just take
a turn across the stage, will you? Must walk well to lead
a march." As she went, Christie heard Mr. Sharp taking
notes audibly:
"Good tread; capital figure; fine eye. She'll make up
well, and behave herself, I fancy." A strong desire to
make off seized the girl; but, remembering that she had
presented herself for inspection, she controlled the
impulse, and returned to him with no demonstration of
displeasure, but a little more fire in " the fine eye," and
a more erect carriage of the "capital figure." "All right,
my dear. Give your name to Mr. Tripp, and your mind
to the business, and consider yourself engaged,"- with
which satisfactory remark the little man vanished like a
ghost. "Lucy, did you hear that impertinent' my dear'?"
asked Christie, whose sense of propriety had received
its first shock. "Lord, child, all managers do it. They
don't mean any thing; so be resigned, and thank your
stars he didn't say 'love' and darling,' and kiss you, as
old Vining used to," was all the sympathy she got.
Having obeyed orders, Lucy initiated her into the
mysteries of the place, and then put her in a corner to
look over the scenes in which she was to appear.
Christie soon caught the idea of her part, -- not a
difficult matter, as there were but few ideas in the
whole piece, after which she sat watching the arrival of
the troop she was to lead. A most forlorn band of
warriors they seemed, huddled together, and looking as
if afraid to speak, lest they should infringe some rule; or
to move, lest they be swallowed up by some
unsuspected trapdoor. Presently the ballet-master
appeared, the orchestra struck up, and Christie found
herself marching and counter-marching at word of
command. At first, a most uncomfortable sense of the
absurdity of her position oppressed and confused her;
then the ludicrous contrast between the solemn anxiety
of the troop and the fantastic evolutions they were
performing amused her till the novelty wore off; the
martial music excited her; the desire to please
sharpened her wits; and natural grace made it easy for
her to catch and copy the steps and poses given her to
imitate. Soon she forgot herself, entered into the spirit
of the thing, and exerted every sense to please, so
successfully that Mr. Tripp praised her quickness at
comprehension, Lucy applauded heartily from a fairy
car, and Mr. Sharp popped his head out of a palace
window to watch the Amazon's descent from the
Mountains of the Moon. When the regular company
arrived, the troop was dismissed till the progress of the
play demanded their reappearance. Much interested in
the piece, Christie stood aside under a palm-tree, the
foliage of which was strongly suggestive of a
dilapidated green umbrella, enjoying the novel sights
and sounds about her. Yellow-faced gentlemen and
sleepy-eyed ladies roamed languidly about with much
incoherent jabbering of parts, and frequent explosions
of laughter. Princes, with varnished boots and
suppressed cigars, fought, bled, and died, without a
change of countenance. Damsels of unparalleled
beauty, according to the text, gaped in the faces of
adoring lovers, and crocheted serenely on the brink of
annihilation. Fairies, in rubber-boots and woollen headgear, disported themselves on flowery barks of canvas,
or were suspended aloft with hooks in their backs like
young Hindoo devotees. Demons, guiltless of hoof or
horn, clutched their victims with the inevitable "Ha!
ha!" and vanished darkly, eating pea-nuts. The
ubiquitous Mr. Sharp seemed to pervade the whole
theatre; for his voice came shrilly from above or
spectrally from below, and his active little figure darted
to and fro like a critical will-o-the-wisp. The grand
march and chorus in the closing scene were easily
accomplished; for, as Lucy bade her, Christie " sung
with all her might," and kept step as she led her band
with the dignity of a Boadicea. No one spoke to her;
few observed her; all were intent on their own affairs;
and when the final shriek and bang died away without
lifting the roof by its din, she could hardly believe that
the dreaded first rehearsal was safely over. A visit to
the wardrobe-room to see her dress came next; and here
Christie had a slight skirmish with the mistress of that
department relative to the length of her classical
garments. As studies from the nude had not yet become
one of the amusements of the elite of Little Babel,
Christie was not required to appear in the severe
simplicity of a costume consisting of a necklace,
sandals, and a bit of gold fringe about the waist, but
was allowed an extra inch or two on her tunic, and
departed, much comforted by the assurance that her
dress would not be "a shock to modesty," as Lucy
expressed it. " Now, look at yourself, and, for my sake,
prove an honor to your country and a terror to the foe,"
said Lucy, as she led her protegee before the greenroom mirror on the first night of " The Demon's
Daughter, or The Castle of the Sun!! The most
Magnificent Spectacle ever produced upon the
American Stage!!!" Christie looked, and saw a warlike
figure with glittering helmet, shield and lance,
streaming hair and savage cloak. She liked the picture,
for there was much of the heroic spirit in the girl, and
even this poor counterfeit pleased her eye and filled her
fancy with martial memories of Joan of Arc, Zenobia,
and Britomarte. " Go to!" cried Lucy, who affected
theatrical modes of speech. " Don't admire yourself any
longer, but tie up your sandals and come on. Be sure
you rush down the instant I cry,' Demon, I defy thee'
Don't break your neck, or pick your way like a cat in
wet weather, but come with effect, for I want that scene
to make a hit."
Princess Caremfil swept away, and the Amazonian
queen climbed to her perch among the painted
mountains, where her troop already sat like a flock of
pigeons shining in the sun. The gilded breast-plate rose
and fell with the quick beating of her heart, the spear
shook with the trembling of her hand, her lips were dry,
her head dizzy, and more than once, as she waited for
her cue, she was sorely tempted to run away and take
the consequences. But the thought of Lucy's good-will
and confidence kept her, and when the cry came she
answered with a ringing shout, rushed down the tenfoot precipice, and charged upon the foe with an energy
that inspired her followers, and quite satisfied the
princess struggling in the demon's grasp. With clashing
of arms and shrill war-cries the rescuers of innocence
assailed the sooty fiends who fell before their
unscientific blows with a rapidity which inspired in the
minds of beholders a suspicion that the goblins' own
voluminous tails tripped them up and gallantry kept
them prostrate. As the last groan expired, the last
agonized squirm subsided, the conquerors performed
the intricate dance with which it appears the Amazons
were wont to celebrate their victories. Then the scene
closed with a glare of red light and a " grand tableau" of
the martial queen standing in a bower of lances, the
rescued princess gracefully fainting in her arms, and the
vanquished demon scowling fiercely under her foot,
while four-and-twenty dishevelled damsels sang a song
of exultation, to the barbaric music of a tattoo on their
shields. All went well that night, and when at last the
girls doffed crown and helmet, they confided to one
another the firm opinion that the success of the piece
was in a great measure owing to their talent, their
exertions, and went gaily home predicting for
themselves careers as brilliant as those of Siddons and
Rachel. It would be a pleasant task to paint the
vicissitudes and victories of a successful actress; but
Christie was no dramatic genius born to shine before
the world and leave a name behind her. She had no
talent except that which may be developed in any girl
possessing the lively fancy, sympathetic nature, and
ambitious spirit which make such girls naturally
dramatic. This was to be only one of many experiences
which were to show her her own weakness and
strength, and through effort, pain, and disappointment
fit her to play a nobler part on a wider stage. For a few
weeks Christie's illusions lasted; then she discovered
that the new life was nearly as humdrum as the old, that
her companions were ordinary men and women, and
her bright hopes were growing as dim as her tarnished
shield. She grew unutterably weary of " The Castle of
the Sun," and found the " Demon's Daughter" an
unmitigated bore. She was not tired of the profession,
only dissatisfied with the place she held in it, and eager
to attempt a part that gave some scope for power and
passion. Mrs. Black wisely reminded her that she must
learn to use her wings before she tried to fly, and
comforted her with stories of celebrities who had begun
as she was beginning, yet who had suddenly burst from
their grub-like obscurity to adorn the world as splendid
butterflies. " We'll stand by you, Kit; so keep up your
courage, and do your best. Be clever to every one in
general, old Sharp in particular, and when a chance
comes, have your wits about you and grab it. That's the
way to get on," said Lucy, as sagely as if she had been a
star for years. "If I had beauty I should stand a better
chance," sighed Christie, surveying herself with great
disfavor, quite unconscious that to a cultivated eye the
soul of beauty was often visible in that face of hers,
with its intelligent eyes, sensitive mouth, and fine lines
about the forehead, making it a far more significant and
attractive countenance than that of her friend,
possessing only piquant prettiness. "Never mind, child;
you've got a lovely figure, and an actress's best feature,
-- fine eyes and eyebrows. I heard old Kent say so, and
he's a judge. So make the best of what you've got, as I
do," answered Lucy, glancing at her own comely little
person with an air of perfect resignation. Christie
laughed at the adviser, but wisely took the advice, and,
though she fretted in private, was cheerful and alert in
public. Always modest, attentive, and obliging, she
soon became a favorite with her mates; and, thanks to
Lucy's good offices with Mr. Sharp, whose favorite she
was, Christie got promoted sooner than she otherwise
would have been. A great Christmas spectacle was
brought out the next season, and Christie had a good
part in it. When that was over she thought there was no
hope for her, as the regular company was full and a
different sort of performance was to begin. But just then
her chance came, and she " grabbed it." The first
soubrette died suddenly, and in the emergency Mr.
Sharp offered the place to Christie till he could fill it to
his mind. Lucy was second soubrette, and had hoped
for this promotion; but Lucy did not sing well. Christie
had a good voice, had taken lessons and much
improved of late, so she had the preference and
resolved to stand the test so well that this temporary
elevation should become permanent. She did her best,
and though many of the parts were distasteful to her she
got through them successfully, while now and then she
had one which she thoroughly enjoyed. Her Tilly
Slowboy was a hit, and a proud girl was Christie when
Kent, the comedian, congratulated her on it, and told
her he had seldom seen it better done. To find favor in
Kent's eyes was an honor indeed, for he belonged to the
old school, and rarely condescended to praise modern
actors. His own style was so admirable that he was
justly considered the first comedian in the country, and
was the pride and mainstay of the old theatre where he
had played for years. Of course he possessed much
influence in that little world, and being a kindly man
used it generously to help up any young aspirant who
seemed to him deserving. He had observed Christie,
attracted by her intelligent face and modest manners,
for in spite of her youth there was a native refinement
about her that made it impossible for her to romp and
flirt as some of her mates did. But till she played Tilly
he had not thought she possessed any talent. That
pleased him, and seeing how much she valued his
praise, and was fattered by his notice, he gave her the
wise but unpalatable advice always offered young
actors. Finding that she accepted it, was willing to study
hard, work faithfully, and wait patiently, he predicted
that in time she would make a clever actress, never a
great one. Of course Christie thought he was mistaken,
and secretly resolved to prove him a false prophet by
the triumphs of her career. But she meekly bowed to his
opinion; this docility pleased him, and he took a
paternal sort of interest in her, which, coming from the
powerful favorite, did her good service with the higher
powers, and helped her on more rapidly than years of
meritorious effort. Toward the end of that second
season several of Dickens's dramatized novels were
played, and Christie earned fresh laurels. She loved
those books, and seemed by instinct to understand and
personate the humor and pathos of many of those
grotesque creations. Believing she had little beauty to
sacrifice, she dressed such parts to the life, and played
them with a spirit and ease that surprised those who had
considered her a dignified and rather dull young person.
"I'll tell you what it is, Sharp, that girl is going to make
a capital character actress. When her parts suit, she
forgets herself entirely and does admirably well. Her
Miggs was nearly the death of me to-night. She's got
that one gift, and it's a good one. You'd better give her a
chance, for I think she'll be a credit to the old concern."
Kent said that, -- Christie heard it, and flew to Lucy,
waving Miggs's cap for joy as she told the news. " What
did Mr. Sharp say?" asked Lucy, turning round with her
face half "made up." " He merely said' Hum,' and
smiled. Wasn't that a good sign? " said Christie,
anxiously. "Can't say," and Lucy touched up her
eyebrows as if she took no interest in the affair.
Christie's face fell, and her heart sunk at the thought of
failure; but she kept up her spirits by working harder
than ever, and soon had her reward. Mr. Sharp's Hum"
did mean yes, and the next season she was regularly
engaged, with a salary of thirty dollars a week.
It was a grand step, and knowing that she owed it to
Kent, Christie did her utmost to show that she deserved
his good opinion. New trials and temptations beset her
now, but hard work and an innocent nature kept her
safe and busy. Obstacles only spurred her on to
redoubled exertion, and whether she did well or ill, was
praised or blamed, she found a never-failing excitement
in her attempts to reach the standard of perfection she
had set up for herself. Kent did not regret his patronage.
Mr. Sharp was satisfied with the success of the
experiment, and Christie soon became a favorite in a
small way, because behind the actress the public always
saw a woman who never "forgot the modesty of
nature." But as she grew prosperous in outward things,
Christie found herself burdened with a private cross that
tried her very much. Lucy was no longer her friend;
something had come between them, and a steadily
increasing coldness took the place of the confidence
and affection which had once existed. Lucy was jealous
for Christie had passed her in the race. She knew she
could not fill the place Christie had gained by favor,
and now held by her own exertions, still she was
bitterly envious, though ashamed to own it. Christie
tried to be just and gentle, to prove her gratitude to her
first friend, and to show that her heart was unchanged.
But she failed to win Lucy back and felt herself injured
by such unjust resentment. Mrs. Black took her
daughter's part, and though they preserved the peace
outwardly the old friendliness was quite gone. Hoping
to forget this trouble in excitement Christie gave -herself entirely to her profession, finding in it a
satisfaction which for a time consoled her. But
gradually she underwent the sorrowful change which
comes to strong natures when they wrong them, selves
through ignorance or wilfulness. Pride and native
integrity kept her from the worst temptations of such a
life, but to the lesser ones she yielded, growing selfish,
frivolous, and vain, -- intent on her own advancement,
and careless by what means she reached it. She had no
thought now beyond her art, no desire beyond the
commendation of those whose opinion was serviceable,
no care for any one. but herself. Her love of admiration
grew by what it fed on, till the sound of applause
became the sweetest music to her ear. She rose-with
this hope, lay down with this satisfaction, and month
after month passed in this feverish life, with no wish to
change it, but a growing appetite for its unsatisfactory
delights, an ever-increasing forgetfulness of any higher
aspiration than dramatic fame. "Give me joy, Lucy, I'm
to have a benefit next week! Everybody else has had
one, and I've played for them all, so no one seemed to
begrudge me my turn when dear old Kent proposed it,"
said Christie, coming in one night still flushed and
excited with the good news. "What shall you have?"
asked Lucy, trying to look pleased, and failing
decidedly. "'Masks and Faces.' I've always wanted to
play Peg. and it has good parts for you and Kent, and
St. George.
I chose it for that reason, for I shall need all the help I
can get to pull me through, I dare say." The smile
vanished entirely at this speech, and Christie was
suddenly seized with a suspicion that Lucy was not
only jealous of her as an actress, but as a woman. St.
George was a comely young actor who usually played
lovers' parts with Christie, and played them very well,
too, being possessed of much talent, and a gentleman.
They had never thought of falling in love with each
other, though St. George wooed and won Christie night
after night in vaudeville and farce. But it was very easy
to imagine that so much mock passion had a basis of
truth, and Lucy evidently tormented herself with this
belief. "Why didn't you choose Juliet:
St. George would do Romeo so well?" said Lucy, with
a sneer. "No, that is beyond me. Kent says Shakespeare
will never be my line, and I believe him. All should
think you'd be satisfied with 'Masks and Faces,' for you
know Mabel gets her husband safely back in the end,"
answered Christie, watching the effect of her words.
"As if I wanted the man! No, thank you, other people's
leavings won't suit me," cried Lucy, tossing her head,
though her face belied her words. "Not even though he
has 'heavenly eyes,' distracting legs,' and 'a melting
voice? " asked Christie maliciously, quieting Lucy's
own rapturous speeches when the new actor came. "
Come, come, girls, don't quarrel. I won't 'ave it in me
room. Lucy's tired to death, and it's not nice of you,
Kitty, to come and crow over her this way," said
Mamma Black, coming to the rescue, for Lucy was in
tears, and Christie looking dangerous. "It's impossible
to please you, so I'll say good-night," and Christie went
to her room with resentment burning hotly in her heart.
As she crossed the chamber her eye fell on her own
figure reflected in the long glass, and with a sudden
impulse she turned up the gas, wiped the rouge from
her cheeks, pushed back her hair, and studied her own
face intently for several moments. It was pale and jaded
now, and all its freshness seemed gone; hard lines had
come about the mouth, a feverish disquiet filled the
eyes, and on the forehead seemed to lie the shadow of a
discontent that saddened the whole face. If one could
believe the testimony of that countenance things were
not going well with Christie, and she owned it with a
regretful sigh, as she asked herself, "Am I what I hoped
I should be? No, and it is my fault. If three years of this
life have made me this, what shall I be in ten? A fine
actress perhaps, but how good a woman?" With gloomy
eyes fixed on her altered face she stood a moment
struggling with herself. Then the hard look returned,
and she spoke out defiantly, as if in answer to some
warning voice within herself. "No one cares what I am,
so why care myself? Why not go on and get as much
fame as I can? Success gives me power if it cannot give
me happiness, and I must have some reward for my
hard work. Yes! a gay life and a short one, then out
with the lights and down with the curtain!" But in spite
of her reckless words Christie sobbed herself to sleep
that night like a child who knows it is astray, yet cannot
see the right path or hear its mother's voice calling it
home. On the night of the benefit, Lucy was in a most
exasperating mood, Christie in a very indignant one,
and as they entered their dressing-room they looked as
if they might have played the Rival Queens with great
effect. Lucy offered no help and Christie asked none,
but putting her vexation resolutely out of sight fixed her
mind on the task before her. As the pleasant stir began
all about her, actress-like, she felt her spirits rise, her
courage increase with every curl she fastened up, every
gay garment she put on, and soon smiled approvingly at
herself, for excitement lent her cheeks a better color
than rouge, her eyes shone with satisfaction, and her
heart beat high with the resolve to make a hit or die,
Christie needed encouragement that night, and found it
in the hearty welcome that greeted her, and the full
house, which proved how kind a regard was entertained
for her by many who knew her only by a fictitious
name. She felt this deeply, and it helped her much, for
she was vexed with many trials those before the
footlights knew nothing of. The other players were full
of kindly interest in her success, but Lucy took a
naughty satisfaction in harassing her by all the small
slights and unanswerable provocations which one
actress has it in her power to inflict upon another.
Christie was fretted almost beyond endurance, and
retaliated by an ominous frown when her position
allowed, threatening asides when a moment's by-play
favored their delivery, and angry protests whenever she
met Lucy off the stage. But in spite of all annoyances
she had never played better in her life. She liked the
part, and acted the warm-hearted, quick-witted, sharptongued Peg with a spirit and grace that surprised even
those who knew her best. Especially good was she in
the scenes with Triplet, for Kent played the part
admirably, and cheered her on with many an
encouraging look and word. Anxious to do honor to her
patron and friend she threw her whole heart into the
work; in the scene where she comes like a good angel
to the home of the poor play-wright, she brought tears
to the eyes of her audience; and when at her command
Triplet strikes up a jig to amuse the children she
"covered the buckle" in gallant style, dancing with all
the frolicsome abandon of the Irish orange-girl who for
a moment forgot her grandeur and her grief. That scene
was her best, for it is full of those touches of nature that
need very little art to make them effective; and when a
great bouquet fell with a thump at Christie's feet, as she
paused to bow her thanks for an encore, she felt that she
had reached the height of earthly bliss. In the studio
scene Lucy seemed suddenly gifted with unsuspected
skill; for when Mabel kneels to the picture, praying her
rival to give her back her husband's heart, Christie was
amazed to see real tears roll down Lucy's cheeks, and to
hear real love and longing thrill her trembling words
with sudden power and passion.
"That is not acting. She does love St. George, and
thinks I mean to keep him from her. Poor dear! I'll tell
her all about it to-night, and set her heart at rest,"
thought Christie; and when Peg left the frame, her face
expressed the genuine pity that she felt, and her voice
was beautifully tender as she promised to restore the
stolen treasure. Lucy felt comforted without knowing
why, and the piece went smoothly on to its last scene.
Peg was just relinquishing the repentant husband to his
forgiving wife with those brave words of hers, when a
rending sound above their heads made all look up and
start back; all but Lucy, who stood bewildered.
Christie's quick eye saw the impending danger, and
with a sudden spring she caught her friend from it. It
was only a second's work, but it cost her much; for in
the act, down crashed one of the mechanical
contrivances used in a late spectacle, and in its fall
stretched Christie stunned and senseless on the stage. A
swift uprising filled the house with tumult; a crowd of
actors hurried forward, and the panic-stricken audience
caught glimpses of poor Peg lying mute and pallid in
Mabel's arms, while Vane wrung his hands, and Triplet
audibly demanded, "Why the devil somebody didn't go
for a doctor?" Then a brilliant view of Mount
Parnassus, with Apollo and the Nine Muses in full
blast, shut the scene from sight, and soon Mr. Sharp
appeared to ask their patience till the after-piece was
ready, for Miss Douglas was, too much injured to
appear again. And with an unwonted expression of
feeling, the little man alluded to "the generous act
which perhaps had changed the comedy to a tragedy
and robbed the beneficiary of her well-earned reward at
their hands."
All had seen the impulsive spring toward, not from, the
danger and this unpremeditated action won heartier
applause than Christie ever had received for her best
rendering of more heroic deeds. But she did not hear
the cordial round they gave her. She had said she would
" make a hit or die;" and just then it seemed as if she
had done both, for she was deaf and blind to the
admiration and the sympathy bestowed upon her as the
curtain fell on the first, last benefit she ever was to
have.
Chapter IV
Governess. Mr. Philip Fletcher.
DURING the next few weeks Christie learned the
worth of many things which she had valued very lightly
until then. Health became a boon too precious to be
trifled with; life assumed a deeper significance when
death's shadow fell upon its light, and she discovered
that dependence might be made endurable by the
sympathy of unsuspected friends. Lucy waited upon her
with a remorseful devotion which touched her very
much and won entire forgiveness for the past, long
before it was repentantly implored. All her comrades
came with offers of help and affectionate regrets.
Several whom she had most disliked now earned her
gratitude by the kindly thoughtfulness which filled her
sick-room with fruit and flowers, supplied carriages (for
the convalescent, and paid her doctor's bill without her
knowledge. Thus Christie learned, like many another
needy member of the gay profession, that though often.
extravagant and jovial in their way of life, these menand women give as freely as they spend, wear warm,
true hearts under their motley, and make misfortune
only another link in the bond of good-fellowship which
binds them loyally together. Slowly Christie gathered
her energies after weeks of suffering, and took up her
life again, grateful for the gift, and anxious to be more
worthy of it. Looking back upon the past she felt that
she had made a mistake and lost more than she had
gained in those three years. Others might lead that life
of alternate excitement and hard work unharmed, but
she could not. The very ardor and insight which gave
power to the actress made that mimic life unsatisfactory
to the woman, for hers was an earnest nature that took
fast hold of whatever task she gave herself to do, and
lived in it heartily while duty made it right, or novelty
lent it charms. But when she saw the error of a step, the
emptiness of a belief, with a like earestness she tried to
retrieve the one and to replace the other with a better
substitute. In the silence of wakeful nights and the
solitude of quiet days, she took counsel with her better
self, condemned the reckless spirit which had possessed
her, and came at last to the decision which conscience
prompted and much thought confirmed. " The stage is
not the place for me," she said. "I have no genius to
glorify the drudgery, keep me from temptation, and
repay me for any sacrifice I make. Other women can
lead this life safely and happily:
I cannot, and I must not go back to it, because, with all
my past experience, and in spite of all my present good
resolutions, I should do no better, and I might do worse.
I'm not wise enough to keep steady there; I must return
to the old ways, dull but safe, and plod along till I find
my real place and work." Great was the surprise of
Lucy and her mother when Christie told her resolution,
adding, in a whisper, to the girl, "I leave the field clear
for you, dear, and will dance at your wedding with all
my heart when St. George asks you to play the'
Honeymoon' with him, as I'm sure he will before long."
Many entreaties from friends, as well as secret
longings, tried and tempted Christie sorely, but she
withstood them all, carried her point, and renounced the
profession she could not follow without self-injury-and
self-reproach. The season was nearly over when she
was well enough to take her place again, but she
refused to return, relinquished her salary, sold her
wardrobe, and never crossed the threshold of the theatre
after she had said good-bye. Then she asked, "What
next?" and was speedily answered. An advertisement
for a governess met her eye, which seemed to combine
the two things she most needed just then, -employment and change of air. "Mind you don't
mention that you've been an actress or it will be all up
with you, me dear," said Mrs. Black, as Christie
prepared to investigate the matter, for since her last
effort in that line she had increased her knowledge of
music, and learned French enough to venture teaching it
to very young pupils. "I'd rather tell in the beginning,
for if you keep any thing back it's sure to pop out when
you least expect or want it. I don't believe these people
will care as long as I'm respectable and teach well,"
returned Christie, wishing she looked stronger and
rosier. "You'll be sorry if you do tell," warned Mrs.
Black, who knew the ways of the world. "I shall be
sorry if I don't," laughed Christie, and so she was, in the
end. "L. N. Saltonstall" was the name on the door, and
L. N. Saltonstall's servant was so leisurely about
answering Christie's meek solo on the bell, that she had
time to pull out her bonnet-strings half-a-dozen times
before a very black man in a very white jacket
condescended to conduct her to his mistress. A frail,
tea-colored lady appeared, displaying such a small
proportion of woman to such a large proportion of
purple and fine linen, that she looked as if she was
literally as well as figuratively "dressed to death."
Christie went to the point in a business-like manner that
seemed to suit Mrs. Saltonstall, because it saved so
much trouble, and she replied, with a languid affability:
"I wish some one to teach the children a little, for they
are getting too old to be left entirely to nurse. I am
anxious to get to the sea-shore as soon as possible, for
they have been poorly all winter, and my own health
has suffered. Do you feel inclined to try the place? And
what compensation do you require?" Christie had but a
vague idea of what wages were usually paid to nursery
governesses, and hesitatingly named a sum which
seemed reasonable to her, but was so much less than
any other applicant had asked, that Mrs. Saltonstall
began to think she could not do better than secure this
cheap young person, who looked firm enough to
manage her rebellious son and heir, -and well-bred
enough to begin the education of a little fine lady. Her
winter had been an extravagant one, and she could
economize in the governess better perhaps than
elsewhere; so she decided to try Christie, and get' out of
town at once. "Your terms are quite satisfactory, Miss
Devon, and if my brother approves, I think we will
consider the matter settled. Perhaps you would like to
see the children? They are little darlings, and you will
soon be fond of them, I am sure." A bell was rung, an
order given, and presently appeared an eight-year old
boy, so excessively Scotch in his costume that he
looked like an animated checkerboard; and a little girl,
who presented the appearance of a miniature operadancer staggering under the weight of an immense sash.
"Go and speak prettily to Miss Devon, my pets, for she
is coming to play with you, and you must mind what
she says," commanded mamma.
The pale, fretful-looking little pair went solemnly to
Christie's knee, and stood there staring at her with a dull
composure that quite daunted her, it was so sadly
unchildlike. "What is your name, dear?" she asked,
laying her hand on the young lady's head. "Villamena
Temmatina Taltentall. You mustn't touch my hair; it's
just curled," was the somewhat embarrassing reply.
"Mine's Louy Poleon Thaltensthall, like papa's,"
volunteered the other young person, and Christie
privately wondered if the possession of names nearly as
long as themselves was not a burden to the poor dears.
Feeling that she must say something, she asked, in her
most persuasive tone:
"Would you like to have me come and teach you some
nice lessons out of your little books?" If she had
proposed corporal punishment on the spot it could not
have caused greater dismay. Wilhelmina cast herself
upon the floor passionately, declaring that she "touldn't
tuddy," and Saltonstall, Jr., retreated precipitately to the
door, and from that refuge defied the whole race of
governesses and "nasty lessons" jointly. "There, run
away to Justine. They are sadly out of sorts, and quite
pining for sea-air," said mamma, with both hands at her
ears, for the war-cries of her darlings were piercing as
they departed; proclaiming their wrongs while
swarming up stairs, with a skirmish on each landing.
With a few more words Christie took leave) and
scandalized the sable retainer by smiling all through the
hall, and laughing audibly as the door closed. The
contrast of the plaid boy and beruffied girl's irritability
with their mother's languid affectation, and her own
unfortunate efforts, was too much for her. In the middle
of her merriment she paused suddenly, saying to
herself:
"I never told about my acting. I must go back and have
it settled." She retraced a few steps, then turned and
went on again, thinking, "No; for once I'1 be guided by
other people's advice, and let well alone." A note
arrived soon after, bidding Miss Devon consider herself
engaged, and desiring her to join the family at the boat
on Monday next. At the appointed time Christie was on
board, and looked about for her party. Mrs. Saltonstall
appeared in the distance with her family about her, and
Christie took a survey before reporting herself. Madame
looked more like a fashion-plate than ever, in a mass of
green flounces, and an impressive bonnet flushed with
poppies and bristling with wheat-ears. Beside her sat a
gentleman, rapt in a newspaper, of course, for to an
American man life is a burden till the daily news have
been absorbed. Mrs. Saltonstall's brother was the
possessor of a handsome eye without softness, thin lips
without benevolence, but plenty of will; a face and
figure which some thirty-five years of ease and pleasure
had done their best to polish and spoil, and a costume
without flaw, from his aristocratic boots to the summer
hat on his head. The little boy more checkered and the
little girl more operatic than before, sat on stools eating
bonbons, while a French maid and the African footman
hovered in the background. Feeling very much like a
meek gray moth among a flock of butterflies, Christie
modestly presented herself. "Good morning," said
Madame with a nod, which, slight as it was, caused a
great commotion among the poppies and the wheat; " I
began to be anxious about you. Miss Devon, my
brother, Mr. Fletcher." The gentleman bowed, and as
Christie sat down he got up, saying, as he sauntered
away with a bored expression:
"Will you have the paper, Charlotte? There's nothing in
it." As Mrs. Saltonstall seemed going to sleep and she
felt delicate about addressing the irritable infants in
public, Christie amused herself by watching Mr.
Fletcher as he roamed listlessly about, and deciding, in
her usual rash way, that she did not like him because he
looked both lazy and cross, and ennui was evidently his
bosom friend. Soon, however, she forgot every thing
but the shimmer of the sunshine on the sea, the fresh
wind that brought color to her pale cheeks, and the
happy thoughts that left a smile upon her lips. Then Mr.
Fletcher put up his glass and stared at her, shook his
head, and said, as he lit a cigar:
"Poor little wretch, what a time she will have of it
between Charlotte and the brats!" But Christie needed
no pity, and thought herself a fortunate young woman
when fairly established in her corner of the luxurious
apartments occupied by the family. Her duties seemed
light compared to those she had left, her dreams were
almost as bright as of old, and the new life looked
pleasant to her, for she was one of those who could find
little bits of happiness for herself and enjoy them
heartily in spite of loneliness or neglect. One of her
amusements was studying her companions, and for a
time this occupied her, for Christie possessed
penetration and a feminine fancy for finding out people.
Mrs. Saltonstall's mission appeared to be the illustration
of each new fashion as it came, and she performed it
with a devotion worthy of a. better cause. If a color
reigned supreme she flushed herself with scarlet or
faded into primrose, made herself pretty in the bluest of
blue gowns, or turned livid under a gooseberry colored
bonnet. Her hat-brims went up or down, were
preposterously wide or dwindled to an inch, as the
mode demanded. Her skirts were rampant with sixteen
frills, or picturesque with landscapes down each side,
and a Greek border or a plain hem. Her waists were as
pointed as those of Queen Bess or as short as Diana's;
and it was the opinion of those who knew her that if the
autocrat who ruled her life decreed the wearing of black
cats as well as of vegetables, bugs, and birds, the
blackest, glossiest Puss procurable for money would
have adorned her head in some way. Her time was
spent in dressing, driving, dining and dancing; in
skimming novels, and embroidering muslin; going to
church with a velvet prayer-book and a new bonnet;
and writing to her husband when she wanted money, for
she had a husband somewhere abroad, who so happily
combined business with pleasure that he never found
time to come home. Her children were inconvenient
blessings, but she loved them with the love of a shallow
heart, and took such good care of their little bodies that
there was none left for their little souls. A few days'
trial satisfied her as to Christie's capabilities, and,
relieved of that anxiety, she gave herself up to her
social duties, leaving the ocean and the governess to
make the summer wholesome and agreeable to "the
darlings." Mr. Fletcher, having tried all sorts of pleasure
and found that, like his newspaper, there was "nothing
in it," was now paying the penalty for that
unsatisfactory knowledge. Ill health soured his temper
and made his life a burden to him. Having few
resources within himself to fall back upon, he was very
dependent upon other people, and other people were so
busy amusing themselves, they seemed to find little
time or inclination to amuse a man who had never
troubled himself about them. He was rich, but while his
money could hire a servant to supply each want, gratify
each caprice, it could not buy a tender, faithful friend to
serve for love, and ask no wages but his comfort. He
knew this, and felt the vain regret that inevitably comes
to those who waste life and learn the value of good gifts
by their loss. But he was not wise or brave enough to
bear his punishment manfully, and lay the lesson
honestly to heart. Fretful and imperious when in pain,
listless and selfish when at ease, his one aim in life now
was to kill time, and any thing that aided him in this
was most gratefully welcomed. For a long while he
took no more notice of Christie than if she had been a
shadow, seldom speaking beyond the necessary
salutations, and merely carrying his finger to his hatbrim when he passed her on the beach with the
children. Her first dislike was softened by pity when
she found he was an invalid, but she troubled herself
very little about him, and made no romances with him,
for all her dreams were of younger, nobler lovers.
Busied with her own affairs, the days though
monotonous were not unhappy. She prospered in her
work and the children soon believed in her as devoutly
as young Turks in their Prophet. She devised
amusements for herself as well as for them; walked,
bathed, drove, and romped with the little people till her
own eyes shone like theirs, her cheek grew rosy, and
her thin figure rounded with the promise of vigorous
health again. Christie was at her best that summer,
physically speaking, for sickness had refined her face,
giving it that indescribable expression which pain often
leaves upon a countenance as if in compensation for the
bloom it takes away. The frank eyes had a softer
shadow in their depths, the firm lips smiled less often,
but when it came the smile was the sweeter for the
gravity that went before, and in her voice there was a
new undertone of that subtle music, called sympathy,
which steals into the heart and nestles there. She was
unconscious of this gracious change, but others saw and
felt it, and to some a face bright with health,
intelligence, and modesty was more attractive than
mere beauty. Thanks to this and her quiet, cordial
manners, she found friends here and there to add
charms to that summer by the sea. The dashing young
men took no more notice of her than if she had been a
little gray peep on the sands; not so much, for they shot
peeps now and then, but a governess was not worth
bringing down. The fashionable belles and beauties
were not even aware of her existence, being too entirely
absorbed in their yearly husband-hunt to think of any
one but themselves and their prey. The dowagers had
more interesting topics to discuss, and found nothing in
Christie's humble fortunes worthy of a thought, for they
liked their gossip strong and highly flavored, like their
tea. But a kind-hearted girl or two found her out,
several lively old maids, as full of the romance of the
past as ancient novels, a bashful boy, three or four
invalids, and all the children, for Christie had a
motherly heart and could find charms in the plainest,
crossest baby that ever squalled. Of her old friends she
saw nothing, as her theatrical ones were off on their
vacations, Hepsey had left her place for one in another
city, and Aunt Betsey seldom wrote. But one day a
letter came, telling her that the dear old lady would
never write again, and Christie felt as if her nearest and
dearest friend was lost. She had gone away to a quiet
spot among the rocks to get over her, first grief alone,
but found it very hard to check her tears, as memory
brought back the past, tenderly recalling every kind act,
every loving word, and familiar scene. She seldom
wept, but when any thing did unseal the fountains that
lay so deep, she. cried with all her heart, and felt the
better for it. With the letter crumpled in her hand, her
head on her knees, and her hat at her feet, she was
sobbing like a child, when steps startled her, and,
looking up, she saw Mr. Fletcher regarding her with an
astonished countenance from under his big sun
umbrella. Something in the flushed, wet face, with its
tremulous lips and great tears rolling down, seemed to
touch even lazy Mr. Fletcher, for he furled his umbrella
with unusual rapidity, and came up, saying, anxiously:
"My dear Miss Devon, what's the matter? Are you hurt?
Has Mrs. S. been scolding? Or have the children been
too much for you?" " No; oh, no! it's bad news from
home," and Christie's head went down again, for a kind
word was more than she could bear just then. "Some
one ill, I fancy? I'm sorry to hear it, but you must hope
for the best, you know," replied Mr. Fletcher, really
quite exerting himself to remember and present this
well-worn consolation. "There is no hope; Aunt
Betsey's dead!" " Dear me! that's very sad." Mr.
Fletcher tried not to smile as Christie sobbed out the
old-fashioned name, but a minute afterward there were
actually tears in his eyes, for, as if won by his
sympathy, she poured out the homely little story of
Aunt Betsey's life and love, unconsciously pronouncing
the kind old lady's best epitaph in the unaffected grief
that made her broken words so eloquent. For a minute
Mr. Fletcher forgot himself, and felt as he remembered
feeling long ago, when, a warm-hearted boy, he had
comforted his little sister for a lost kitten or a broken
doll. It was a new sensation, therefore interesting and
agreeable while it lasted, and when it vanished, which it
speedily did, he sighed, then shrugged his shoulders and
wished "the girl would stop crying like a water-spout."
"It's hard, but we all have to bear it, you know; and
sometimes I fancy if half the pity we give the dead, who
don't need it, was given to the living, who do, they'd
bear their troubles more comfortably. I know I should,"
added Mr. Fletcher, returning to his own afflictions, and
vaguely wondering if any one would cry like that when
he departed this life. Christie minded little what he said,
for his voice was pitiful and it comforted her. She dried
her tears, put. back her hair, and thanked him with a
grateful smile, which gave him another pleasant
sensation; for, though young ladies showered smiles
upon him with midsummer radiance, they seemed cool
and pale beside the sweet sincerity of this one given by
a girl whose eyes were red with tender tears.
"That's right, cheer up, take a little run on the beach,
and forget all about it," he said, with a heartiness that
surprised himself as much as it did Christie. " I will,
thank you. Please don't speak of this; I'm used to
bearing my troubles alone, and time will help me to do
it cheerfully." "That's brave! If I can do any thing, let
me know; I shall be most happy." And Mr. Fletcher
evidently meant what he said. Christie gave him
another grateful "Thank you," then picked up her hat
and went away along the sands to try his prescription;
while Mr. Fletcher walked the other way, so rapt in
thought that he forgot to put up his umbrella till the end
of his aristocratic nose was burnt a deep red. That was
the beginning of it; forwhen Mr. Fletcher found a new
amusement, he usually pursued it regardless of
consequences. Christie took his pity for what it was
worth, and thought no more of that little interview, for
her heart was very heavy. But he remembered it, and,
when they met on the beach next day, wondered how
the governess would behave. She was reading as she
walked, and, with a mute acknowledgment of his nod,
tranquilly turned a page and read on without a pause, a
smile, or change of color. Mr. Fletcher laughed as he
strolled away; but Christie was all the more amusing for
her want of coquetry, and soon after he tried her again.
The great hotel was all astir one evening with bustle,
light, and music; for the young people had a hop, as an
appropriate entertainment for a melting July night. With
no taste for such folly, even if health had not forbidden
it, Mr. Fletcher lounged about the piazzas, tantalizing
the fair fowlers who spread their nets for him, and
goading sundry desperate spinsters to despair by his
erratic movements. Coming to a quiet nook, where a
long window gave a fine view of the brilliant scene, he
found Christie leaning in, with a bright, wistful face,
while her hand kept time to the enchanting music of a
waltz. "Wisely. watching the lunatics, instead of joining
in their antics," he said, sitting down with a sigh.
Christie looked around and answered, with the wistful
look still in her eyes:
" I'm very fond of that sort of insanity; but there is no
place for me in Bedlam at present." " I daresay I can
find you one, if you care to try it. I don't indulge
myself;" And Mr. Fletcher's eye went from the rose in
Christie's brown hair to the silvery folds of her best
gown, put on merely for the pleasure of wearing it
because every one else was in festival array.
She shook her head. "No, thank you. Governesses are
very kindly treated in America; but ball-rooms like that
are not for them. I enjoy looking on, fortunately; so I
have my share of fun after all." "I shan't get any
complaints out of her. Plucky little soul! I rather like
that," said Mr. Fletcher to himself; and, finding his seat
comfortable, the corner cool, and his companion
pleasant to look at, with the moonlight doing its best for
her, he went on talking for his own satisfaction. Christie
would rather have been left in peace; but fancying that
he did it out of kindness to her, and that she had done
him injustice before, she was grateful now, and exerted
herself to seem so; in which endeavor she succeeded so
well that Mr. Fletcher proved he could be a very
agreeable companion when he chose. He talked well;
and Christie was a good listener. Soon interest
conquered her reserve, and she ventured to ask a
question, make a criticism, or express an opinion in her
own simple way. Unconsciously she piqued the
curiosity of the man;. for, though he knew many lovely,
wise, and witty women, he had never chanced to meet
with one like this before; and novelty was the desire of
his life. Of course he did not find moonlight, music, and
agreeable chat as delightful as she did; but there was
something animating in the fresh face opposite,
something flattering in the eager interest she showed,
and something most attractive in the glimpses
unconsciously given him of a nature genuine in its
womanly sincerity and strength. Something about this
girl seemed to appeal to the old self, so long neglected
that he thought it dead. He could not analyze the
feeling, but was conscious of a desire to seem better
than he was as he looked into those honest eyes; to talk
well, that he might bring that frank smile to the lips that
grew either sad or scornful when he tried worldly
gossip or bitter satire; and to prove himself a man under
all the elegance and polish of the gentleman. He was
discovering then, what Christie learned when her turn
came, that fine natures seldom fail to draw out the finer
traits of those who approach them, as the little witchhazel wand, even in the hand of a child, detects and
points to hidden springs in unsuspected spots. Women
often possess this gift, and when used worthily find it as
powerful as beauty; for, if less alluring, it is more
lasting and more helpful, since it appeals, not to the
senses, but the souls of men. Christie was one of these;
and in proportion as her own nature was sound and
sweet so was its power as a touchstone for the
genuineness of others. It was this unconscious gift that
made her wonder at the unexpected kindness she found
in Mr. Fletcher, and this which made him, for an hour
or two at least, heartily wish he could live his life over
again and do it better. -After that evening Mr. Fletcher
spoke to Christie when he met her, turned and joined
her sometimes as she walked with the children, and fell
into the way of lounging near when she sat reading
aloud to an invalid friend on piazza or sea-shore.
Christie much preferred to have no auditor but kind
Miss Tudor; but finding the old lady enjoyed his chat
she resigned herself, and when he brought them new
books as well as himself, she became quite cordial.
Everybody sauntered and lounged, so no one minded
the little group that met day after day among the rocks.
Christie read aloud, while the children revelled in sand,
shells, and puddles; Miss Tudor spun endless webs of
gay silk and wool; and Mr. Fletcher, with his hat over
his eyes, lay sunning himself like a luxurious lizard, as
he watched the face that grew daily fairer in his sight,
and listened to the pleasant voice that went reading on
till all his ills and ennui seemed lulled to sleep as by a
spell. A week or two of this new caprice set Christie to
thinking. She knew that Uncle Philip was not fond of "
the darlings;" it was evident that good Miss Tudor, with
her mild twaddle and eternal knitting, was not the
attraction, so she was forced to believe that he came for
her sake alone. She laughed at herself for this fancy at
first; but not possessing the sweet unconsciousness of
those heroines who can live through three volumes with
a burning passion before their eyes, and never see it till
the proper moment comes, and Eugene goes down upon
his knees, she soon felt sure that Mr. Fletcher found her
society agreeable, and wished her to know it. Being a
mortal woman, her vanity was flattered, and she found
herself showing that she liked it by those small signs
and symbols which lovers' eyes are so quick to see and
understand, -- an artful bow on her hat, a flower in her
belt, fresh muslin gowns, and the most becoming
arrangement of her hair. "Poor man, he has so few
pleasures I'm sure I needn't grudge him such a small
one as looking at and listening to me if he likes it," she
said to herself one day, as she was preparing for her
daily stroll with unusual care. "But how will it end? If
he only wants a mild flirtation he is welcome to it; but
if he really cares for me, I must make up my mind
about it, and not deceive him. I don't believe he loves
me:
how can he? such an insignificant creature as I am."
Here she looked in the glass, and as she looked the
color deepened in her cheek, her eyes shone, and a
smile would sit upon her lips, for the reflection showed
her a very winning face under the coquettish hat put on
to captivate. "Don't be foolish, Christie! Mind what you
do, and be sure vanity doesn't delude you, for you are
only a woman, and in things of this sort we are so blind
and silly. I'll think of this possibility soberly, but I won't
flirt, and then which ever way I decide I shall have
nothing to reproach myself with." Armed with this
virtuous resolution, Christie sternly replaced the pretty
hat with her old brown one, fastened up a becoming
curl, which of late she had worn behind her ear, and put
on a pair of stout, rusty boots, much fitter for rocks and
sand than the smart slippers she was preparing to
sacrifice. Then she trudged away to Miss Tudor, bent
on being very quiet and reserved, as became a meek
and lowly governess. But, dear heart, how feeble are the
resolutions of womankind! When she found herself
sitting in her favorite nook, with the wide, blue sea
glittering below, the fresh wind making her blood dance
in her veins, and all the earth and sky so full of summer
life and loveliness, her heart would sing for joy, her
face would shine with the mere bliss of living, and
underneath all this natural content the new thought, half
confessed, yet very sweet, would whisper, "Somebody
cares for me." If she had doubted it, the expression of
Mr. Fletcher's face that morning would have dispelled
the doubt, for, as she read, he was saying to himself:
"Yes, this healthful, cheery, helpful creature is what I
want to make life pleasant. Every thing else is used up;
why not try this, and make the most of my last chance?
She does me good, and I don't seem to get tired of her. I
can't have a long life, they tell me, nor an easy one,
with the devil to pay with my vitals generally; so it
would be a wise thing to provide myself with a
goodtempered, faithful soul to take care of me. My
fortune would pay for loss of time, and my death leave
her a bonny widow. I won't be rash, but I think I'll try
it" With this mixture of tender, selfish, and regretful
thoughts in his mind, it is no wonder Mr. Fletcher's
eyes betrayed him, as he lay looking at Christie. Never
had she read so badly, for she could not keep her mind
on her book. It would wander to that new and
troublesome fancy of hers; she could not help thinking
that Mr. Fletcher must have been a handsome man
before he was so ill; wondering if his temper was very
bad, and fancying that he might prove both generous
and kind and true to one Who loved and served him
well. At this point she was suddenly checked by a slip
of the tongue that covered her with confusion. She was
reading "John Halifax," and instead of saying " Phineas
Fletcher" she said Philip, and then colored to her
forehead, and lost her place. Miss Tudor did not mind
it, but Mr. Fletcher laughed, and Christie thanked
Heaven that her face was half hidden by the old brown
hat. Nothing was said, but she was much relieved to
find that Mr. Fletcher had joined a yachting party next
day and he would be away for a week. During that
week Christie thought over the matter, and fancied she
had made up her mind. She recalled certain speeches
she had heard, and which had more weight with her
than she suspected. One dowager had said to another:
"P. F. intends to marry, I assure you, for his sister told
me so, with tears in her eyes. Men who have been gay
in their youth make very good husbands when their
wild oats are sowed. Clara could not do better, and I
should be quite content to give her to him." "Well, dear,
I should be sorry to see my Augusta his wife, for
whoever he marries will be a perfect slave to him. His
fortune would be a nice thing if he did not live long; but
even for that my Augusta shall not be sacrificed,"
returned the other matron whose Augusta had vainly
tried to captivate "P. F.," and revenged herself by
calling him "a wreck, my dear, a perfect wreck." At
another time Christie heard some girls discussing the
eligibility of several gentlemen, and Mr. Fletcher was
considered the best match among them. "You can do
any thing you like with a husband a good deal older
than yourself. He's happy with his business, his club,
and his dinner, and leaves you to do what you please;
just keep him comfortable and he'll pay your bills
without much fuss," said one young thing who had seen
life at twenty.
"I'd take him if I had the chance, just because
everybody wants him. Don't admire him a particle, but
it will make a jolly stir whenever he does marry, and I
wouldn't mind having a hand in it," said the second
budding belle. "I'd take him for the diamonds alone.
Mamma says they are splendid, and have been in the
family for ages. He won't let Mrs. S. wear them, for
they always go to the eldest son's wife. Hope he'll
choose a handsome woman who will show them off
well," said a third sweet girl, glancing at her own fine
neck. "He won't; he'll take some poky old maid who
will cuddle him when he is sick, and keep out of his
way when he is well. See if he don't." "I saw him
dawdling round with old Tudor, perhaps he means to
take her:
she's a capital nurse, got ill herself taking care of her
father, you know." "' Perhaps he's after the governess;
she's rather nice looking, though she hasn't a bit of
style." "Gracious, no! she's a dowdy thing, always
trailing round with a book and those horrid children. No
danger of his marrying her." And a derisive laugh
seemed to settle that question beyond a doubt. " Oh,
indeed! " said Christie, as the girls went trooping out of
the bath-house, where this pleasing chatter had been
carried on regardless of listeners. She called them "
mercenary, worldly, unwomanly flirts," and felt herself
much their superior. Yet the memory of their gossip
haunted her, and had its influence upon her decision,
though she thought she came to it through her own
good judgment and discretion.' If he really cares for me
I will listen, and not refuse till I know him well enough
to decide. I'm tired of being alone, and should enjoy
ease and pleasure so much. He's going abroad for the
winter, and that would be charming. I'll try not to be
worldly-minded and marry without love, but it does
look tempting to a poor soul like me." So Christie made
up her mind to accept, if this promotion was offered
her; and while she waited, went through so many
alternations of feeling, and was so harassed by doubts
and fears that she sometimes found herself wishing it
had never occurred to her. Mr. Fletcher, meantime, with
the help of many meditative cigars, was making up his
mind. Absence only proved to him how much he
needed a better time-killer than billiards, horses, or
newspapers, for the long, listless days seemed endless
without the cheerful governess to tone him up, like a
new and agreeable sort of bitters. A gradually
increasing desire to secure this satisfaction had taken
possession of him, and the thought of always having a pleasant companion, with no nerves, nonsense, or
affectation about her, was an inviting idea to a man
tired of fashionable follies and tormented with the ennui
of his own society. The gossip, wonder, and chagrin
such a step would cause rather pleased his fancy; the
excitement of trying almost the only thing as yet untried
allured him; and deeper than all the desire to forget the
past in a better future led him to Christie by the nobler
instincts that never wholly die in any soul. He wanted
her as he had wanted many other things in his life, and
had little doubt that he could have her for the asking.
Even if love was not abounding, surely his fortune,
which hitherto had procured him all he wished (except
health and happiness) could buy him a wife, when his
friends made better bargains every day. So, having
settled the question, he came home again, and every
one said the trip had done him a world of good. Christie
sat in her favorite nook one bright September morning,
with the inevitable children hunting hapless crabs in a
pool near by. A book lay on her knee, but she was not
reading; her eyes were looking far across the blue waste
before her with an eager gaze, and her face was bright
with some happy thought. The sound of approaching
steps disturbed her reverie, and, recognizing them, she
plunged into the heart of the story, reading as if utterly
absorbed, till a shadow -fell athwart the page, and the
voice she had expected to hear asked blandly:
"What book now, Miss Devon? " "'Jane Eyre,' sir."
Mr. Fletcher sat down just where her hat-brim was no
screen, pulled off his gloves, and leisurely composed
himself for a comfortable lounge. "What is your
opinion of Rochester?" he asked, presently. " Not a
very high one." " Then you think Jane was a fool to
love and try to make a saint of him, I suppose?" "I like
Jane, but never can forgive her marrying that man, as I
haven't much faith in the saints such sinners make."
"But don't you think a man who had only follies to
regret might expect a good woman td lend him a hand
and make him happy?"
"If he has wasted his life he must take the
consequences, and be content with pity and
indifference, instead of respect and love. Many good
women do' lend a hand,' as you say, and it is quite
Christian and amiable, I've no doubt; but I cannot think
it a fair bargain." Mr. Fletcher liked to make Christie
talk, for in the interest of the subject she forgot herself,
and her chief charm for him was her earnestness. But
just then the earnestness did not seem to suit him, and
he said, rather sharply:
"What hard-hearted creatures you women are
sometimes! Now, I fancied you were one of those who
wouldn't leave. a poor fellow to his fate, if his salvation
lay in your hands." " I can't say what I should do in
such a case; but it always seemed to me that a man
should have energy enough to save himself, and not
expect the weaker vessel,' as he calls her, to do it for
him," answered Christie, with a conscious look, for Mr.
Fletcher's face made her feel as if something was going
to happen. Evidently anxious to know what she would
do in aforesaid case, Mr. Fletcher decided to put one
before her as speedily as possible, so he said, in a
pensive tone, and with a wistful glance:
"You looked very happy just now when I came up. I
wish I could believe that my return had any thing to do
with it." Christie wished she could control her tell-tale
color, but finding she could not, looked hard at the sea,
and, ignoring his tender insinuation, said, with
suspicious enthusiasm:
"I was thinking of what Mrs. Saltonstall said this
morning. She asked me if I would like to go to Paris
with her for the winter. It has always been one of my
dreams to go abroad, and I do hope I shall not be
disappointed." Christie's blush seemed to be a truer
answer than her words, and, leaning a little nearer, Mr.
Fletcher said, in his most persuasive tone:
" Will you go to Paris as my governess, instead of
Charlotte's?" Christie thought her reply was all ready;
but when the moment came, she found it was not, and
sat silent, feeling as if that " Yes " would promise far
more than she could give. Mr. Fletcher had no doubt
what the answer would be, and was in no haste to get it,
for that was one of the moments that are so pleasant and
so short-lived they should be enjoyed to the uttermost.
He liked to watch her color come and go, to see the
asters on her bosom tremble with the quickened beating
of her heart, and tasted, in anticipation, the satisfaction
of the moment when that pleasant voice of hers would
falter out its grateful assent. Drawing yet nearer, he
went on, still in the persuasive tone that would have
been more lover-like if it had been less assured. "I think
I am not mistaken in believing that you care for me a
little. You must know how fond I am of you, how much
I need you, and how glad I should be to. give all I have
if I might keep you always to make my hard life happy.
May I, Christie?" "You would soon tire of me. I have
no beauty, no accomplishments, no fortune,-nothing but
my heart and my hand to give the man I marry. Is that
enough?" asked Christie, looking at him with eyes that
betrayed the hunger of an empty heart longing to be fed
with genuine food. But Mr. Fletcher did not understand
its meaning; he saw the humility in her face, thought
she was overcome by the weight of the honor he did
her, and tried to reassure her with the gracious air of
one who wishes to lighten the favor he confers. "It
might not be for some men, but it is for me, because I
want you very much. Let people say what they will, if
you say yes I am satisfied. You shall not regret it,
Christie; I'll do my best to make you happy; you shall
travel wherever I can go with you, have what you like,
if possible, and when we come back by and by, you
shall take your place in the world as my wife. You will
fill it well, I fancy, and I shall be a happy man. I've had
my own way all my life, and I mean to have it now, so
smile, and say, 'Yes, Philip,' like a sweet soul,'as you
are." But Christie did not smile, and felt no inclination
to say "Yes, Philip," for that last speech of his jarred on
her ear. The tone of unconscious condescension in it
wounded the woman's sensitive pride; self was too
apparent, and the most generous words seemed to her
like bribes., This was not the lover she had dreamed of,
the brave, true man who gave her all, and felt it could
not half repay the treasure of her innocent, first love.
This was not the happiness she had hopqd for, the
perfect faith, the glad surrender, the sweet content that
made all things possible, and changed this work-aday
world into a heaven while the joy lasted.
She had decided to say " yes," but her heart said no "
decidedly, and with instinctive loyalty she obeyed it,
even while she seemed to yield to the temptation which
appeals to three of the strongest foibles in most
women's nature, -vanity, ambition, and the love of
pleasure. "You are very kind, but you may repent it,
you know so little of me," she began, trying to soften
her refusal, but sadly hindered by a feeling of contempt.
"I know more about you than you think; but it makes no
difference," interrupted Mr. Fletcher, with a smile that
irritated Christie, even before she understood its
significance. "I thought it would at first, but I found I
couldn't get on without you, so I made up my mind to
forgive and forget that my wife had ever been an
actress." Christie had forgotten it, and it would have
been well for him if he had held his tongue. Now she
understood the tone that had chilled her, the smile that
ahgered her, and Mr. Fletcher's fate was settled in the
drawing of a breath. "Who told you that?" she asked,
quickly, while every nerve tingled with the
mortification of being found out then and there in the
one secret of her life. "I saw you dancing on the beach
with the children one day, and it reminded me of an
actress I had once seen. I should not have remembered
it but for the accident which impressed it on my mind.
Powder, paint, and costume made Miss Douglas' a very
different woman from Miss Devon, but a few cautious
inquiries settled the matter, and I then understood
where you got that slight souppon of dash and daring
which makes our demure governess so charming when
with me." As he spoke, Mr. Fletcher smiled again, and
kissed his hand to her with a dramatic little gesture that
exasperated Christie beyond measure. She would not
make light of it, as he did, and submit to be forgiven for
a past she was not ashamed of. Heartily wishing she
had been frank at first, she resolved to have it out now,
and accept nothing Mr. Fletcher offered her, not even
silence. "Yes," she said, as steadily as she could, " I was
an actress for three years, and though it was a hard life
it was an honest one, and I'm not ashamed of it. I ought
to have told Mrs. Saltonstall, but I was warned that if I
did it would be difficult to find a place, people are so
prejudiced. I sincerely regret it now, and shall tell her at
once, so you may save yourself the trouble."' My dear
girl, I never dreamed of telling any one! " cried Mr.
Fletcher in an injured tone. "I beg you won't speak, but
trust me, and let it be a little secret between us two. I
assure you it makes no difference to me, for I should
marry an opera dancer if I chose, so forget it, as I do,
and set my mind at rest upon the other point. I'm still
waiting for my answer, you know." "It is ready." "A
kind one, I'm sure. What is it, Christie?" "No, I thank
you." " But you are not in earnest?" "Perfectly so." Mr.
Fletcher got up suddenly and set his back against the
rock, saying in a tone of such unaffected surprise and
disappointment that her heart reproached her:
"No, I THANK YOU..'" Am I to understand that as
your final answer, Miss Devon?" "Distinctly and
decidedly my final answer, Mr. Fletcher." Christie tried
to speak kindly, but she was angry with herself and
him, and unconsciously showed it both in face and
voice, for she was no actress off the stage, and wanted
to be very true just then as a late atonement for that
earlier want of candor.
A quick change passed over Mr. Fletcher's face; his
cold eyes kindled with an angry spark, his lips were
pale with anger, and his voice was very, bitter, as he
slowly said:
"I've made many blunders in my life, and this is one of
the greatest; for I believed in a woman, was fool
enough to care for her with the sincerest love I ever
knew, and fancied that she would be grateful for the
sacrifice I made." He got no further, for Christie rose
straight up and answered him with all the indignation
she felt burning in her face and stirring the voice she
tried in vain to keep as steady as his own. "The sacrifice
would not have been all yours, for it is what we are, not
what we have, that makes one human being superior to
another. I am as well-born as you in spite of my
poverty; my life, I think, has been a better one than
yours; my heart, I know, is fresher, and my memory has
fewer faults and follies to reproach me with. What can
you give me but money and position in return for the
youth and freedom I should sacrifice in marrying you?
Not love, for you count the cost of your bargain, as no
true lover could, and you reproach me for deceit when
in your heart you know you only cared for me because I
can amuse and serve you. I too deceived myself, I too
see my mistake, and I decline the honor you would do
me, since it is so great in your eyes that you must
remind me of it as you offer it." In the excitement of the
moment Christie unconsciously spoke with something
of her old dramatic fervor in voice and gesture; Mr.
Fletcher saw it, and, while he never had admired her so
much, could not resist avenging himself for the words
that angered him, the more deeply for their truth.
Wounded vanity and baffled will can make an
ungenerous man as spiteful as a woman; and Mr.
Fletcher proved it then, for he saw where Christie's
pride was sorest, and touched the wound with the skill
of a resentful nature. As she paused, he softly clapped
his hands, saying, with a smile that made her eyes flash:
"Very well done! infinitely superior to your
'Woffington,' Miss Devon. I am disappointed in the
woman, but I make my compliment to the actress, and
leave the stage free for another and a more successful
Romeo." Still smiling, he bowed and went away
apparently quite calm and much amused, but a more
wrathful, disappointed man never crossed those sands
than the one who kicked his dog and swore at himself
for a fool that day when no one saw him. For a minute
Christie stood and watched him, then, feeling that she
must either laugh or cry, wisely chose the former vent
for her emotions, and sat down feeling inclined to look
at the whole scene from a ludicrous point of view. "My
second love affair is a worse failure than my first, for I
did pity poor Joe, but this man is detestable, and I never
will forgive him that last insult. I dare say I was
absurdly tragical, I'm apt to be when very angry, but
what a temper he has got! The white, cold kind, that
smoulders and stabs, instead of blazing up and being
over in a minute. Thank Heaven, I'm not his wife! Well,
I've made an enemy and lost my place, for of course
Mrs. Saltonstall won't keep me after this awful
discovery. I'll tell her at once, for I will have no' little
secrets' with him. No Paris either, and that's the worst
of it all! Never mind, I haven't sold my liberty for the
Fletcher diamonds, and that's a comfort. Now a short
scene with my lady and then exit governess." But
though she laughed, Christie felt troubled at the part she
had played in this affair; repented of her worldly
aspirations; confessed her vanity; accepted her
mortification and disappointment as a just punishment
for her sins; and yet at the bottom of her heart she did
enjoy it mightily. She tried to spare Mr. Fletcher in her
interview with his sister, and only betrayed her own
iniquities. But, to her surprise, Mrs. Saltonstall, though
much disturbed at the discovery, valued Christie as a
governess, and respected her as a woman, so she was
willing to bury the past, she said, and still hoped Miss
Devon would remain. Then Christie was forced to tell
her why it was impossible for her to do so; and, in her
secret soul, she took a naughty satisfaction in demurely
mentioning that she had refused my lord. Mrs.
Saltonstall's consternation was comical, for she had
been so absorbed in her own affairs she had suspected
nothing; and horror fell upon her when she learned how
near dear Philip had been to the fate from which she
jealously guarded him, that his property might one day
benefit the darlings. In a moment every thing was
changed; and it was evident to Christie that the sooner
she left the better it Would suit madame. The
proprieties were preserved to the end, and Mrs.
Saltonstall treated her with unusual respect, for she had
come to honor, and also conducted herself in a most
praiseworthy manner. How she could refuse a Fletcher
visibly amazed the lady; but she forgave the slight, and
gently insinuated that "my brother" was, perhaps, only
amusing himself. Christie was but too glad to' be off;
and when Mrs. Saltonstall asked when she would prefer
to leave, promptly replied, "To-morrow," received her
salary, which was forthcoming with unusual
punctuality, and packed her trunks with delightful
rapidity. As the family was to leave in a week, her
sudden departure caused no surprise to the few who
knew her, and with kind farewells to such of her
summer friends as still remained, she went to bed that
night all ready for an early start. She saw nothing more
of Mr. Fletcher that day, but the sound of excited voices
in the drawing-room assured her that madame was
having it out with her brother; and with truly feminine
inconsistency Christie hoped that she would not be too
hard upon the poor man, for, after all, it was kind of
him to overlook the actress, and ask the governess to
share his good things with him. She did not repent, but
she got herself to sleep, imagining a bridal trip to Paris,
and dreamed so delightfully of lost splendors that the
awakening was rather blank, the future rather cold and
hard. She was early astir, meaning to take the first boat
and so escape all disagreeable rencontres, and having
kissed the children in their little beds, with tender
promises not to forget them, she took a hasty breakfast
and stepped into the carriage waiting at the door. The
sleepy waiters stared, a friendly housemaid nodded, and
Miss Walker, the hearty English lady who did her ten
miles a day, cried out, as she tramped by, blooming and
bedraggled:
"Bless me, are you off?" "Yes, thank Heaven!",
answered Christie; but as she spoke Mr. Fletcher came
down the steps looking as wan and heavy-eyed as if a
sleepless night had been added to his day's defeat.
Leaning in at the window, he asked abruptly, but with a
look she never could forget:
"Will nothing change your answer, Christie?-"
"Nothing." His eyes said, "Forgive me," but his lips
only said, "Good-by," and the carriage rolled away.
Then, being a woman, two great tears fell on the hand
still red with the lingering grasp he had given it, and
Christie said, as pitifully as if she loved him:
"He has got a heart, after all, and perhaps I might have
been glad to fill it if he had only shown it to me sooner.
Now it is too late."
Chapter V
Companion.
BEFORE she had time to find a new situation, Christie
received a note from Miss Tudor, saying that hearing
she had left Mrs. Saltonstall she wanted to offer her the
place of companion to an invalid girl, where the duties
were light and the compensation large. "How kind of
her to think of me," said Christie, gratefully. "I'll go at
once and do my best to secure it, for it must be a good
thing or she wouldn't recommend it." Away went
Christie to the address sent by Miss Tudor, and as she
waited at the door she thought:
" What a happy family the Carrols must be!" for the
house was one of an imposing block in a West End
square, which had its own little park where a fountain
sparkled in the autumn sunshine, and pretty children
played among the fallen leaves. Mrs. Carrol was a
stately woman, still beautiful in spite of her fifty years.
But though there were few lines on her forehead, few
silver threads in the dark hair that lay smoothly over it,
and a gracious smile showed the fine teeth, an
indescribable expression of unsubmissive sorrow
touched the whole face, betraying that life had brought
some heavy cross, from which her wealth could
purchase no release, for which her pride could find no
effectual screen. She looked at Christie with a searching
eye, listened attentively when she spoke, and seemed
testing her with covert care as if the place she was to fill
demanded some unusual gift or skill. "Miss Tudor tells
me that you read aloud well, sing sweetly, possess a
cheerful temper, and the quiet, patient ways which are
peculiarly grateful to an invalid," began Mrs. Carrol,
with that keen yet wistful gaze, and an anxious accent
in her voice that went to Christie's heart. "Miss Tudor is
very kind to think so well of me and my few
accomplishments. I have never been with an invalid,
but I think I can promise to be patient, willing, and
cheerful. My own experience of illness has taught me
how to sympathize with others and love to lighten pain.
I shall be very glad to try if you think I have any fitness
for the place." "I do," and Mrs. Carrol's face softened as
she spoke, for something in Christie's words or manner
seemed to please her. Then slowly, as if the task was a
hard one, she added:
"My daughter has been very ill and is still weak and
nervous. I must hint to you that the loss of one very
dear to her was the cause of the illness and the
melancholy which now oppresses her. Therefore we
must avoid any thing that can suggest or recall this
trouble. She cares for nothing as yet, will see no one,
and prefers to live alone. She is still so feeble this is but
natural; yet solitude is bad for her, and her physician
thinks that a new face might rouse her, and the society
of one in no way connected with the painful past might
interest and do her good. You see it is a little difficult to
find just what we want, for a young companion is best,
yet must be discreet and firm, as few young people
are." Fancying from Mrs. Carrol's manner that Miss
Tudor had said more in her favor than had been
repeated to her, Christie in a few plain words told her
little story, resolving to have no concealments here, and
feeling that perhaps her experiences might have given
her more firmness and discretion than many women of
her age possessed. Mrs. Carrol seemed to find it so; the
anxious look lifted a little as she listened, and when
Christie ended she said, with a sigh of relief:
" Yes, I think Miss Tudor is right, and you are the one
we want. Come and try it for a week and then we can
decide. Can you begin to-day?" she added, as Christie
rose. "Every hour is precious, for my poor girl's sad
solitude weighs on my heart, and this is my one hope."
" I will stay with pleasure," answered Christie, thinking
Mrs. Carrol's anxiety excessive, yet pitying the mother's
pain, for something in her face suggested the idea that
she reproached herself in some way for her daughter's
state. With secret gratitude that she had dressed with
care, Christie took off her things and followed Mrs.
Carrol upstairs. Entering a room in what seemed to be a
wing of the great house, they found an old woman
sewing. "How is Helen to-day, Nurse? " asked Mrs.
Carrol, pausing.
"Poorly, ma'am. I've been in every hour, but she only
says:' Let me be quiet,' and lies looking up at the picture
till it's fit to break your heart to see her," answered the
woman, with a shake of the head. "I have brought Miss
Devon to sit with her a little while. Doctor advises it,
and I fancy the experiment may succeed if we can only
amuse the dear child, and make her forget herself and
her troubles." "As you please, ma'am," said the old
woman, looking with little favor at the new-comer, for
the good soul was jealous of any interference between
herself and the child she had tended for years. "I won't
disturb her, but you shall take Miss Devon in and tell
Helen mamma sends her love, and hopes she will make
an effort for all our sakes." "Yes, ma'am." ":Go, my
dear, and do your best." With these words Mrs. Carrol
hastily left the room, and Christie followed Nurse. A
quick glance showed her that she was in the daintily
furnished boudoir of a rich man's daughter, but before
she could take a second look her eyes were arrested by
the occupant of this pretty place, and she forgot all else.
On a low luxurious couch lay a girl, so beautiful and
pale and still, that for an instant Christie thought her
dead or sleeping. She was neither, for at the sound of a
voice the great eyes opened wide, darkening and
dilating with a strange expression as they fell on the
unfamiliar face. "Nurse, who is that? I told you I would
see no one. I'm too ill to be so worried," she said, in an
imperious tone.
" Yes, dear, I know, but your mamma wished you to
make an effort. Miss Devon is to sit with you and try to
cheer you up a bit," said the old woman in a dissatisfied
tone, that contrasted strangely with the tender way in
which she stroked the beautiful disordered hair that
hung about the girl's shoulders. Helen knit her brows
and looked most ungracious, but evidently tried to be
civil, for with a courteous wave of her hand toward an
easy chair in the sunny window she said, quietly:
"Please sit down, Miss Devon, and excuse me for a
little while. I've had a bad night, and am too tired to talk
just yet. There are books of all sorts, or the
conservatory if you like it better." "Thank you. I'll read
quietly till you want me. Then I shall be very glad to do
any thing I can for you." With that Christie retired to
the big chair, and fell to reading the first book she took
up, a good deal embarrassed by her reception, and very
curious to know what would come next. The old
woman went away after folding the down coverlet
carefully over her darling's feet, and Helen seemed to
go to sleep. For a time the room was very still; the fire
burned softly on the marble hearth, the sun shone
warmly on velvet carpet and rich hangings, the delicate
breath of flowers blew in through the half-open door
that led to a gay little conservatory, and nothing but the
roll of a distant carriage broke the silence now and then.
Christie's eyes soon wandered from her book to the
lovely face and motionless figure on the couch. Just
opposite, in a recess, hung the portrait of a young and
handsome man, and below it stood a vase of flowers, a
graceful Roman lamp, and several little relics, as if it
were the shrine where some dead love was mourned
and worshipped still. As she looked from the living
face, so pale and so pathetic in its quietude, to the
painted one so full of color, strength, and happiness, her
heart ached for poor Helen, and her eyes were wet with
tears of pity. A sudden movement on the couch gave
her no time to hide them, and as she hastily looked
down upon het book a treacherous drop fell glittering
on the page. "What have you there so interesting? "
asked Helen, in that softly imperious tone of hers. "Don
Quixote," answered Christie, too much abashed to have
her wits about her. Helen smiled a melancholy smile as
she rose, saying wearily:
" They gave me that to make me laugh, but I did not
find it funny; neither was it sad enough to make me cry
as you do." "I was not reading, I was" -- there Christie
broke down, and could have cried with vexation at the
bad beginning she had made. But that involuntary tear
was better balm to Helen than the most perfect tact, the
most brilliant conversation. It touched and won her
without words, for sympathy works miracles. Her
whole face changed, and her mournful eyes grew soft as
with the gentle freedom of a child she lifted Christie's
downcast face and said, with a falter in her voice:
" I know you were pitying me. Well, I need pity, and
from you I'll take it, because you don't force it on me.
Have you been ill and wretched too? I think so, else you
would never care to come and shut yourself up here
with me!" "I have been ill, and I know how hard it is to
get one's spirits back again. I've had my troubles, too,
but not heavier than I could bear, thank God." " What
made you ill? Would you mind telling me about it? I
seem to fancy hearing other people's woes, though it
can't make mine seem lighter." "A piece of the Castle of
the Sun fell on my head and nearly killed me," and
Christie laughed in spite of herself at the astonishment
in Helen's face. "I was an actress once; your mother
knows and didn't mind," she added, quickly. "I'm glad
of that. I used to wish I could be one, I was so fond of
the theatre. They should have consented, it would have
given me something to do, and, however hard it is, it
couldn't be worse than this." Helen spoke vehemently
and an excited flush rose to her white cheeks; then she
checked herself and dropped into a chair, saying,
hurriedly:
"Tell about it:
don't let me think; it's bad for me." Glad to be set to
work, and bent on retrieving her first mistake, Christie
plunged into her theatrical experiences and talked away
in her most lively style. People usually get eloquent
when telling their own stories, and true tales are always
the most interesting. Helen listened at first with a halfabsent air, but presently grew more attentive, and when
the catastrophe came sat erect, quite absorbed in the
interest of this glimpse behind the curtain. Charmed
with her success, Christie branched off right and left,
stimulated by questions, led on by suggestive incidents,
and generously supplied by memory. Before she knew
it, she was telling her whole history in the most
expansive manner, for women soon get sociable
together, and Helen's interest flattered her immensely.
Once she made her laugh at some droll trifle, and as if
the unaccustomed sound had startled her, old nurse
popped in her head; but seeing nothing amiss retired,
wondering what on earth that girl could be doing to
cheer up Miss Helen so.
" Tell about your lovers:
you must have had some; actresses always do. Happy
women, they can love as they like! " said Helen, with
the inquisitive frankness of an invalid for whom
etiquette has ceased to exist. Remembering in time that
this was a forbidden subject, Christie smiled and shook
her head. "I had a few, but one does not tell those
secrets, you know." Evidently disappointed, and a little
displeased at being reminded of her want of goodbreeding, Helen got up and began to wander restlessly
about the room. Presently, as if wishing to atone for her
impatience, she bade Christie come and see her flowers.
Following her, the new companion found herself in a
little world where perpetual summer reigned. Vines
curtained the roof, slender shrubs and trees made leafy
walls on either side, flowers bloomed above and below,
birds carolled in half-hidden prisons, aquariums and
ferneries stood all about, and the soft plash of a little
fountain made pleasant music as it rose and fell. Helen
threw herself wearily down on a pile of cushions that
lay beside the basin, and beckoning Christie to sit near,
said, as she pressed her hands to her hot forehead and
looked up with a distressful brightness in the haggard
eyes that seemed to have no rest in them:
"Please sing to me; any humdrum air will do. I am so
tired, and yet I cannot sleep. If my head would only
stop this dreadful thinking and let me forget one hour it
would do me so much good." "I know the feeling, and
I'll try what Lucy used to do to quiet me. Put your poor
head in my lap, dear, and lie quite still while I cool and
comfort it."
Obeying like a worn-out child, Helen lay motionless
while Christie, dipping her fingers in the basin, passed
the wet tips softly to and fio across the hot forehead,
and the thin temples where the pulses throbbed so fast.
And while she soothed she sang the "Land o' the Leal,"
and sang it well; for the tender words, the plaintive air
were dear to her, because her mother loved and sang it
to her years ago. Slowly the heavy eyelids drooped,
slowly the lines of pain were smoothed away from the
broad brow, slowly the restless hands grew still, and
Helen lay asleep. So intent upon her task was Christie,
that she forgot herself till the discomfort of her position
reminded her that she had a body. Fearing to wake the
poor girl in her arms, she tried to lean against the basin,
but could not reach a cushion to lay upon the cold stone
ledge. An unseen hand supplied the want, and, looking
round, she saw two young men standing behind her.
Helen's brothers, without doubt; for, though utterly
unlike in expression, some of the family traits were
strongly marked in both. The elder wore the dress of a
priest, had a pale, ascetic face, with melancholy eyes,
stern mouth, and the absent air of one who leads an
inward life. The younger had a more attractive face, for,
though bearing marks of dissipation, it betrayed a
generous, ardent nature, proud and wilful, yet lovable in
spite of all defects. He was very boyish still, and plainly
showed how much he felt, as, with a hasty nod to
Christie, he knelt down beside his sister, saying, in a
whisper:
"Look at her, Augustine! so beautiful, so quiet What a
comfort it is to see her like herself again."
" Ah, yes; and but for the sin of it, I could find it in my
heart to wish she might never wake! " returned the
other, gloomily. "Don't say that! How could we live
without her?" Then, turning to Christie, the younger
said, in a friendly tone:
" You must be very tired; let us lay her on the sofa. It is
very damp here, and if she sleeps long you will faint
from weariness." Carefully lifting her, the brothers
carried the sleeping girl into her room, and laid her
down. She sighed as her head touched the pillow, and
her arm clung to Harry's neck, as if she felt his nearness
even in sleep. He put his cheek to hers, and lingered
over her with an affectionate solicitude beautiful to see.
Augustine stood silent, grave and cold as if he had done
with human ties, yet found it hard to sever this one, for
he stretched his hand above his sister as if he blessed
her, then, with another grave bow to Christie, went
away as noiselessly as he had come. But Harry kissed
the sleeper tenderly, whispered, " Be kind to her," with
an imploring voice, and hurried from the room as if to
hide the feeling that he must not show. A few minutes
later the nurse brought in a note from Mrs. Carrol. "My
son tells me that Helen is asleep, and you look very
tired. Leave her to Hester, now; you have done enough
to-day, so let me thank you heartily, and send you home
for a quiet night before you continue your good work
to-morrow." Christie went, found a carriage waiting for
her, and drove home very happy at the success of her
first attempt at companionship.
The next day she entered upon the new duties with
interest and good-will, for this was work in which heart
took part, as well as head and hand. Many things
surprised, and some things perplexed her, as she came
to know the family better. But she discreetly held her
tongue, used her eyes, and did her best to please. Mrs.
Carrol seemed satisfied, often thanked her for her
faithfulness to Helen, but seldom visited her daughter,
never seemed surprised or grieved that the girl
expressed no wish to see her; and, though her handsome
face always wore its gracious smile, Christie soon felt
very sure that it was a mask put on to hide some heavy
sorrow from a curious world. Augustine never came
except when Helen was asleep:
then, like a shadow, he passed in and out, always silent,
cold, and grave, but in his eyes the gloom of some
remorseful pain that prayers and penances seemed
powerless to heal. Harry came every day, and no matter
how melancholy, listless, or irritable his sister might be,
for him she always had a smile, an affectionate
greeting, a word of praise, or a tender warning against
the reckless spirit that seemed to possess him. The love
between them was very strong, and Christie found a
never-failing pleasure in watching them together, for
then Helen showed what she once had been, and Harry
was his best self. A boy still, in spite of his one-andtwenty years, he seemed to feel that Helen's room was a
safe refuge from the temptations that beset one of his
thoughtless and impetuous nature. Here he came to
confess his faults and follies with the frankness which
is half sad, half comical, and wholly charming in a
good-hearted young scatter-brain. Here he brought gay
gossip, lively descriptions, and masculine criticisms of
the world he moved in. All his hopes and plans, joys
and sorrows, successes and defeats, he told to Helen.
And she, poor soul, in this one happy love of her sad
life, forgot a little the burden of despair that darkened
all the world to her. For his sake she smiled, to him she
talked when others got no word from her, and Harry's
salvation was the only duty that she owned or tried to
fulfil. A younger sister was away at school, but the
others seldom spoke of her, and Christie tired herself
with wondering why Bella never wrote to Helen, and
why Harry seemed to have nothing but a gloomy sort of
pity to bestow upon the blooming girl whose picture
hung in the great drawing-room below. It was a very
quiet winter, yet a very pleasant one to Christie, for she
felt herself loved and trusted, saw that she suited, and
believed that she was doing good, as women best love
to do it, by bestowing sympathy and care with generous
devotion. Helen and Harry loved her like an elder sister;
Augustine showed that he was grateful, and Mrs. Carrol
sometimes forgot to put on her mask before one who
seemed fast becoming confidante as well as companion.
In the spring the family went to the fine old country
house just out of town, and here Christie and her charge
led a freer, happier life. Walking and driving, boating
and gardening, with pleasant days on the wide terrace,
where Helen swung idly in her hammock, while
Christie read or talked to her; and summer twilights
beguiled with music, or the silent reveries more
eloquent than speech, which real friends may enjoy to
gether, and find the sweeter for the mute
companionship. Harry was with them, and devoted to
his sister, who seemed slowly to be coming out of her
sad gloom, won by patient tenderness and the cheerful
influences all about her. Christie's heart was full of
pride and satisfaction, as she saw the altered face, heard
the tone of interest in that once hopeless voice, and felt
each day more sure that Helen had outlived the loss that
seemed to have broken her heart. Alas, for Christie's
pride, for Harry's hope, and for poor Helen's bitter fate!
When all was brightest, the black shadow came; when
all looked safest, danger was at hand; and when the past
seemed buried, the ghost which haunted it returned, for
the punishment of a broken law is as inevitable as
death. When settled in town again Bella came home, a
gay, young girl, who should have brought sunshine and
happiness into her home. But from the hour she
returned a strange anxiety seemed to possess the others.
Mrs. Carrol watched over her with sleepless care, was
evidently full of maternal pride in the lovely creature,
and began to dream dreams about her future. She
seemed to wish to keep the sisters apart, and said to
Christie, as if to explain this wish:
"Bella was away when Helen's trouble and illness came,
she knows very little of it, and I do not want her to be
saddened by the knowledge. Helen cares only for Hal,
and Bella is too young to be of any use to my poor girl;
therefore the less they see of each other the better for
both. I am sure you agree with me? " she added, with
that covert scrutiny which Christie had often felt before.
She could but acquiesce in the mother's decision, and
devote herself more faithfully than ever to Helen, who
soon needed all her care and patience, for a terrible
unrest grew upon her, bringing sleepless nights again,
moody days, and all the old afflictions with redoubled
force. Bella " came out" and began her career as a
beauty and a belle most brilliantly. Harry was proud of
her, but seemed jealous of other men's admiration for
his charming sister, and would excite both Helen and
himself over the flirtations into which "that child " as
they called her, plunged with all the zest of a lighthearted girl whose head was a little turned with sudden
aid excessive adoration. In vain Christie begged Harry
not to report these things, in vain she hinted that Bella
had better not come to show herself to Helen night after
night in all the dainty splendor of her youth and beauty;
in vain she asked Mrs. Carrol to let her go away to
some quieter place with Helen, since she never could be
persuaded to join in any gayety at home or abroad. All
seemed wilful, blind, or governed by the fear of the
gossiping world. So the days rolled on till an event
occurred which enlightened Christie, with startling
abruptness, and showed her the skeleton that haunted
this unhappy family. Going in one morning to Helen
she found hei walking to and fro as she often walked of
late, with hurried steps and excited face as if driven by
some power beyond her control.
" Good morning, dear. I'm so sorry you had a restless
night, and wish you had sent for me. Will you come out
now for an early drive? It's a lovely day, and your
mother thinks it would do you good," began Christie,
troubled by the state in which she found the girl. But as
she spoke Helen turned on her, crying passionately:
" My mother! don't speak of her to me, I hate her! " "
Oh, Helen, don't say that. Forgive and forget if she has
displeased you, and don't exhaust yourself by brooding
over it. Come, dear, and let us soothe ourselves with a
little music. I want to hear that new song again, though
I can never hope to sing it as you do." "Sing!" echoed
Helen, with a shrill laugh, "you don't know what you
ask. Could you sing when your heart was heavy with
the knowledge of a sin about to be committed by those
nearest to you? Don't try to quiet me, I must talk
whether you listen or not; I shall go frantic if I don't tell
some one; all the world will know it soon. Sit down, I'll
not hurt you, but don't thwart me or you'll be sorry for
it." Speaking with a vehemence that left her breathless,
Helen thrust Christie down upon a seat, and went on
with an expression in her face that bereft the listener of
power to move or speak. "Harry has just told me of it;
he was very angry, and I saw it, and made him tell me.
Poor boy, he can keep nothing from me. I've been
dreading it, and now it's coming. You don't know it,
then? Young Butler is in love with Bella, and no one
has prevented it. Think how wicked when such a curse
is on us all." The question, "What. curse?" rose
involuntarily to Christie's lips, but did not pass them
for, as if she read the thought, Helen answered it in a
whisper that made the blood tingle in the other's veins,
so full of ominous suggestion was it. " The curse of
insanity I mean. We are all mad, or shall be; we come
of a mad race, and for years we have gone recklessly on
bequeathing this awful inheritance to our descendants.
It should end with us, we are the last; none of us should
marry; none dare think of it but Bella, and she knows
nothing. She must be told, she must be kept from the
sin of deceiving her lover, the agony of seeing her
children become what I am, and what we all may be."
Here Helen wrung her hands and paced the room in
such a paroxysm of impotent despair that Christie sat
bewildered and aghast, wondering if this were true, or
but the fancy of a troubled brain. Mrs. Carrol's face and
manner returned to her with sudden vividness, so did
Augustine's gloomy expression, and the strange wish
uttered over his sleeping sister long ago. Harry's
reckless, aimless life might be explained in this way;
and all that had perplexed her through that year. Every
thing confirmed the belief that this tragical assertion
was true, and Christie covered up her face, murmuring,
with an involuntary shiver:
"My God, how terrible! " Helen came and stood before
her with such grief and penitence in her countenance
that for a moment it con, quered the despair that had
broken bounds.
"We should have told you this at first; I longed to do it,
but I was afraid you'd go and leave me. I was so lonely,
so miserable, Christie. I could not give you up when I
had learned to love you; and I did learn very soon, for
no wretched creature ever needed help and comfort
more than I. For your sake I tried to be quiet, to control
my shattered nerves, and hide my desperate thoughts.
You helped me very much, and your unconsciousness
made me doubly watchful. Forgive me; don't desert me
now, for the old horror may be coming back, and I want
you more than ever." Too much moved to speak,
Christie held out her hands, with a face full of pity,
love, and grief. Poor Helen clung to them as if her only
help lay there, and for a moment was quite still. But not
long; the old anguish was too sharp -- to be borne in
silence; the relief of confidence once tasted was too
great to be denied; and, breaking loose, she went to and
fro again, pouring out the bitter secret which had been
weighing upon heart and conscience for a year. "You
wonder that I hate my mother; let me tell you why.
When she was beautiful and young she married,
knowing the sad history of my father's family. He was
rich, she poor and proud; ambition made her wicked,
and she did it after being warned that, though he might
escape, his children were sure to inherit the curse, for
when one generation goes free it falls more heavily
upon the rest. She knew it all, and yet she married him.
I have her to thank for all I suffer, and I cannot love her
though she is my mother. It may be wrong to say these
things, but they are true; they burn in my heart, and I
must speak out; for I tell you there comes a time when
children judge their parents as men and women, in spite
of filial duty, and woe to those whose actions change
affection and respect to hatred or contempt." The bitter
grief, the solemn fervor of her words, both touched and
awed Christie too much for speech. Helen had passed
beyond the bounds of ceremony, fear, or shame:
her hard lot, her dark experience, set her apart, and gave
her the right to utter the bare truth. To her heart's core
Christie felt that warning; and for the first time saw
what many never see or wilfully deny, the awful
responsibility that lies on every man and woman's soul
forbidding them to entail upon the innocent the burden
of their own infirmities, the curse that surely follows
their own sins. Sad and stern, as an accusing angel, that
most unhappy daughter spoke:
"If ever a woman had cause to repent, it is my mother;
but she will not, and till she does, God has forsaken us.
Nothing can subdue her pride, not even an affliction
like mine. She hides the truth; she hides me, and lets the
world believe I am dying of consumption; not a word
about insanity, and no one knows the secret beyond
ourselves, but doctor, nurse, and you. This is why I was
not sent away, but for a year was shut up in that room
yonder where the door is always locked. If you look in,
you'll see barred windows, guarded fire, muffled walls,
and other sights to chill your blood, when you
remember all those dreadful things were meant for me."
"Don't speak,' don't think of them! Don't talk any more;
let me do something to comfort you, for my heart is
broken with all this," cried Christie, panic stricken at
the picture Helen's words had conjured up. "I must go
on! There is no rest for me till I have tried to lighten
this burden by sharing it with you. Let me talk, let me
wear myself out, then you shall help and comfort me, if
there is any help and comfort for such as I. Now I can
tell you all about my Edward, and you'll listen, though
mamma forbade it. Three years ago my father died, and
we came here. I was well then, and oh, how happy!"
Clasping her hands above her head, she stood like a
beautiful, pale image of despair,; tearless and mute, but
with such a world of anguish in the eyes lifted to the
smiling picture opposite that it needed no words to tell
the story of a broken heart. " How I loved him!" she
said, softly, while her whole face glowed for an instant
with the light and warmth of a deathless passion. "How
I loved him, and how he loved me! Too well to let me
darken both our lives with a remorse which would
come too late for a just atonement. I thought him cruel
then, -- I bless him for it now. I had far rather be the
innocent sufferer I am, than a wretched woman like my
mother. I shall never see him any more, but I know he
thinks of me far away in India, and when I die one
faithful heart will remember me." There her voice
faltered and failed, and for a moment the fire of her
eyes was quenched in tears. Christie thought the
reaction had come, and rose to go and comfort her. But
instantly Helen's hand was on her shoulder, and
pressing her back into her seat, she said, almost
fiercely:
"I'm not done yet; you must hear the whole, and help
me to save Bella. We knew nothing of the blight that
hung over us till father told Augustine upon his deathbed. August, urged by mother, kept it to himself, and
went away to bear it as he could. He should have
spoken out and saved me in time. But not till he came
home and found me engaged did he have courage to
warn me of the fate in store for us. So Edward tore
himself away, although it broke his heart, and I -do you
see that?" With a quick gesture she rent open her dress,
and on her bosom Christie saw a scar that made her turn
yet paler than before. "Yes, I tried to kill myself; but
they would not let me die, so the old tragedy of our
house begins again. August became a priest, hoping to
hide his calamity and expiate his father's sin by endless
penances and prayers. Harry turned reckless; for what
had he to look forward to? A short life, and a gay one,
he says, and when his turn comes he will spare himself
long suffering, as I tried to do it. Bella was never told;
she was so young they kept her ignorant of all they
could, even the knowledge of my state. She was long
away at school, but now she has come home, now she
has learned to love, and is going blindly as I went,
because no one tells her what she must know soon or
late. Mamma will not. August hesitates, remembering
me. Harry swears he will speak out, but I implore him
not to do it, for he will be too violent; and I am
powerless. I never knew about this man till Hal told me
to-day. Bella only comes in for a moment, and I have
no chance to tell her she must not love him."
Pressing her hands to her temples, Helen resumed her
restless march again, but suddenly broke out more
violently than before:
"Now do you wonder why I am half frantic? Now will
you ask me to sing and smile, and sit calmly by while
this wrong goes on? You have done much for me, and
God will bless you for it, but you cannot keep me sane.
Death is the only cure for a mad Carrol, and I'm so
young, so strong, it will be long in coming unless I
hurry it." She clenched her hands, set her teeth, and
looked about her as if ready for any desperate act that
should set her free from the dark and dreadful future
that lay before her. For a moment Christie feared and
trembled; then pity conquered fear. She forgot herself,
and only remembered this poor girl, so hopeless,
helpless, and afflicted. Led by a sudden impulse, she
put both arms about her, and held her close with a
strong but silent tenderness better than any bonds. At
first, Helen seemed unconscious of it, as she stood rigid
and motionless, with her wild eyes dumbly imploring
help of earth and heaven. Suddenly both strength and
excitement seemed to leave her, and she would have
fallen but for the living, loving prop that sustained her.
Still silent, Christie laid her down, kissed her white lips,
and busied herself about her till she looked up quite
herself again, but so wan and weak, it was pitiful to see
her. "It'a over now," she whispered, with a desolate
sigh.'Sing to me, and keep the evil spirit quiet for a little
while. To-morrow, if I'm strong enough, we'll talk
about poor little Bella." And Christie sang, with tears
dropping fast upon the keys, that made a soft
accompaniment to the sweet old hymns which soothed
this troubled soul as David's music brought repose to
Saul. When Helen slept at last from sheer exhaustion,
Christie executed the resolution she had made as soon
as the excitement of that stormy scene was over. She
went straight to Mrs. Carrol's room, and, undeterred by
the presence of her sons, told all that had passed. They
were evidently not unprepared for it, thanks to old
Hester, who had overheard enough of Helen's wild
words to know that something was amiss, and had
reported accordingly; but none of them had ventured to
interrupt the interview, lest Helen should be driven to
desperation as before. "Mother, Helen is right; we
should speak out, and not hide this bitter fact any
longer. The world will pity us, and we must bear the
pity, but it would condemn us for deceit, and we should
deserve the condemnation if we let this misery go on.
Living a lie will ruin us all. Bella will be destroyed as
Helen was; I am only the shadow of a man now, and
Hal is killing himself as fast as he can, to avoid the fate
we all dread." Augustine spoke first, for Mrs. Carrol sat
speechless with her trouble as Christie paused. "Keep to
your prayers, and let me go my own way, it's the
shortest," muttered Harry, with his face hidden, and his
head down on his folded arms. "Boys, boys, you'll kill
me if you say such things! I have more now than I can
bear. Don't drive me wild with your reproaches to each
other!" cried their mnother, her heart rent with the
remorse that came too late. "No fear of that; you are not
a Carrol," answered Harry, with the pitiless bluntness of
a resentful and rebellious boy. Augustine turned on him
with a wrathful flash of the eye, and a warning ring in
his stern voice, as he pointed to the door. "You shall not
insult your mother! Ask her pardon, or go!" "She
should ask mine! I'll go. When you want me, you'll
know where to find me." And, with a reckless laugh,
Harry stormed out of the room. Augustine's indignant
face grew full of a new trouble as the door banged
below, and he pressed his thin hands tightly together,
saying, as if to himself:
"Heaven help me! Yes, I do know; for, night after night,
I find and bring the poor lad home from gamblingtables and the hells where souls like his are lost." Here
Christie thought to slip away, feeling that it was no
place for her now that her errand was done. But Mrs.
Carrol called her back. "Miss Devon -- Christie -forgive me that I did not trust you sooner. It was so
hard to tell; I hoped so much from time; I never could
believe that my poor children would be made the
victims of my mistake. Do not forsake us:
Helen loves you so. Stay with her, I implore you, and
let a most unhappy mother plead for a most unhappy
child." Then Christie went to the poor woman, and
earnestly assured her of her love and loyalty; for now
she felt doubly bound to them because they trusted her.
" What shall we do? " they said to her, with pathetic
submission, turning like sick people to a healthful soul
for help and comfort. "Tell Bella all the truth, and help
her to refuse her lover. Do this just thing, and God will
strengthen you to bear the consequences," was her
answer, though she trembled at the responsibility they
put upon her. "Not yet," cried Mrs. Carrol. " Let the
poor child enjoy the holidays with a light heart, -- then
we will tell her; and then Heaven help us all! " So it
was decided; for only a week or two of the old year
remained, and no one had the heart to rob poor Bella of
the little span of blissful ignorance that now remained
to her. A terrible time was that to Christie; for, while
one sister, blessed with beauty, youth, love, and
pleasure, tasted life at its sweetest, the other sat in the
black shadow of a growing dread, and wearied Heaven
with piteous prayers for her relief. "The old horror is
coming back; I feel it creeping over me. Don't let it
come, Christie! Stay by me! Help me! Keep me sane!
And if you cannot, ask God to take me quickly!" With
words like these, poor Helen clung to Christie; and,
soul and body, Christie devoted herself to the afflicted
girl. She would not see her mother; and the unhappy
woman haunted that closed door, hungering for the
look, the word, that never came to her. Augustine was
her consolation, and, during those troublous days, the
priest was forgotten in the son. But Harry was all in all
to Helen then; and it was touching to see how these
unfortunate young creatures clung to one another, she
tenderly trying to keep him from the wild life that was
surely hastening the fate he might otherwise escape for
years, and he patiently bearing all her moods, eager to
cheer and soothe the sad captivity from which he could
not save her. These tender ministrations seemed to be
blessed at last; and Christie began to hope the haunting
terror would pass by, as quiet gloom succeeded to wild
excitement. The cheerful spirit of the season seemed to
reach even that sad room; and, in preparing gifts for
others, Helen seemed to find a little of that best of all
gifts, -- peace for herself. On New Year's morning,
Christie found her garlanding her lover's picture with
white roses and the myrtle sprays brides wear. "These
were his favorite flowers, and I meant to make my
wedding wreath of this sweet-scented myrtle, because
he gave it to me," she said, with a look that made
Christie's eyes grow dim. " Don't grieve for me, dear;
we shall surely meet hereafter, though so far asunder
here. Nothing can part us there, I devoutly believe; for
we leave our burdens all behind us when we go." Then,
in a lighter tone, she said, with her arm on Christie's
neck:
"This day is to be a happy one, no matter what comes
after it. I'm going to be my old self for a little while,
and forget there's such a word as sorrow. Help me to
dress, so that when the boys come up they may find the
sister Nell they have not seen for two long years." "Will
you wear this, my darling? Your mother sends it, and
she tried to have it dainty and beautiful enough to
please you. See, your own colors, though the bows are
only laid on that they may be changed for others if you
like." As she spoke Christie lifted the cover of the box
old Hester had just brought in, and displayed a
cashmere wrapper, creamy-white, silk-lined, downtrimmed, and delicately relieved by rosy knots, like
holly berries lying upon snow. Helen looked at it
without a word for several minutes, then gathering up
the ribbons, with a strange smile, she said:
" I like it better so; but I'll not wear it yet." (Bless and
save us, deary; it must have a bit of color somewhere,
else it looks just like a shroud," cried Rester, and then
wrung her hands in dismay as Helen answered, quietly:
"Ah, well, keep it for me, then. I shall be happier when
I wear it so than in the gayest gown I own, for when
you put it on, this poor head and heart of mine will be
quiet at last." Motioning Hester to remove the box,
Christie tried to banish the cloud her unlucky words had
brought to Helen's face, by chatting cheerfully as she
helped her make herself "pretty for the boys." All that
day she was unusually calm and sweet, and seemed to
yield herself wholly to the happy influences of the hour,
gave and received her gifts so cheerfully that her
brothers watched her with delight; and unconscious
Bella said, as she hung about her sister, with loving
admiration in her eyes:
" I always thought you would get well, and now I'm
sure of it, for you look as you used before I went away
to school, and seem just like our own dear Nell."
"I'm glad of that; I wanted you to feel so, my Bella. I'll
accept your happy prophecy, and hope I may get well
soon, very soon." So cheerfully she spoke, so tranquilly
she smiled, that all rejoiced over her believing, with
love's blindness, that she might yet conquer her malady
in spite of their forebodings. It was a very happy day to
Christie, not only that she was generously remembered
and made one of them by all the family, but because
this change for the better in Helen made her heart sing
for joy. She had given time, health, and much love to
the task, and ventured now to hope they had not been
given in vain. One thing only marred her happiness, the
sad estrangement of the daughter from her mother, and
that evening she resolved to take advantage of Helen's
tender mood, and plead for the poor soul who dared not
plead for herself. As the brothers and sisters said goodnight, Helen clung to them as if loth to part, saying,
with each embrace:
"Keep hoping for me, Bella; kiss me, Harry; bless me,
Augustine, and all wish for me a happier New Year
than the last." When they were gone she wandered
slowly round the room, stood long before the picture
with its fading garland, sung a little softly to herself,
and came at last to Christie, saying, like a tired child:
"I have been good all day; now let me rest." One thing
has been forgotten, dear," began Christie, fearing to
disturb the quietude that seemed to have been so dearly
bought.
Helen understood her, and looked up with a sane sweet
face, out of which all resentful bitterness had passed.
"No, Christie, not forgotten, only kept until the last. Today is a good day to forgive, as we would be forgiven,
and I mean to do it before I sleep." Then holding
Christie close, she added, with a quiver of emotion in
her voice:
"I have no words warm enough to thank you, my good
angel, for all you have been to me, but I know it will
give you a great pleasure to do one thing more. Give
dear mamma my love, and tell her that when I am quiet
for the night I want her to come and get me to sleep
with the old lullaby she used to sing when I was a little
child." No gift bestowed that day was so precious to
Christie as the joy of carrying this loving message from
daughter to mother. How Mrs. Carrol received it need
not be told. She would have gone at once, but Christie
begged her to wait till rest and quiet, after the efforts of
the day, had prepared Helen for an interview which
might undo all that had been done if too hastily
attempted. Hester always waited upon her child at
night; so, feeling that she might be wanted later,
Christie went to her own room to rest. Quite sure that
Mrs. Carrol would come to tell her what had passed,
she waited for an hour or two,- then went to ask of
Hester how the visit had sped. " Her mamma came up
long ago, but the dear thing was fast asleep, so I
wouldn't let her be disturbed, and Mrs. Carrol went
away again," said the old woman, rousing from a nap.
Grieved at the mother's disappointment, Christie stole
in, hoping that Helen might rouse. She did not, and
Christie was about to leave her, when, as she bent to
smooth the tumbled coverlet, something dropped at her
feet. Only a little pearl-handled penknife of Harry's; but
her heart stood still with fear, for it was open, and, as
she took it up, a red stain came off upon her hand.
Helen's face ivas turned away, and, bending nearer,
Christie saw how deathly pale it looked in the shadow
of the darkened room. She listened at her lips; only a
faint flutter of breath parted them; she lifted up the
averted head, and on the white throat saw a little
wound, from which the blood still flowed. Then, like a
flash of light, the meaning of the sudden change which
came over her grew clear, -her brave efforts to make the
last day happy, her tender good-night partings, her wish
to be at peace with every one, the tragic death she had
chosen rather than live out the tragic life that lay before
her. Christie's nerves had been tried to the uttermost;
the shock of this discovery was too much for her, and,
in the act of calling for help, she fainted, for the first
time in her life. When she was herself again, the room
was full of people; terror-stricken faces passed before
her; broken voices whispered, "It is too late," and, as
she saw the group about the bed, she wished for
unconsciousness again. Helen lay in her mother's arms
at last, quietly breathing her life away, for though every
thing that love and skill could devise had been tried to
save her, the little knife in that desperate hand had done
its work, and this world held no more suffering for her.
Harry was down upon his knees beside her, trying to
stifle his passionate grief. Augustine prayed audibly
above her, and the fervor of his broken words
comforted all hearts but one. Bella was clinging, panicstricken, to the kind old doctor, who was sobbing like a
boy, for he had loved and served poor Helen as
faithfully as if she had been his own. "Can nothing save
her?" Christie whispered, as the prayer ended, and a
sound of bitter weeping filled the room. "Nothing; she
is sane and safe at last, thank God!" Christie could not
but echo his thanksgiving, for the blessed tranquillity of
the girl's countenance was such as none but death, the
great healer, can bring; and, as they looked, her eyes
opened, beautifully clear and calm before they closed
for ever. From face to face they passed, as if they
looked for some one, and her lips moved in vain efforts
to speak. Christie went to her, but still the wide, wistful
eyes searched the room as if unsatisfied; and, with a
longing that conquered the mortal weakness of the
body, the heart sent forth one tender cry:
"My mother -- I want my mother!" There was no need
to repeat the piteous call, for, as it left her lips, she saw
her mother's face bending over her, and felt her
mother's arms gathering her in an embrace which held
her close even after death had set its seal upon the
voiceless prayers for pardon which passed between
those reunited hearts. When she was asleep at last,
Christie and her mother made her ready for her grave;
weeping tender tears as they folded her in the soft,
white garment she had put by for that sad hour; and on
her breast they laid the flowers she had hung about her
lover as a farewell gift. So beautiful she looked when
all was done, that in the early dawn they called her
brothers, that they might not lose the memory of the
blessed peace that shone upon her face, a mute
assurance that for her the new year had happily begun.
"Now my work here is done, and I must go," thought
Christie, when the waves of life closed over the spot
where another tired swimmer had gone down.- But she
found that one more task remained for her before she
left the family which, on her coming, she had thought
so happy. Mrs. Carrol, worn out with the long effort to
conceal her secret cross, broke down entirely under this
last blow, and besought Christie to tell Bella all that she
must know. It was a hard task, but Christie accepted it,
and, when the time came, found that there was very
little to be told, for at the death-bed of the elder sister,
the younger had learned much of the sad truth. Thus
prepared, she listened to all that was most carefully and
tenderly confided to her, and, when the heavy tale was
done, she surprised Christie by the unsuspected strength
she showed. No tears, no lamentations, for she was her
mother's daughter, and inherited the pride that can bear
heavy burdens, if they are borne unseen. " Tell me what
I must do, and I' will do it," she said, with the quiet
despair of one who submits to the inevitable, but will
not complain. When Christie with difficulty told her
that she should give up her lover, Bella bowed her head,
and for a moment could not speak, then lifted it as if
defying her own weakness, and spoke out bravely:
"It shall be done, for it is right. It is very hard for me,
because I love him; he will not suffer much, for he can
love again. I should be glad of that, and I'll try to wish it
for his sake. He is young, and if, as Harry says, he cares
more for my fortune than myself, so much the better.
What next, Christie?" Amazed and touched at the
courage of the creature she had fancied a sort of lovely
butterfly to be crushed by a single blow, Christie took
heart, and, instead of soothing sympathy, gave her the
solace best fitted for strong natures, something to do for
others. What inspired her, Christie never knew; perhaps
it was the year of self-denying service she had rendered
for pity's sake; such devotion is its own reward, and
now, in herself, she discovered unsuspected powers.
"Live for your mother and your brothers, Bella; they
need you sorely, and in time I know you will find true
consolation in it, although you must relinquish much.
Sustain your mother, cheer Augustine, watch over
Harry, and be to them what Helen longed to be."
"And fail to do it, as she failed " cried Bella, with a
shudder. "Listen, and let me give you this hope, for I
sincerely do believe it. Since I came here, I have read
many books, thought much, and talked often with Dr.
Shirley about this sad affliction. He thinks you and
Harry may escape it, if you will. You are like your
mother in temperament and temper; you have selfcontrol, strong wills, good nerves, and cheerful spirits.
Poor Harry is willfully spoiling all his chances now; but
you may save him, and, in the endeavor, save yourself."
" Oh, Christie, may I hope it? Give me one chance of
escape, and I will suffer any hardship to keep it. Let me
see any thing before me but a life and death like
Helen's, and I'll bless you for ever!" cried Bella,
welcoming this ray of light as a prisoner welcomes
sunshine in his cell. Christie trembled at the power of
her words, yet, honestly believing them, she let them
uplift this disconsolate soul, trusting that they might be
in time fulfilled through God's mercy and the saving
grace of sincere endeavor. Holding fast to this frail
spar, Bella bravely took up arms against her sea of
troubles, and rode out the storm. When her lover came
to know his fate, she hid her heart, and answered " no,"
finding a bitter satisfaction in the end, for Harry was
right, and, when the fortune was denied him, young
Butler did not mourn the woman long. Pride helped
Bella to bear it; but it needed all her courage to look
down the coming years so bare of all that makes life
sweet to youthful souls, so desolate and dark, with duty
alone to cheer the thorny way, and the haunting shadow
of her race lurking in the background. Submission and
self-sacrifice are stern, sad angels, but in time one
learns to know and love them, for when they have
chastened, they uplift and bless. Dimly discerning this,
poor Bella put her hands in theirs, saying, "Lead me,
teach me; I will follow and obey you." All soon felt that
they could not stay in a house so full of heavy
memories, and decided to return to their old home..
They begged Christie to go with them, using every
argument and entreaty their affection could suggest. But
Christie needed rest, longed for freedom, and felt that in
spite of their regard it would be very hard for her to live
among them any longer. Her healthy nature needed
brighter influences, stronger comrades, and the memory
of Helen weighed so heavily upon her heart that she
was eager to forget it for a time in other scenes and
other work. So they parted, very sadly, very tenderly,
and laden with good gifts Christie went on her way
weary, but well satisfied, for she had earned her rest.
Chapter VI
Seamstress.
FOR some weeks Christie rested and refreshed herself
by making her room gay and comfortable with the gifts
lavished on her by the Carrols, and by sharing with
others the money which Harry had smuggled into her
possession after she had steadily refused to take one
penny more than the sum agreed upon when she first
went to them. She took infinite satisfaction in sending
one hundred dollars to Uncle Enos, for she had
accepted what he gave her as a loan, and set her heart
on repaying every fraction of it. Another hundred she
gave to Hepsey, who found her out and came to report
her trials and tribulations. The good soul had ventured
South and tried to buy her mother. But "ole missis "
would not let her go at any price, and the faithful chattel
would not run away. Sorely disappointed, Hepsey had
been obliged to submit; but her trip was not a failure,
for she liberated several brothers and sent them
triumphantly to Canada. "You must take it, Hepsey, for
I could not rest happy if I put it away to lie idle while'
you can save men and women from torment with it. I'd
give it if it was my last penny, for I can help in no other
way; and if I need money, I can always earn it, thank
God!" said Christie, as Hepsey hesitated to take so
much from a fellow-worker. The thought of that
investment lay warm at Christie's heart, and never woke
a regret, for well she knew that every dollar of it would
be blessed, since shares in the Underground Railroad
pay splendid dividends that never fail. Another portion
of her fortune, as she called Harry's gift, was bestowed
in wedding presents upon Lucy, who at length
succeeded in winning the heart of the owner of the "
heavenly eyes " and " distracting legs;" -and, having
gained her point, married him with dramatic celerity,
and went West to follow the fortunes of her lord. The
old theatre was to be demolished and the company
scattered, so a farewell festival was held, and Christie
went to it, feeling more solitary than ever as she bade
her old friends a long good-bye. The rest of the money
burned in her pocket, but she prudently put it by for a
rainy day, and fell to work again when her brief
vacation was over. Hearing of a chance for a good
needle-woman in a large and well-conducted mantuamaking establishment, she secured it as a temporary
thing, for she wanted to divert her mind from that last
sad experience by entirely different employment and
surroundings. She liked to return at night to her own
little home, solitary and simple as it was, and felt a
great repugnance to accept any place where she would
be mixed up with family affairs again.
So day after day she went to her seat in the workroom
where a dozen other young women sat sewing busily on
gay garments, with as much lively gossip to beguile the
time as Miss Cotton, the forewoman, would allow. For
a while it diverted Christie, as she had a feminine love
for pretty things, and enjoyed seeing delicate silks,
costly lace, and all the indescribable fantasies of
fashion. But as spring came on, the old desire for
something fresh and free began to haunt her, and she
had both waking and sleeping dreams of a home in the
country somewhere, with cows and flowers, clothes
bleaching on green grass, bob-o'-links making rapturous
music by the river, and the smell of new-mown hay, all
lending their charms to the picture she painted for
herself. Most assuredly she would have gone to find
these things, led by the instincts of a healthful nature,
had not one slender tie held her till it grew into a bond
so strong she could not break it. Among her
companions was one, and one only, who attracted her.
The others were well-meaning girls, but full of the
frivolous purposes and pleasures which their tastes
prompted and their dull life fostered. Dress, gossip, and
wages were the three topics which absorbed them.
Christie soon tired of the innumerable changes rung
upon these themes, and took refuge in her own
thoughts, soon learning to enjoy them undisturbed by
the clack of many tongues about her. Her evenings at
home were devoted to books, for she had the true New
England woman's desire for education, and read or
studied for the love of it. Thus she had much to think of
as her needle flew, and was rapidly becoming a sort of
sewing-machine when life was brightened for her by
the finding of a friend. Among the girls was one quiet,
skilful creature, whose black dress, peculiar face, and
silent ways attracted Christie. Her evident desire to be
let alone amused the new comer at first, and she made
no effort to know her. But presently she became aware
that Rachel watched her with covert interest, stealing
quick, shy glances at her as she sat musing over her
work. Christie smiled at her when she caught these
glances, as if to reassure the looker of her good-will.
But Rachel only colored, kept her eyes fixed on her
work, and was more reserved than ever. This interested
Christie, and she fell to studying this young woman
with some curiosity, for she was different from the
others. Though evidently younger than she looked,
Rachel's face was that of one who had known some
great sorrow, some deep experience; for there were
lines on the forehead that contrasted strongly with the
bright, abundant hair above it; in repose, the youthfully
red, soft lips had a mournful droop, and the eyes were
old with that indescribable expression which comes to
those who count their lives by emotions, not by years.
Strangely haunting eyes to Christie, for they seemed to
appeal to her with a mute eloquence she could not
resist. In vain did Rachel answer her with quiet
coldness, nod silently when she wished her a cheery
"good morning," and keep resolutely in her own
somewhat isolated corner, though invited to share the
sunny window where the other sat. Her eyes belied her
words, and those fugitive glances betrayed the longing
of a lonely heart that dared not yield itself to the genial
companionship so freely offered it. Christie was sure of
this, and would not be repulsed; for her own heart was
very solitary. She missed Helen, and longed to fill the
empty place. She wooed this shy, cold girl as patiently
and as gently as a lover might, determined to win her
confidence, because all the others had failed to do it.
Sometimes she left a flower in Rachel's basket, always
smiled and nodded as she entered, and often stopped to
admire the work of her tasteful fingers. It was
impossible to resist such friendly overtures, and slowly
Rachel's coldness melted; into the beseeching eyes
came a look of gratitude, the more touching for its
wordlessness, and an irrepressible smile broke over her
face in answer to the cordial ones that made the
sunshine of her day. Emboldened by these
demonstrations, Christie changed her seat, and quietly
established between them a daily interchange of
something beside needles, pins, and spools. Then, as
Rachel did not draw back offended, she went a step
farther, and, one day when they chanced to be left alone
to finish off a delicate bit of work, she spoke out
frankly,:
"Why can't we be friends? I want one sadly, and so do
you, unless your looks deceive me. We both seem to be
alone in the world, to have had trouble, and to like one
another. I won't annoy you by any impertinent
curiosity, nor burden you with uninteresting
confidences; I only want to feel that you like me a little
and don't mind my liking you a great deal. Will you be
my friend, and let me be yours? "
A great tear rolled down upon the shining silk in
Rachel's hands as she looked into Christie's earnest
face, and answered with an almost passionate gratitude
in her own:
" You can never need a friend as much as I do, or know
what a blessed thing it is to find such an one as you
are." " Then I may love you, and not be afraid of
offending? " cried Christie, much touched. "Yes. But
remember I didn't ask it first," said Rachel, half
dropping the hand she had held in both her own. "You
proud creature! I'll remember; and when we quarrel, I'll
take all the blame upon myself." Then Christie kissed
her warmly, whisked away the tear, and began to paint
the delights in store for them in her most enthusiastic
way, being much elated with her victory; while Rachel
listened with a newly kindled light in her lovely eyes,
and a smile that showed how winsome her face had
been before many tears washed its bloom away, and
much trouble made it old too soon. Christie kept her
word, -asked no questions, volunteered no confidences,
but heartily enjoyed the new friendship, and found that
it gave to life the zest which it had lacked before. Now
some one cared for her, and, better still, she could make
some one happy, and in the act of lavishing the
affection of her generous nature on a creature sadder
and more solitary than herself, she found a satisfaction
that never lost its charm. There was nothing in her
possession that she did not offer Rachel, from the whole
of her heart to the larger half of her little room.
"I'm tired of thinking only of myself. It makes me
selfish and low-spirited; for I'm not a bit interesting. I
must love somebody, and love them hard, as children
say; so why can't you come and stay with me? There's
room enough, and we could be so cosy evenings with
our books and work. I know you need some one to look
after you, and I love dearly to take care of people. Do
come," she would say, with most persuasive hospitality.
But Rachel always answered steadily:
"Not yet, Christie, not yet. I've got something to do
before I can think of doing any thing so beautiful as
that. Only love me, dear, and some day I'll show you all
my heart, and thank you as I ought." So Christie was
content to wait, and, meantime, enjoyed much; for, with
Rachel as a friend, she ceased to care for country
pleasures, found happiness in the work that gave her
better food than mere daily bread, and never thought of
change; for love can make a home for itself anywhere.
A very bright and happy time was this in Christie's life;
but, like most happy times, it was very brief. Only one
summer allowed for the blossoming of the friendship
that budded so slowly in the spring; then the fiost came
and killed the flowers; but the root lived long
underneath the snows of suffering, doubt, and absence.
Coming to her work late one morning, she found the
usually orderly room in confusion. Some of the girls
were crying; some whispering together,- all looking
excited and dismayed. Mrs. King sat majestically at her
table, with an ominous frown upon her face. Miss
Cotton stood beside her, looking unusually sour and
stern, for the ancient virgin's temper was not of the best.
Alone, before them all, with her face hidden in her
hands, and despair in every line of her drooping figure,
stood Rachel, a meek culprit at the stern bar of justice,
where women try a sister woman. " What's the matter?"
cried Christie, pausing on the threshold.
Rachel shivered, as if the sound of that familiar voice
was a fresh wound, but she did not lift her head; and
Mrs. King answered, with a nervous emphasis that
made the bugles of her head-dress rattle dismally:
"A very sad thing, Miss Devon, -- very sad, indeed; a
thing which never occurred in my establishment before,
and never shall again. It appears that Rachel, whom we
all considered a most respectable and worthy girl, has
been quite the reverse. I shudder to think what the
consequences of my taking her without a character (a
thing I never do, and was only tempted by her superior
taste as a trimmer) might have been if Miss Cotton,
having suspicions, had not made strict inquiry and
confirmed them." " That was a kind and generous act,
and Miss Cotton must feel proud of it," said Christie,
with an indignant recollection of Mr. Fletcher's
"cautious inquiries" about herself. "It was perfectly
right and proper, Miss Devon; and I thank her for her
care of my interests." And Mrs. King bowed her
acknowledgment of the service with a perfect castanet
accompaniment, whereat Miss Cotton bridled with
malicious complacency. "Mrs. King, are you sure of
this?" said Christie. "Miss Cotton does not like Rachel
because her work is so much praised. May not her
jealousy make her unjust, or her zeal for you mislead
her?" "I thank you for your polite insinuations, miss,"
returned the irate forewoman. "I never make mistakes;
but you will find that you have made a very great one in
choosing Rachel for your bosom friend instead of some
one who would be a credit to you. Ask the creature
herself if all I've said of her isn't true. She can't deny it."
With the same indefinable misgiving which had held
her aloof, Christie turned to Rachel, lifted up the hidden
face with gentle force, and looked into it imploringly,
as she whispered:
"Is it true? " The woful countenance she saw made any
other answer needless. Involuntarily her hands fell
away, and she hid her own face, uttering the one
reproach, which, tender and tearful though it was,
seemed harder to be borne than the stern condemnation
gone before. " Oh, Rachel, I so loved and trusted you!"
The grief, affection, and regret that trembled in her
voice roused Rachel from her state of passive
endurance and gave her courage to plead for herself.
But it was Christie whom she addressed, Christie whose
pardon she implored, Christie's sorrowful reproach that
she most keenly felt. " Yes, it is true," she said, looking
only at the woman who had been the first to befriend
and now was the last to desert her. "It is true that I once
went astray, but God knows I have repented; that for
years I've tried to be an honest girl again, and that but
for His help I should be a far sadder creature than I am
this day. Christie, you can never know how bitter hard
it is to outlive a sin like mine, and struggle up again
from such a fall. It clings to me; it won't be shaken off
or buried out of sight. No sooner do I find a safe place
like this, and try to forget the past, than some one reads
my secret in my face and hunts me down. It seems very
cruel, very hard, yet it is my punishment, so I try to
bear it, and begin again. What hurts me now more than
all the rest, what breaks my heart, is that I deceived
you. I never meant to do it. I did not seek you, did I? I
tried to be cold and stiff; never asked for love, though
starving for it, till you came to me, so kind, so
generous, so dear, -how could I help it? Oh, how could
I help it then?" Christie had watched Rachel while she
spoke, and spoke to her alone; her heart yearned toward
this one friend, for she still loved her, and, loving, she
believed in her. "I don't reproach you, dear:
I don't despise or desert you,~ and though I'm grieved
and disappointed, I'll stand by you still, because you
need me more than ever now, and I want to prove that I
am a true friend. Mrs. King, please forgive and let poor
Rachel stay here, safe among us." " Miss Devon, I'm
surprised at you! By no means; it would be the ruin of
my establishment; not a girl would remain,. and the
character of my rooms would be lost for ever," replied
Mrs. King, goaded on by the relentless Cotton. "But
where will she go if you send her away? Who will
employ her if you inform against her? What stranger
will believe in her if we, who have known her so long,
fail to befriend her now? Mrs. King, think of your own
daughters, and be a mother to this poor girl for their
sake." That last stroke touched the woman's heart; her
cold eye softened, her hard mouth relaxed, and pity was
about to win the day, when prudence, in the shape of
Miss Cotton, turned the scale, for that spiteful spinster
suddenly cried out, in a burst of righteous wrath:
If that hussy stays, I leave this establishment for ever!"
and followed up the blow by putting on her bonnet with
a flourish. At this spectacle, self-interest got the better
of sympathy in Mrs. King's worldly mind. To lose
Cotton was to lose her right hand, and charity at that
price was too expensive a luxury to be indulged in; so
she hardened her heart, composed her features, and
said, impressively:
"Take off your bonnet, Cotton; I have no intention of
offending you, or any one else,, by such a step. I
forgive you, Rachel, and I pity you; but I can't think of
allowing you to stay. There are proper institutions for
such as you, and I advise you to go to one and repent.
You were paid Saturday night, so nothing prevents your
leaving at once. Time is money here, and we are
wasting it. Young ladies, take your seats." All but
Christie obeyed, yet no one touched a needle, and Mrs.
King sat, hurriedly stabbing pins into the fat cushion on
her breast, as if testing the hardness of her heart.
Rachel's eye went round the room; saw pity, aversion,
or contempt, on every face, but met no answering
glance, for even Christie's eyes were bent thoughtfully
on the ground, and Christie's heart seemed closed
against her. As she looked her whole manner changed;
her tears ceased to fall, her face grew hard, and a
reckless mood seemed to take possession of her, as if
finding herself deserted by womankind, she would
desert her own womanhood.'" I might have known it
would be so," she said abruptly, with a bitter smile,
sadder to see than her most hopeless tears. "It's no use
for such as me to try; better go back to the old life, for
there are kinder hearts among the sinners than among
the saints, and no one can live without a bit of love.
Your Magdalen Asylums are penitentiaries, not homes;
I won't go to any of them. Your piety isn't worth much,
for though you read in your Bible how the Lord treated
a poor soul like me, yet when I stretch out my hand to
you for help, not one of all you virtuous, Christian
women dare take it and keep me from a life that's worse
than hell." As she spoke Rachel flung out her hand with
a halfdefiant gesture, and Christie took it. That touch,
full of womanly compassion, seemed to exorcise the
desperate spirit that possessed the poor girl in her
despair, for, with a stifled exclamation, she sunk down
at Christie's feet, and lay there weeping in all the
passionate abandonment of love and gratitude, remorse
and shame. Never had human voice sounded so
heavenly sweet to her as that which broke the silence of
the room, as this one friend said, with the earnestness of
a true and tender heart:
" Mrs. King, if you send her away, I must take her in;
for if she does go back to the old life, the sin of it will
lie at our door, and God will remember it against us in
the end. Some one must trust her, help her, love her,
and so save her, as nothing else will. Perhaps I can do
this better than you,- at least, I'll try; for even if I risk
the loss of my good name, I could bear that better than
the thought that Rachel had lost the work of these hard
years for want of upholding now. She shall come home
with me; no one there need know of this discovery, and
I will take any work to her that you will give me, to
keep her from want and its temptations. Will you do
this, and let me sew for less, if I can pay you for the
kindness in no other way? " Poor Mrs. King was "
much tumbled up and down in her own mind;" she
longed to consent, but Cotton's eye was upon her, and
Cotton's departure would be an irreparable loss, so she
decided to end the matter in the most summary manner.
Plunging a particularly large pin into her cushioned
breast, as if it was a relief to inflict that mock torture
upon herself, she said sharply:
"It is impossible. You can do as you please, Miss
Devon, but I prefer to wash my hands of the affair at
once and entirely." Christie's eye went from the figure
at her feet to the hard-featured woman who had been a
kind and just mistress until now, and she asked,
anxiously:
" Do you mean that you wash your hands of me also, if
I stand by Rachel?" " I do. I'm very sorry, but my young
ladies must keep respectable company, or leave my
service," was the brief reply, for Mrs. King grew
grimmer externally as the mental rebellion increased
internally. " Then I will leave it!" cried Christie, with an
indignant voice and eye. " Come, dear, we'll go
together." And without a look or word for any in the
room, she raised the prostrate girl, and led her out into
the little hall. There she essayed to comfort her, but
before many words had passed her lips Rachel looked
up, and she was silent with surprise, for the face she
saw was neither despairing nor defiant, but beautifully
sweet and clear, as the unfallen spirit of the woman
shone through the grateful eyes, and blessed her for her
loyalty, "Christie, you have done enough for me," she
said. "Go back, and keep the good place you need, for
such are hard to find. I can get on alone; I'm used to
this, and the pain will soon be over." "I'll not go back! "
cried Christie, hotly. I'll do slop-work and starve, before
I'll stay with such a narrow-minded, cold-hearted
woman. Come home with me at once, and let us lay our
plans together." " No, dear; if I wouldn't go when you
first asked me, much less will I go now, for I've done
you harm enough already. I never can thank you for
your great goodness to me, never tell you what it has
been to me. We must part now; but some day I'll come
back and show you that I've not forgotten how you
loved and helped and trusted me, when all the others
cast me off." Vain were Christie's arguments and
appeals. Rachel was immovable, and all her friend
could win from her was a promise to send word, now
and then, how things prospered with her. "And, Rachel,
I charge you to come to me in any strait, no matter what
it is, no matter where I am; for if any thing could break
my heart, it would be to know that you had gone back
to the old life, because there was no one to help and
hold you up." " I never can go back; you have saved
me, Christie, for you love me, you have faith in me, and
that will keep me strong and safe when you are gone.
Oh, my dear, my dear, God bless you for ever and for
ever!" Then Christie, remembering only that they were
two loving women, alone in a world of sin and sorrow,
took Rachel in her arms, kissed and cried over her with
sisterly affection, and watched her prayerfully, as she
went away to begin her hard task anew, with nothing
but the touch of innocent lips upon her cheek, the
baptism of tender tears upon her forehead to keep her
from despair. Still cherishing the hope that Rachel
would come back to her, Christie neither returned to
Mrs. King nor sought another place of any sort, but
took home work from a larger establishment, and sat
sewing diligently in her little room, waiting, hoping,
longing for her friend. But month after month went by,
and no word, no sign came to comfort her. She would
not doubt, yet she could not help fearing, and in her
nightly prayer no petition was more fervently made
than that which asked the Father of both saint and
sinner to keep poor Rachel safe, and bring her back in
his good time. Never had she been so lonely as now, for
Christie had a social heart, and, having known the joy
of a cordial friendship even for a little while, life
seemed very barren to her when she lost it. No new
friend took Rachel's place, for none came to her, and a
feeling of loyalty kept her from seeking one. But she
suffered for the want of genial society, for all the
tenderness of her nature seemed to have been roused by
that brief but most sincere affection. Her hungry heart
clamored for the happiness that was its right, and grew
very heavy as she watched friends or lovers walking in
the summer twilight when she took her evening stroll.
Often her eyes followed some humble pair, longing to
bless and to be blessed by the divine passion whose
magic beautifies the little milliner and her lad with the
same tender grace as the poet and the mistress whom he
makes immortal in a song. But neither friend nor lover
came to Christie, and she said to herself, with a sad sort
of courage:
"I shall be solitary all my life, perhaps; so the sooner I
make up my mind to it, the easier it will be to bear." At
Christmas-tide she made a little festival for herself, by
giving to each of the household drudges the most
generous gift she could afford, for no one else thought
of them, and having known some of the hardships of
servitude herself, she had much sympathy with those in
like case. Then, with the pleasant recollection of two
plain faces, brightened by gratitude, surprise, and joy,
she went out into the busy streets to forget the solitude
she left behind her. Very gay they were with snow and
sleigh-bells, holly-boughs, and garlands, below, and
Christmas sunshine:
in the winter sky above. All faces shone, all voices had
a cheery ring, and everybody stepped briskly on errands
of good-will. Up and down went Christie, making
herself happy in the happiness of others. Looking in at
the shop-windows, she watched, with interest, the
purchases of busy parents, calculating how best-to fill
the little socks hung up at home, with a childish faith
that never must be disappointed, no matter how hard the
times might be. She was glad to see -so many turkeys
on their way to garnish hospitable tables, and hoped
that all the dear home circles might be found unbroken,
though she had place in none. No Christmas-tree went
by leaving a whiff of piny sweetness behind, that she
did not wish it all success, and picture to herself the
merry little people dancing in its light. And whenever
she saw a ragged child eying a window full of goodies,
smiling even while it shivered, she could not resist
playing Santa Claus till her purse was empty, sending
the poor little souls enraptured home with oranges and
apples in either hand, and splendid sweeties in their
pockets, for the babies. No envy mingled with the
melancholy that would not be dispelled even by these
gentle acts, for her heart was very tender that night, and
if any one had asked what gifts she desired most, she
would have answered with a look more pathetic than
any shivering child had given her:
"I want the sound of a loving voice; the touch of a
friendly hand." Going home, at last, to the lonely little
room where no Christmas fire burned, no tree shone, no
household group awaited her, she climbed the long,
dark stairs, with drops on her cheeks, warmer than any
melted snow-flake could have left, and opening her
door paused on the threshold, smiling with wonder and
delight, for in her absence some gentle spirit had
remembered her. A fire burned cheerily upon the
hearth, her lamp was lighted, a lovely rose-tree, in full
bloom, filled the air with its delicate breath, and in its
shadow lay a note from Rachel.
"A merry Christmas and a happy New Year,
Christie! Long ago you gave me your little
rose; I have watched and tended it for your
sake, dear, and now when I want to show
my love and thankfulness, I give it back
again as my one treasure. I crept in while
you were gone, because I feared I might
harm you in some way if you saw me. I
longed to stay and tell you that I am safe and
well, and busy, with your good face looking
into mine, but I don't deserve that yet. Only
love me, trust me, pray for me, and some
day you shall know what you have done for
me. Till then, God bless and keep you,
dearest
your RACHEL.'
friend,
Never had sweeter tears fallen than those that dropped
upon the little tree as Christie took it in her arms, and
all the rosy clusters leaned toward her as if eager to
deliver tender messages. Surely her wish was granted
now, for friendly hands had been at work for her. Warm
against her heart lay words as precious as if uttered by a
loving voice, and nowhere, on that happy night, stood a
fairer Christmas tree than that which bloomed so
beautifully from the heart of a Magdalen who loved
much and was forgiven.
Chapter VII
Through The Mist.
THE year that followed was the saddest Christie had
ever known, for she suffered a sort of poverty which is
more difficult to bear than actual want, since money
cannot lighten it, and the rarest charity alone can
minister to it. Her heart was empty and she could not
fill it; her soul was hungry and she could not feed it; life
was cold and dark and she could not warm and brighten
it, for she knew not where to go. She tried to help
herself by all the means in her power, and when effort
after effort failed she said:
" I am not good enough yet to deserve happiness. I
think too much of human love, too little of divine.
When I have made God my friend perhaps He will let
me find and keep one heart to make life happy with.
How shall I know God? Who will tell me where to find
Him, and help me to love and lean upon Him as I
ought?" In all sincerity she asked these questions, in all
sincerity she began her search, and with pathetic
patience waited for an answer. She read many books,
some wise, some vague, some full of superstition, all
unsatisfactory to one who wanted a living God. She
went to many churches, studied many creeds, and
watched their fruits as well as she could; but still
remained unsatisfied. Some were cold and narrow,
some seemed theatrical and superficial, some stern and
terrible, none simple, sweet, and strong enough for
humanity's many needs. There was too much
machinery, too many walls, laws, and penalties between
the Father and His children. Too much fear, too little
love; too many saints and intercessors; too little faith in
the instincts of the soul which turns to God as flowers
to the sun. Too much idle strife about names and
creeds; too little knowledge of the natural religion
which has no name but godliness, whose creed is
boundless and benignant as the sunshine, whose faith is
as the tender trust of little children in their mother's
love. Nowhere did Christie find this all-sustaining
power, this paternal friend, and comforter, and after
months of patient searching she gave up her quest,
saying, despondently:
" I'm afraid I never shall get religion, for all that's
offered me seems so poor, so narrow, or so hard that I
cannot take it for my stay. A God of wrath I cannot
love; a God that must be propitiated, adorned, -- and
adored like an idol I cannot respect; and a God who can
be blinded to men's iniquities through the week by a
little beating of the breast and bowing down on the
seventh day, I cannot serve. I want a Father to whom I
can go with all my sins and sorrows, all my hopes and
joys, as freely and fearlessly as I used to go to my
human father, sure of help and sympathy and love.
Shall I ever find Him?" Alas, poor Christie! she was
going through the sorrowful perplexity that comes to so
many before they learn that religion cannot be given or
bought, but must grow as trees grow, needing frost and
snow, rain and wind to strengthen it before it is deeprooted in the soul; that God is in the hearts of all, and
they that seek shall surely find Him when they need
Him most. So Christie waited for religion to reveal
itself to her, and while she waited worked with an
almost desperate industry, trying to buy a little
happiness for herself by giving a part of her earnings to
those whose needs money could supply. She clung to
her little room, for there she could live her own life
undisturbed, and preferred to stint herself in other ways
rather than give up this liberty. Day after day she sat
there sewing health of mind and body into the long
seams or dainty stitching that passed through her busy
hands, and while she sewed she thought sad, bitter,
oftentimes rebellious thoughts. It was the worst life she
could have led just then, for, deprived of the active,
cheerful influences she most needed, her mind preyed
on itself, slowly and surely, preparing her for the dark
experience to come. She knew that there was fitter work
for her somewhere, but how to find it was a problem
which wiser women have often failed to solve. She was
no pauper, yet was one of those whom poverty sets at
odds with the world, for favors burden and dependence
makes the bread bitter unless love brightens the one and
sweetens the other. There are many Christies, willing to
work, yet unable to bear the contact with coarser
natures which makes labor seem degrading, or to
endure the hard struggle for the bare necessities of life
when life has lost all that makes it beautiful. People
wonder when such as she say they can find little to do;
but to those who know nothing of the pangs of pride,
the sacrifices of feeling, the martyrdoms of youth, love,
hope, and ambition that go on under the faded cloaks of
these poor gentlewomen, who tell them to go into
factories, or scrub in kitchens, for there is work enough
for all, the most convincing answer would be, "Try it."
Christie kept up bravely till a wearisome low fever
broke both strength and spirit, and brought the weight
of debt upon her when least fitted to bear or cast it off.
For the first time she began to feel that she had nerves
which would rebel, and a heart that could not long
endure isolation from its kind without losing the
cheerful courage which hitherto had been her
staunchest friend. Perfect rest, kind care, and genial
society were the medicines she needed, but there was
no one to minister to her, and she went blindly on along
the road so many women tread. She left her bed too
soon, fearing to ask too much of the busy people who
had done their best to be neighborly. She returned to
her work when it felt heavy in her feeble hands, for debt
made idleness seem wicked to her conscientious mind.
And, worst of all, she fell back into the bitter, brooding
mood which had become habitual to her since she lived
alone. While the tired hands slowly worked, the weary
brain ached and burned with heavy thoughts, vain
longings, and feverish fancies, till things about her
sometimes seemed as strange and spectral as the
phantoms that had haunted her half-delirious sleep.
Inexpressibly wretched were the dreary days, the
restless nights, with only pain and labor for
companions. The world looked very dark to her, life
seemed an utter failure, God a delusion, and the long,
lonely years before her too hard to be endured. It is not
always want, insanity, or sin that drives women to
desperate deaths; often it is a dreadful loneliness of
heart, a hunger for home and friends, worse than
starvation, a bitter sense of wrong in being denied the
tender ties, the pleasant duties, the sweet rewards that
can make the humblest life happy; a rebellious protest
against God, who, when they cry for bread, seems to
offer them a stone. Some of these impatient souls throw
life away, and learn too late how rich it might have
been with a stronger faith, a more submissive spirit.
Others are kept, and slowly taught to stand and wait, till
blest with a happiness the sweeter for the doubt that
went before. There came a time to Christie when the
mist about her was so thick she would have stumbled
and fallen had not the little candle, kept alight by her
own hand, showed her how far " a good deed shines in
a naughty world;" and when God seemed utterly
forgetful of her He sent a friend to save and comfort
her. March winds were whistling among the house-tops,
and the sky was darkening with a rainy twilight as
Christie folded up her finished work, stretched her
weary limbs, and made ready for her daily walk. Even
this was turned to profit, for then she took home her
work, went in search of more, and did her own small
marketing. As late hours and unhealthy labor destroyed
appetite, and unpaid debts made each mouthful difficult
to swallow with Mrs. Flint's hard eye upon her, she had
undertaken to supply her own food, and so lessen the
obligation that burdened her. An unwise retrenchment,
for, busied with the tasks that must be done, she too
often neglected or deferred the meals to which no
society lent interest, no appetite gave flavor; and when
the fuel was withheld the fire began to die out spark by
spark. As she stood before the little mirror, smoothing
the hair upon her forehead, she watched the face
reflected there, wondering if it could be the same she
used to see so full of youth and hope and energy. "Yes,
I'm growing old; my youth is nearly over, and at thirty I
shall be a faded, dreary woman, like so many I see and
pity. It's hard to come to this after trying so long to find
my place, and do my duty. I'm a failure after all, and
might as well have stayed with Aunt Betsey or married
Joe." " Miss Devon, to-day is Saturday, and I'm makin'
up my bills, so I'll trouble you for your month's board,
and as much on the old account as you can let me
have." Mrs. Flint spoke, and her sharp voice rasped the
silence like a file, for she had entered without knocking,
and her demand was the first intimation of her presence.
Christie turned slowly round, for there was no elasticity
in her motions now; through the melancholy anxiety her
face always wore of late, there came the worried look
of one driven almost beyond endurance, and her hands
began to tremble nervously as she tied on her bonnet.
Mrs. Flint was a hard woman, and dunned her debtors
relentlessly; Christie dreaded the sight of her, and
would have left the house had she been free of debt. " I
am just going to take these things home and get more
work. I am sure of being paid, and you shall have all I
get. But, for Heaven's sake, give me time." Two days
and a night of almost uninterrupted labor had given a
severe strain to her nerves, and left her in a dangerous
state. Something in her face arrested Mrs. Flint's
attention; she observed that Christie was putting on her
best cloak and hat, and to her suspicious eye the bundle
of work looked unduly large. It had been a hard day for
the poor woman, for the cook had gone off in a huff;
the chamber girl been detected in petty larceny; two
desirable boarders had disappointed her; and the
incapable husband had fallen ill, so it was little wonder
that her soul was tried, her sharp voice sharper, and her
sour temper sourer than ever. "I have heard of folks
putting on their best things and going out, but never
coming back again, when they owed money. It's a mean
trick, but it's sometimes done by them you wouldn't
think it of," she said, with an aggravating sniff of
intelligence. To be suspected of dishonesty was the last
drop in Christie's full cup. She looked at the woman
with a strong desire to do something violent, for every
nerve was tingling with irritation and anger. But she
controlled herself, though her face was colorless and
her hands were more tremulous than before.
Unfastening her comfortable cloak she replaced it with
a shabby shawl; took off her neat bonnet and put on a
hood, unfolded six linen shirts, and shook them out
before her landlady's eyes; then retied the parcel, and,
pausing on the threshold of the door, looked back with
an expression that haunted the woman long afterward,
as she said, with the quiver of strong excitement in her
voice:
"Mrs. Flint, I have always dealt honorably by you; I
always mean to do it, and don't deserve to be suspected
of dishonesty like that. I leave every thing I own behind
me, and if I don't come back, you can sell them all and
pay yourself, for I feel now as if I never wanted to see
you or this room again." Then she went rapidly away,
supported by her indignation, for she had done her best
to pay her debts; had sold the few trinkets she
possessed, and several treasures given by the Carrols, to
settle her doctor's bill, and had been half killing herself
to satisfy Mrs. Flint's demands. The consciousness that
she had been too lavish in her generosity when fortune
smiled upon her, made the present want all the harder to
bear. But she would neither beg nor borrow, though she
knew Harry would delight to give, and Uncle Enos lend
her money, with a lecture on extravagance, gratis. "I'll
paddle my own canoe as long as I can," she said,
sternly; "and when I must ask help I'll turn to strangers
for it, or scuttle my boat, and go down without
troubling any one." When she came to her employers
door, the servant said:
"Missis was out;" then seeing Christie's disappointed
face, she added, confidentially:
"If it's any comfort to know it, I can tell you that missis
wouldn't have paid you if she had a been to home.
There's been three other women here with work, and
she's put 'em all off. She always does, and beats 'em
down into the bargain, which ain't genteel to my
thinkin'." " She promised me I should be well paid for
these, because I undertook to get them done without
fail. I've worked day and night rather than disappoint
her, and felt sure of my money," said Christie,
despondently. "I'm sorry, but you won't get it. She told
me to tell you your prices was too high, and she could
find folks to work cheaper." "She did not object to the
price when I took the work, and I have half-ruined my
eyes over the fine stitching. See if it isn't nicely done."
And Christie displayed her exquisite needlework with
pride. The girl admired it, and, having a grievance of
her own, took satisfaction in berating her mistress. " It's
a shame! These things are part of a present the ladies
are going to give the minister; but I don't believe he'll
feel easy in'em if poor folks is wronged to get 'em.
Missis won't pay what they are worth, I know; for, don't
you see, the cheaper the work is done, the more money
she has to make a spread with her share of the present?
It's my opinion you'd better hold on to these shirts till
she pays for 'em handsome."
"No; I'll keep my promise, and I hope she will keep
hers. Tell her I need the money very much, and have
worked very hard to please her. I'll come again on
Monday, if I'm able." Christie's lips trembled as she
spoke, for she was feeble still, and the thought of that
hard-earned money had been her sustaining hope
through the weary hours spent over that ill-paid work.
The girl said "Goodbye," with a look of mingled pity
and respect, for in her eyes the seamstress was more of
a lady than the mistress in this transaction. Christie
hurried to another place, and asked eagerly if the young
ladies had any work for her. "Not a stitch," was the
reply, and the door closed. She stood a moment looking
down upon the passers-by wondering what answer she
would get if she accosted any one; and had any
especially benevolent face looked back at her she would
have been tempted to do it, so heart-sick and forlorn did
she feel just then. She knocked at several other doors, to
receive the same reply. She even tried a slop-shop, but
it was full, and her pale face was against her. Her long
illness had lost her many patrons, and if one steps out
from the ranks of needle-women it is very hard to press
in again, so crowded are they, and so desperate the need
of money. One hope remained, and, though the way
was long, and a foggy drizzle had set in, she minded
neither distance nor the chilly rain, but hurried away
with anxious thoughts still dogging her steps. Across a
long bridge, through muddy roads and up a stately
avenue she went; pausing, at last, spent and breathless
at another door. A servant with a wedding-favor in his
button-hole opened to her, and, while he went to deliver
her urgent message, she peered in wistfully from the
dreary world without, catching glimpses of home-love
and happiness that made her heart ache for very pity of
its own loneliness. A wedding was evidently afoot, for
hall and staircase blazed with light and bloomed with
flowers. Smiling men and maids ran to and fro; opening
doors showed tables beautiful with bridal white and
silver; savory odors filled the air; gay voices echoed
above and below; and once she caught a brief glance at
the bonny bride, standing with- her father's arm about
her, while her mother gave some last, loving touch to
her array; and a group of young sisters with April faces
clustered round her. The pretty picture vanished all too
soon; the man returned with a hurried "No" for answer,
and Christie went out into the deepening twilight with a
strange sense of desperation at her heart. It was not the
refusal, not the fear of want, nor the reaction of
overtaxed nerves alone; it was the sharpness of the
contrast between that other woman's fate and her own
that made her wring her hands together, and cry out,
bitterly:
"Oh, it isn't fair, it isn't right, that she should have so
much and I so little! What have I ever done to be so
desolate and miserable, and never to find any
happiness, however hard I try to do what seems my
duty?" There was no answer, and she went slowly down
the long avenue, feeling that there was no cause for
hurry now, and even night and rain and wind were
better than her lonely room or Mrs. Flint's complaints.
Afar off the city lights shone faintly through the fog,
like pale lamps seen in dreams; the damp air cooled her
feverish cheeks; the road was dark and still, and she
longed to lie down and rest among the sodden leaves.
When she reached the bridge she saw the draw was up,
and a spectral ship was slowly passing through.
With no desire to mingle in the crowd that waited on
either side, she paused, and, leaning on the railing, let
her thoughts wander where they would. As she stood
there the heavy air seemed to clog her breath and wrap
her in its chilly arms. She felt as if the springs of life
were running down, and presently would stop; for, even
when the old question; "What shall I do?" came
haunting her, she no longer cared even to try to answer
it, and had no feeling but one of utter weariness. She
tried to shake off the strange mood that was stealing
over her, but spent body and spent brain were not
strong enough to obey her will, and, in spite of her
efforts to control it, the impulse that had seized her
grew more intense each moment. " Why should I work
and suffer any longer for myself alone?" she thought;
"why wear out my life struggling for the bread I have
no heart to eat? I am not wise enough to find my place,
nor patient enough to wait until it comes to me. Better
give up trying, and leave room for those who have
something to live for." Many a stronger soul has known
a dark hour when the importunate wish has risen that it
were possible and right to lay down the burdens that
oppress, the perplexities that harass, and hasten the
coming of the long sleep that needs no lullaby. Such an
hour was this to Christie, for, as she stood there, that
sorrowful bewilderment which we call despair came
over her, and ruled her with a power she could not
resist. A flight of steps close by led to a lumber wharf,
and, scarcely knowing why, she went down there, with
a vague desire to sit still somewhere, and think her way
out of the mist that seemed to obscure her mind. A
single tall lamp shone at the farther end of the platform,
and presently she found herself leaning her hot forehead
against the iron pillar, while she watched with curious
interest the black water rolling sluggishly below. She
knew it was no place for her, yet no one waited for her,
no one would care if she staid for ever, and, yielding to
the perilous fascination that drew her there, she lingered
with a heavy throbbing in her temples, and a troop of
wild fancies whirling through her brain. Something
white swept by below,- only a broken oar -- but she
began to wonder how a human body would look
floating through the night. It was an awesome fancy,
but it took possession of her, and, as it grew, her eyes
dilated, her breath came fast, and her lips fell apart, for
she seemed to see the phantom she-had conjured up,
and it wore the likeness of herself. With an ominous
chill creeping through her blood, and a growing tumult
in her mind, she thought, "I must go," but still stood
motionless, leaning over the wide gulf, eager to see
where that dead thing would pass away. So plainly did
she see it, so peaceful was the white face, so full of rest
the folded hands, so strangely like, and yet unlike,
herself, that she seemed to lose' her identity, and
wondered which was the real and which the imaginary
Christie. Lower and lower she bent; looser and looser
grew her hold upon the pillar; faster and faster beat the
pulses in her temples, and the rush of some blind
impulse was swiftly coming on, when a hand seized and
caught her back. For an instant every thing grew black
before her eyes, and the earth seemed to slip away from
underneath her feet. Then she was herself again, and
found that she was sitting on a pile of lumber, with her
head uncovered, and a woman's arm about her.
"Was I going to drown myself? " she asked, slowly,
with a fancy that she had been dreaming frightfully, and
some one had wakened her.
"You were most gone; but I came in time, thank God! 0
Christie! don't you know me? " Ah no fear of that; for
with one bewildered look, one glad cry of recognition,
Christie found her friend again, and was gathered close
to Rachel's heart. "My dear, my dear, what drove you to
it? Tell me all, and let me help you in your trouble, as
you helped me in mine," she said, as she tenderly laid
the poor, white face upon her breast, and wrapped her
shawl about the trembling figure clinging to her with
such passionate delight. "I have been ill; I worked too
hard; I'm not myself to-night. I owe money. People
disappoint and worry me; and I was so worn out, and
weak, and wicked, I think I meant to take my life."
"'No, dear; it was not you that meant to do it, but the
weakness and the trouble that bewildered you. Forget it
all, and rest a little, safe with me; then we'll talk again."
Rachel spoke soothingly, for Christie shivered and
sighed as if her own thoughts frightened her. For a
moment they sat silent, while the mist trailed its white
shroud above them, as if death had paused to beckon a
tired child away, but, finding her so gently cradled on a
warm, human heart, had relented and passed on, leaving
no waif but the broken oar for the river to carry toward
the sea. " Tell me about yourself, Rachel. Where have
you been so long? I've looked and waited for you ever
since the second little note you sent me on last
Christmas; but you never came."
" I've been away, dear heart, hard at work in another
city, larger and wickeder than this. I tried to get work
here, that I might be near you; but that cruel Cotton
always found me out; and I was so afraid I should get
desperate that I went away where I was not known.
There it came into my mind to do for others more
wretched than I what you had done for me. God put the
thought into my heart, and He helped me in my work,
for it has prospered wonderfully. All this year I have
been busy with it, and almost happy; for I felt that your
love made me strong to do it, and that, in time, I might
grow good enough to be your friend." "See what I am,
Rachel, and never say that any more!" " Hush, my poor
dear, and let me talk. You are not able to do any thing,
but rest, and listen. I knew how many poor souls went
wrong when the devil tempted them; and I gave all my
strength to saving those who were going the way I
went. I had no fear, no shame to overcome, for I was
one of them. They would listen to me, for I knew what I
spoke; they could believe in salvation, for I was saved;
they did not feel so outcast and forlorn when I told
them you had taken me into your innocent arms, and
loved me like a sister. With every one I helped my
power increased, and I felt as if I had washed away a
little of my own great sin. 0 Christie! never think it's
time to die till you are called; for the Lord leaves us till
we have done our work, and never sends more sin and
sorrow than we can bear and be the better for, if we
hold fast by Him." So beautiful and brave she looked,
so full of strength and yet of meek submission was her
voice, that Christie's heart was thrilled; for it was plain
that Rachel had learned how to distil balm from the
bitterness of life, and, groping in the mire to save lost
souls, had found her own salvation there. "Show me
how to grow pious, strong, and useful, as you are," she
said. "I am all wrong, and feel as if I never could get
right again, for I haven't energy enough to care what
becomes of me."
" I know the state, Christie: I've been through it all! but
when I stood where you stand now, there was no hand
to pull me back, and I fell into a blacker river than this
underneath our feet. Thank God, I came in time to save
you from either death! "' How did you find me? " asked
Christie, when she had echoed in her heart the
thanksgiving that came with such fervor from the
other's lips. " I passed you on the bridge. I did not see
your face, but you stood leaning there so wearily, and
looking down into the water, as I used to look, that I
wanted to speak, but did not; and I went on to comfort a
poor girl who is dying yonder. Something turned me
back, however; and when I saw you down here I knew
why I was sent. You were almost gone, but I kept you;
and when I had you in my arms I knew you, though it
nearly broke my heart to find you here. Now, dear,
come home. "Home! ah, Rachel, I've got no home, and
for want of one I shall be lost! " The lament that broke
from her was more pathetic than the tears that streamed
down, hot and heavy, melting from her heart the frost of
her despair. Her friend let her weep, knowing well the
worth of tears, and while Christie sobbed herself quiet,
Rachel took thought for her as tenderly as any mother.
When she had heard the story of Christie's troubles, she
stood up as if inspired with a happy thought, and
stretching both hands to her friend, said, with an air of
cheerful assurance most comforting to see:
" I'll take care of you; come with me, my poor Christie,
and I'll give you a home, very humble, but honest and
happy." "With you, Rachel?" "No, dear, I must go back
to my work, and you are not fit for that. Neither must
you go again to your own room, because for you it is
haunted, and the worst place you could be in. You want
change, and I'll give you one. It will seem queer at first,
but it is a wholesome place, and just what you need." "
I'll db any thing you tell me. I'm past thinking for
myself to-night, and only want to be taken care of till I
find strength and courage enough to stand alone," said
Christie, rising slowly and looking about her with an
aspect as helpless and hopeless as if the cloud of mist
was a wall of iron. Rachel put on her bonnet for her and
wrapped her shawl about her, saying, in a tender voice,
that warmed the other's heart:
"Close by lives a dear, good woman who often
befriends such as you and I. She will take you in
without a question, and love to do it, for she is the most
hospitable soul I know. Just tell her you want work, that
I sent you, and there will be no trouble. Then, when you
know her a little, confide in her, and you will never
come to such a pass as this again. Keep up your heart,
dear; I'll not leave you till you are safe." So cheerily she
spoke, so confident she looked, that the lost expression
passed from Christie's face, and hand in hand they went
away together, -- two types of the sad sisterhood
standing on either shore of the dark river that is spanned
by a Bridge of Sighs. Rachel led her friend toward the
city, and, coming to the mechanics' quarter, stopped
before the door of a small, old house. "Just knock,
say'Rachel sent me,' and you'll find yourself at home."
"Stay with me, or let me go with you. I can't lose you
again, for I need you very much," pleaded Christie,
clinging to her friend. "Not so much as that poor girl
dying all alone. She's waiting for me, and I must go.
But I'll write soon; and remember, Christie, I shall feel
as if I had only paid a very little of my debt if you go
back to the sad old life, and lose your faith and hope
again. God bless and keep you, and when we meet next
time let me find a happier face than this." Rachel kissed
it with her heart on her lips, smiled her brave sweet
smile, and vanished in the mist. Pausing a moment to
collect herself, Christie recollected that she had not
asked the name of the new friend whose help she was
about to ask. A little sign on the door caught her eye,
and, bending down, she managed to read by the dim
light of the street lamp these words:
"C. WILKINS, Clear-Starcher. "Laces done up in the
best style." Too tired to care whether a laundress or a
lady took her in, she knocked timidly, and, while she
waited for an answer to her summons, stood listening to
the noises within. A swashing sound as of water was
audible, likewise a scuffling as of flying feet; some one
clapped hands, and a voice said, warningly, "Into your
beds this instant minute or I'll come to you! Andrew
Jackson, give Gusty a boost; Ann Lizy, don't you tech
Wash's feet to tickle'em. Set pretty in the tub, Victory,
dear, while ma sees who's rappin'."
" Then heavy footsteps approached, the door opened
wide, and a large woman appeared, with fuzzy red hair,
no front teeth, and a plump, clean face, brightly
illuminated by the lamp she carried. "If you please,
Rachel sent me. She thought you might be able."
Christie got no further, for C. Wilkins put out a strong
bare arm, still damp, and gently drew her in, saying,
with the same motherly tone as when addressing her
children, " Come right in, dear, and don't mind the
clutter things is in. I'm givin' the children their Sat'day
scrubbin', and they will slop and kite 'round, no matter
ef I do spank 'em." Talking all the way in such an easy,
comfortable voice that Christie felt as if she must have
heard it before, Mrs. Wilkins led her unexpected guest
into a small kitchen, smelling suggestively of soap-suds
and warm flat-irons. In the middle of this apartment
was a large tub; in the tub a chubby child sat, sucking a
sponge and staring calmly at the new-comer with a pair
of big blue eyes, while little drops shone in the yellow
curls and on the rosy shoulders. " How pretty!" cried
Christie, seeing nothing else and stopping short to
admire this innocent little Venus rising from the sea. "
So she is! Ma's darlin' lamb! and ketchin' her death a
cold this blessed minnit. Set right down, my dear, and
tuck your wet feet into the oven. I'll have a dish o' tea
for you in less'n no time; and while it's drawin' I'll clap
Victory Adelaide into her bed." Christie sank into a
shabby but most hospitable old chair, dropped her
bonnet on the floor, put her feet in the oven, and,
leaning back, watched Mrs. Wilkins wipe the baby as if
she had come for that especial purpose. As Rachel
predicted, she found herself at home at once, and
presently was startled to hear a laugh from her own lips
when several children in red and yellow flannel nightgowns darted like meteors across the open doorway of
an adjoining room, with whoops and howls, bursts of
laughter, and antics of all sorts.
How pleasant it was; that plain room, with no
ornaments but the happy faces, no elegance, but
cleanliness, no wealth, but hospitality and lots of love.
This latter blessing gave the place its charm, for, though
Mrs. Wilkins threatened to take her infants' noses off if
they got out of bed again, or "put 'em in the kettle and
bile 'em " they evidently knew no fear, but gambolled
all the nearer to her for the threat; and she beamed upon
them with such maternal tenderness and pride that her
homely face grew beautiful in Christie's eyes. When the
baby was bundled up in a blanket and about to be set
down before the stove to simmer a trifle before being
put to bed, Christie held out her arms, saying with an
irresistible longing in her eyes and voice:
"Let me hold her! I love babies dearly, and it seems as
if it would do me more good than quarts of tea to
cuddle her, if she'll let me." " There now, that's real
sensible; and mother's bird'll set along with you as good
as a kitten. Toast her tootsies wal, for she's croupy, and
I have to be extra choice of her.' "How good it feels! "
sighed Christie, half devouring the warm and rosy little
bunch in her lap, while baby lay back luxuriously,
spreading her pink toes to the pleasant warmth and
smiling sleepily up in the hungry face that hung over
her. Mrs. Wilkins's quick eyes saw it all, and she said to
herself, in the closet, as she cut bread and rattled down
a cup and saucer:
"That's what she wants, poor creeter; I'll let her have a
right nice time, and warm and feed and chirk her up,
and then I'll see what's to be done for her. She ain't one
of the common sort, and goodness only knows what
Rachel sent her here for. She's poor and sick, but:
she ain't bad. I can tell that by her face, and she's the
sort I like to help. It's a mercy I ain't eat my supper, so
she can have that bit of meat and the pie." Putting a tray
on the little table, the good soul set forth all she had to
give, and offered it with such hospitable warmth that
Christie ate and drank with unaccustomed appetite,
finishing off deliciously with a kiss from baby before
she was borne away by her mother to the back
bedroom, where peace soon reigned. "Now let me tell
you who I am, and how I came to you in such an
unceremonious way," began Christie, when her hostess
returned and found her warmed, refreshed, and
composed by a woman's three best comforters, -- kind
words, a baby, and a cup of tea. "'Pears to me, dear, I
wouldn't rile myself up by telling any werryments tonight, but git right warm inter bed, and have a good
long sleep," said Mrs. Wilkins, without a ray of
curiosity in her wholesome red face. "But you don't
know any thing about me, and I may be the worst
woman in the world,?" cried Christie, anxious to prove
herself worthy of such confidence. "I know that you
want takin' care of, child, or Rachel wouldn't a sent you.
Ef I can help any one, I don't want no introduction; and
ef you be the wust woman in the world (which you
ain't), I wouldn't shet my door on you, for then you'd
need a lift more'n you do now."
Christie could only put out her hand, and mutely thank
her new friend with full eyes. "You're fairly tuckered
out, you poor soul, so you jest come right up chamber
and let me tuck you up, else you'll be down sick. It ain't
a mite of inconvenience; the room is kep for company,
and it's all ready, even to a clean night-cap. I'm goin' to
clap this warm flat to your feet when you're fixed; it's
amazin' comfortin' and keeps your head cool." Up they
went to a tidy little chamber, and Christie found herself
laid down to rest none too soon, for she was quite worn
out. Sleep began to steal over her the moment her head
touched the pillow, in spite of the much beruffled cap
which Mrs. Wilkins put on with visible pride in its
stiffly crimped borders. She was dimly conscious of a
kind hand tucking her up, a comfortable voice purring
over her, and, best of all, a motherly good-night kiss,
then the weary world faded quite away and she was at
rest.
Chapter VIII
A Cure For Despair. Lisha Wilkins.
WHEN Christie opened the eyes that had closed so
wearily, afternoon sunshine streamed across the room,
and seemed the herald of happier days. Refreshed by
sleep, and comforted by grateful recollections of her
kindly welcome, she lay tranquilly enjoying the friendly
atmosphere about her, with so strong a feeling that a
skilful hand had taken the rudder, that she felt very little
anxiety or curiosity about the haven which was to
receive her boat after this narrow escape from
shipwreck.
Her eye wandered to and fro, and brightened as it went.;
for though a poor, plain room it was as neat as hands
could, make it, and so glorified with sunshine that she
thought it a lovely place, in spite of the yellow paper
with green cabbage roses on it, the gorgeous plaster
statuary on the mantel-piece, and the fragrance of
dough-nuts which pervaded the air. Every thing
suggested home life, humble but happy, and Christie's
solitary heart warmed at the sights and sounds about
her. A half open closet-door gave her glimpses of little
frocks and jackets, stubby little shoes, and go-tomeeting hats all in a row. From below came up the
sound of childish voices chattering, childish feet
trotting to and fro, and childish laughter sounding
sweetly through the Sabbath stillness of the place. From
a room near by, came the soothing creak of a rockingchair, the rustle of a newspaper, and now and then a
scrap of conversation common-place enough, but
pleasant to hear, because so full of domestic love and
confidence; and, as she listened, Christie pictured Mrs.
Wilkins and her husband taking their rest together after
the week's hard work was done. " I wish I could stay
here; it's so comfortable and home-like. I wonder if
they wouldn't let me have this room, and help me to
find some better work than sewing? I'll get up and ask
them," thought Christie, feeling an irresistible desire to
stay, and strong repugnance to returning to the room
she had left, for, as Rachel truly said, it was haunted for
her. When she opened the door to go down, Mrs.
Wilkins bounced out of her rocking-chair and hurried to
meet her with a smiling face, saying all in one breath:
"Good mornin', dear! Rested well, I hope? I'm proper
glad to hear it. Now come right down and have your
dinner. I kep it hot, for I couldn't bear to wake you up,
you was sleepin' so beautiful." "I was so worn out I
slept like. a baby, and feel like a new creature. It was so
kind of you to take me in, and I'm so grateful I don't
know how to show it," said Christie, warmly, as her
hostess ponderously descended the complaining stairs
and ushered her into the tidy kitchen from which tubs
and flat-irons were banished one day in the week.
"Lawful sakes, the' ain't nothing to be grateful for,
child, and you're heartily welcome to the little I done.
We are country folks in our ways, though we be livin'
in the city, and we have a reg'lar country dinner
Sundays. Hope you'll relish it; my vittles is clean ef
they ain't rich." As she spoke, Mrs. Wilkins dished up
baked beans, Indian-pudding, and brown bread enough
for half a dozen. Christie was hungry now, and ate with
an appetite that delighted the good lady who vibrated
between her guest and her children, shut up in the
settin'-room."
"Now please let me tell you all about myself, for I am
afraid you think me something better than I am. If I ask
help from you, it is right that you should know whom
you are helping," said Christie, when the table was
cleared and her hostess came and sat down beside her.
"Yes, my dear, free your mind, and then we'll fix things
up right smart. Nothin' I like better, and Lisha says I
have considerable of a knack that way," replied Mrs.
Wilkins, with a smile, a nod, and an air of interest most
reassuring. So Christie told her story, won to entire
confidence by the sympathetic face opposite, and the
motherly pats so gently given by the big, rough hand
that often met her own. When all was told, Christie said
very earnestly:
" I am ready to go to work to-morrow, and will do any
thing I can find, but I should love to stay here a little
while, if I could; I do so dread to be alone. Is it
possible? I mean to pay my board of course, and help
you besides if you'll let me." Mrs. Wilkins glowed with
pleasure at this compliment, and leaning toward
Christie, looked into her face a moment in silence, as if
to test the sincerity of the wish. In that moment Christie
saw what steady, sagacious eyes the woman had; so
clear, so honest that she looked through them into the
great, warm heart below, and looking forgot the fuzzy,
red hair, the paucity of teeth, the faded gown, and felt
only the attraction of a nature genuine and genial as the
sunshine dancing on the kitchen floor. Beautiful souls
often get put into plain bodies, but they cannot be
hidden, and have a power all their own, the greater for
the unconsciousness or the humility which gives it
grace. Christie saw and felt this then, and when the
homely woman spoke, listened to her with implicit
confidence. "My dear, I'd no more send you away now
than I would my Adelaide, for you need looking after
for a spell, most as much as she doos. You've been
thinkin' and broodin' too much, and sewin' yourself to
death._ We'll stop all that, and keep you so busy there
won't be no time for the hypo. You're one of them that
can't live alone without starvin' somehow, so I'm jest
goin' to turn you in among them children to paster, so to
speak. That's wholesome and fillin' for you, and
goodness knows it will be a puffect charity to. me, for
I'm goin' to be dreadful drove with gettin' up curtins and
all manner of things, as spring comes on. So it ain't no
favor on my part, and you can take out your board in
tendin' baby and putterin' over them little tykes."
"I should like it so much! But I forgot my debt to Mrs.
Flint; perhaps she won't let me go," said Christie, with
an anxious cloud coming over her brightening face. "
Merciful, suz! don't you be werried about her. I'll see to
her, and ef she acts ugly Lisha'll fetch her round; men
can always settle such things better'n we can, and he's a
dreadful smart man Lisha is. We'll go to-morrer and get
your belongins, and then settle right down for a spell;
and by-an'-by when you git a trifle more chipper we'll
find a nice place in the country some'rs. That's what you
want; nothin' like green grass and woodsy smells to
right folks up. When I was a gal, ef I got low in iny
mind, or riled in my temper, I jest went out and grubbed
in the gardin, or made hay, or walked a good piece, and
it fetched me round beautiful. Never failed; so I come
to see that good fresh dirt is fust rate physic for folk's
spirits as it is for wounds, as they tell on."
"That sounds sensible and pleasant, and I like it. Oh, it
is so beautiful to feel that somebody cares for you a
little bit, and you ain't one too many in the world,"
sighed Christie. "Don't you never feel that agin, my
dear. What's the Lord for ef He ain't to hold on to in
times of trouble. Faith ain't wuth much ef it's only lively
in fair weather; you've got to believe hearty and stan' by
the Lord through thick and thin, and He'll stan' by you
as no one else begins to. I remember of havin' this bore
in upon me by somethin' that happened to a man I
knew. He got blowed up in a powder-mill, and when
folks asked him what he thought when the bust come,
he said, real sober and impressive:' Wal, it come
through me, like a flash, that I'd served the Lord as
faithful as I knew how for a number a years, and I
guessed He'd fetch me through somehow, and He did.'
Sure enough the man warn't killed; I'm bound to
confess he was shook dreadful, but his faith warn't."
Christie could not help smiling at the story, but she
liked it, and sincerely wished she could imitate the hero
of it in his piety, not his powder. She was about to say
so when the sound of approaching steps announced the
advent of her host. She had been rather impressed with
the "smartness" of Lisha by his wife's praises, but when
a small, sallow, sickly looking man came in she
changed her mind; for not even an immensely stiff
collar, nor a pair of boots that seemed composed
entirely of what the boys call " creak leather," could
inspire her with confidence. Without a particle of
expression in his yellow face, Mr. Wilkins nodded to
the stranger over the picket fence of his collar, lighted
his pipe, and clumped away to enjoy his afternoon
promenade without compromising himself by a single
word. His wife looked after him with an admiring gaze
as she said:
"Them boots is as good as an advertisement, for he
made every stitch on 'em himself;" then she added,
laughing like a girl:
" It's redick'lus my bein' so proud of Lisha, but ef a
woman ain't a right to think wal of her own husband, I
should like to know who has!" Christie was afraid that
Mrs. Wilkins had seen her disappointment in her face,
and tried, with wifely zeal, to defend her lord from even
a disparaging thought. Wishing to atone for this
transgression she was about to sing the praises of the
wooden-faced Elisha, but was spared any polite fibs by
the appearance of a small girl who delivered an urgent
message to the effect, that ":Mis Plumly was down sick
and wanted Mis Wilkins to run over and set a spell." As
the good lady hesitated with an involuntary glance at
her guest, Christie said quickly:
"Don't mind me; I'll take care of the house for you if
you want to go.; You may be sure I won't run off with
the children or steal the spoons." "I ain't a mite afraid of
anybody wantin' to steal them little toads; and as for
spoons, I ain't got a silver one to bless myself with,"
laughed Mrs. Wilkins. "I guess I will go, then, ef you
don't mind, as it's only acrost the street. Like's not
settin' quiet will be better for you'n talkin', for I'm a
dreadful hand to gab when I git started. Tell Mis
Plumly I'm a comin'." Then, as the child ran off, the
stout lady began to rummage in her closet, saying, as
she rattled and slammed:
" I'1 jest take her a drawin' of tea and a couple of nutcakes:
mebby she'll relish'em, for I shouldn't wonder ef she
hadn't had a mouthful this blessed day. She's dreadful
slack at the best of times, but no one can much wonder,
seein' she's got nine children, and is jest up from a
rheumatic fever. I'm sure I never grudge a meal of
vittles or a hand's turn to such as she is, though she does
beat all for dependin' on her neighbors. I'm a thousand
times obleeged. You needn't werry about the children,
only don't let 'em git lost, or burnt, or pitch out a
winder; and when it's done give 'em the patty-cake
that's bakin' for 'em." With which maternal orders Mrs.
Wilkins assumed a sky-blue bonnet, and went beaming
away with several dishes genteelly hidden under her
purple shawl. Being irresistibly attracted toward the
children Christie opened the door and took a survey of
her responsibilities. Six lively infants were congregated
in the "settin'room," and chaos seemed to have come
again, for every sort of destructive amusement was in
full operation. George Washington, the eldest blossom,
was shearing a resigned kitten; Gusty and Ann Eliza
were concocting mud pies in the ashes; Adelaide
Victoria was studying the structure of lamp-wicks,
while Daniel Webster and Andrew Jackson were
dragging one another in a clothes-basket, to the great
detriment of the old carpet and still older chariot.
Thinking that some employment more suited to the day
might be introduced, Christie soon made friends with
these young' persons, and, having rescued the kitten,,
banished the basket, lured the elder girls from their
mud-piety, and quenched the curiosity of the
Pickwickian Adelaide, she proposed teaching them
some little hymns. The idea was graciously received,
and the class decorously seated in a row. But before a
single verse was given out, Gusty, being of a housewifely turn of mind, suggested that the patty-cake might
burn. Instant alarm pervaded the party, and a precipitate
rush was made for the cooking-stove, where Christie
proved by ocular demonstration that the cake showed
no signs of baking, much less of burning. The family
pronounced themselves satisfied, after each member
had poked a grimy little finger into the doughy
delicacy, whereon one large raisin reposed in proud
pre-eminence over the vulgar herd of caraways. Order
being with difficulty restored, Christie taught her flock
an appropriate hymn, and was flattering herself that
their youthful minds were receiving a devotional bent,
when they volunteered a song, and incited thereunto by
the irreverent Wash, burst forth with a gem from
Mother Goose, closing with a smart skirmish of arms
and legs that set all law and order at defiance. Hoping
to quell the insurrection Christie invited the breathless
rioters to calm themselves by looking at the pictures in
the big Bible. But, unfortunately, her explanations were
so vivid that her audience were fired with a desire to
enact some of the scenes portrayed, and no persuasions
could keep them from playing Ark on the spot. The
clothes-basket was elevated upon two chairs, and into it
marched the birds of the air and the beasts of the field,
to judge by the noise, and all set sail, with Washington
at the helm, Jackson and Webster plying the clothes and
pudding-sticks for oars, while the young ladies rescued
their dolls from the flood, and waved their hands to
imaginary friends who were not unnindful of the
courtesies of life even in the act of drowning. Finding
her authority defied Christie left the rebels to their own
devices, and sitting in a corner, began to think about her
own affairs. But before. she had time to get anxious or
perplexed the children diverted her mind, as if the little
flibberty-gibbets knew that their pranks and perils were
far wholesomer for her just then than brooding. The
much-enduring kitten being sent forth as a dove upon
the waters failed to return with the olive-branch; of
which peaceful emblem there was soon great need, for
mutiny broke out, and spread with disastrous rapidity.
Ann Eliza slapped Gusty because she had the biggest
bandbox; Andrew threatened to " chuck " Daniel
overboard if he continued to trample on the fraternal
toes, and in the midst of the fray, by some unguarded
motion, Washington capsized the ship and precipitated
the patriarchal family into the bosom of the deep.
Christie flew to the rescue, and, hydropathically treated,
the anguish of bumps and bruises was soon assuaged.
Then appeared the appropriate moment for a story, and
gathering the dilapidated party about her she soon
enraptured them by a recital of the immortal history of "
Frank and the little dog Trusty." Charmed with her
success she was about to tell another moral tale, but no
sooner had she announced the name, " The Three
Cakes," when, like an electric flash a sudden
recollection seized the young Wilkinses, and with one
voice they demanded their lawful prize, sure that now it
must be done. Christie had forgotten all about it, and
was harassed with secret misgivings as she headed the
investigating committee. With skipping of feet and
clapping of hands the eager tribe surrounded the stove,
and with fear and trembling Christie drew forth a
melancholy cinder, where, like Casablanca, the lofty
raisin still remained, blackened, but undaunted, at its
post. Then were six little vials of wrath poured out upon
her devoted head, and sounds of lamentation filled the
air, for the irate Wilkinses refused to be comforted till
the rash vow to present each member of the outraged
family with a private cake produced a lull, during which
the younger ones were decoyed into the back yard, and
the three elders solaced themselves with mischief.
Mounted on mettlesome broomsticks Andrew and
Daniel were riding merrily away to the Banbury Cross,
of blessed memory, and little Vic was erecting a pagoda
of oyster-shells, under Christie's superintendence, when
a shrill scream from within sent horsemen and
architects flying to the rescue. Gusty's pinafore was in a
blaze; Ann Eliza was dancing frantically about her
sister as if bent on making a suttee of herself, while
George Washington hung out of window, roaring, "
Fire!" "water!" "engine!" "pa! " with a presence of mind
worthy of his sex. A speedy application of the hearthrug quenched the conflagration, and when a minute
burn had been enveloped in cotton-wool, like a gem, a
coroner sat upon the pinafore and investigated the case.
It appeared that the ladies were " only playing paper
dolls," when Wash, sighing for the enlightenment of his
race, proposed to' make a bonfire, and did so with an
old book; but Gusty, with a firm belief in future
punishment, tried to save it, and fell a victim to her
principles, as the virtuous are very apt to do.
The book was brought into court, and proved to be an
ancient volume of ballads, cut, torn, and half consumed.
Several peculiarly developed paper dolls, branded here
and there with large letters, like galley-slaves, were
then produced by the accused, and the judge could with
difficulty preserve her gravity when she found "John
Gilpin" converted into a painted petticoat, " The Bay of
Biscay, O," situated in the crown of a hat, and "Chevy
Chase " issuing from the mouth of a triangular
gentleman, who, like Dickens's cherub, probably sung it
by ear, having no lungs to speak of. It was further
apparent from the agricultural appearance of the room
that beans had been sowed broadcast by means of the
apple-corer, which Wash had converted into a pop-gun
with a mechanical ingenuity worthy of more general
appreciation. He felt this deeply, and when Christie
reproved him for leading his sisters astray, he resented
the liberty she took, and retired in high dudgeon to the
cellar, where he appeared to set up a menagerie, -- for
bears, lions, and unknown animals, endowed with great
vocal powers, were heard to solicit patronage from
below. Somewhat exhausted by her labors, Christie
rested, after clearing up the room, while the children
found a solace for all afflictions in the consumption of
relays of bread and molasses, which infantile restorative
occurred like an inspiration to the mind of their
guardian. Peace reigned for fifteen minutes; then came
a loud crash from the cellar, followed by a violent
splashing, and wild cries of, " Oh, oh, oh, I've fell into
the pork barrel! I'm drownin', I'm drownin'!"
Down rushed Christie, and the sticky innocents ran
screaming after, to behold their pickled brother fished
up from the briny deep. A spectacle well calculated to
impress upon their infant minds the awful consequences
of straying from the paths of virtue. At this crisis Mrs.
Wilkins providentially appeared, breathless, but brisk
and beaming, and in no wise dismayed by the plight of
her luckless son, fbr a ten years' acquaintance with
Wash's dauntless nature had inured his mother to "
didoes " that would have appalled most women. " Go
right up chamber, and change every rag on you, and
don't come down agin till I rap on the ceilin'; you
dreadful boy, disgracin' your family by sech actions.
I'm sorry I was kep' so long, but Mis Plumly got tellin'
her werryments, and 'peared to take so much comfort in
it I couldn't bear to stop her. Then I jest run round to
your place and told that woman that you was safe and
well, along'r friends, and would call in tomorrer to get
your things. She'd ben so scarf by your not comin' home
that she was as mild as milk, so you won't have no
trouble with her, I expect." "Thank you very much!
How kind you are, and how tired you must be! Sit down
and let me take your things," cried Christie, more
relieved than she could express. "Lor', no, I'm fond of
walkin', but bein' ruther hefty it takes my breath away
some to hurry. I'm afraid these children have tuckered
you out though. They are proper good gen'lly, but when
they do take to trainen they're a sight of care," said Mrs.
Wilkins, as she surveyed her imposing bonnet with
calm satisfaction.
"I've enjoyed it very much, and it's done me good, for I
haven't laughed so much for six months as I have this
afternoon," answered Christie, and it was quite true, for
she had been too busy to think of herself or her woes.
"Wal, I thought likely it would chirk you up some, or I
shouldn't have went," and Mrs. Wilkins put away a
contented smile with her cherished bonnet, for
Christie's face had grown so much brighter since she
saw it last, that the good woman felt sure her treatment
was the right one. At supper Lisha reappeared, and
while his wife and children talked incessantly, he ate
four slices of bread and butter, three pieces of pie, five
dough-nuts, and drank a small ocean of tea out of his
saucer. Then, evidently feeling that he had done his
duty like a man, he gave Christie another nod, and
disappeared again without a word. When she had done
up her dishes Mrs. Wilkins brought out a few books and
papers, and said to Christie, who sat apart by the
window, with the old shadow creeping over her face:
"Now don't feel lonesome, my dear, but jest lop right
down on the soffy and have a sociable kind of a time.
Lisha's gone down street for the evenin'. I'll keep the
children as quiet as one woman can, and you may read
or rest, or talk, jest as you're a mind." "Thank you; I'll
sit here and rock little Vic to sleep for you. I don't care
to read, but I'd like to have you talk to me, for it seems
as if I'd known you a long time and it does me good,"
said Christie, as she settled herself and baby on the old
settee which had served as a cradle for six young
Wilkinses, and now received the honorable name of
sofa in its old age. Mrs. Wilkins looked gratified, as she
settled her brood round the table with a pile of pictorial
papers to amuse them. Then having laid herself out to
be agreeable, she sat thoughtfully rubbing the bridge of
her nose, at a loss how to begin. Presently Christie
helped her by an involuntary sigh. What's the matter,
dear? Is there any thing I can do to make you
comfortable?" asked the kind soul, alert at once, and
ready to offer sympathy. "I'm very cosy, thank you, and
I don't know why I sighed. It's a way I've got into when
I think of my worries," explained Christie, in haste. "
Wal, dear, I wouldn't ef I was you. Don't keep turnin'
your troubles over. Git atop of 'em somehow, and stay
there ef you can," said Mrs. Wilkins, very earnestly.
"But that's just what I can't do. I've lost all my spirits
and courage, and got into a dismal state of mind. You
seem to be very cheerful, and yet you must have a good
deal to try you sometimes. I wish you'd tell me how you
do it;" and Christie looked wistfully into that other face,
so plain, yet so placid, wondering to see how little
poverty, hard work, and many cares had soured or
saddened it. "Really I don't know, unless it's jest doin'
whatever comes along, and doin' of it hearty, sure that
things is all right, though very often I don't see it at
fust." " Do you see it at last? " "(Gen'lly I do; and if I
don't I take it on trust, same as children do what older
folks tell 'em; and by me -- by when I'm grown up in
spiritual things I'll understan' as the dears do, when they
git to be men and women." That suited Christie, and she
thought hopefully within herself:
" This woman has got the sort of religion I want, if it
makes her what she is. Some day I'll get her to tell me
where she found it." Then aloud she said:
"But it's so hard to be patient and contented when
nothing happens as you want it to, and you don't get
your share of happiness, no matter how much you try to
deserve it." "It ain't easy to bear, I know, but having
tried my own way and made a dreadful mess on't, I
concluded that the Lord knows what's best for us, and
things go better when He manages than when we go
scratchin' round and can't wait." "Tried your own way?
How do you mean? " asked Christie, curiously; for she
liked to hear her hostess talk, and found something
besides amusement in the conversation, which seemed
to possess a fresh country flavor as well as country
phrases. Mrs. Wilkins smiled all over her plump face,
as if she liked to tell her experience, and having
hunched sleepy little Andy more comfortably into her
lap, and given a preparatory hem or two, she began with
great good-will. "It happened a number a years ago and
ain't much of a story anyway. But you're welcome to it,
as some of it is rather humorsome, the laugh may do
you good ef the story don't. We was livin' down to the
east'ard at the time. It was a real pretty place; the house
stood under a couple of maples and a gret brook come
foamin' down the rayvine and away through the
medders to the river. Dear sakes, seems as ef I see it
now, jest as I used to settin' on the doorsteps with the
laylocks all in blow, the squirrels jabberin' on the wall,
and the saw-mill screekin' way off by the dam."
Pausing a moment, Mrs. Wilkins looked musingly at
the steam of the tea-kettle, as if through its silvery haze
she saw her early home again. Wash promptly roused
her from this reverie by tumbling off the boiler with a
crash. His mother picked him up and placidly went on,
falling more and more into the country dialect which
city life had not yet polished. "I oughter hev been the
contentedest woman alive, but I warn't, for you see I'd
worked at millineryin' before I was married, and had an
easy time on't, Afterwards the children come along
pretty fast, there was sights of work to do, and no time
for pleasurin' so I got wore out, and used to hanker after
old times in a dreadful wicked way.." Finally I got
acquainted with a Mis Bascum, and she done me a sight
of harm. You see, havin' few pies of'her own to bake,
she was fond of puttin' her fingers into her neighborses,
but she done it so neat that no one mistrusted she was
takin' all the sarce and leavin' all the crust to them, as
you may say. Wal, I told her my werryments and she
sympathized real hearty, and said I didn't ought to stan'
it, but have things to suit me, and enjoy myself, as other
folks did. So when she put it into my head I thought it
amazin' good advice, and. Jest went and done as she
told me. "Lisha was the kindest man you ever see, so
when I up and said I warn't goin' to drudge round no
more, but must hev a girl, he got one, and goodness
knows what a trial she was. After she came I got
dreadful slack, and left the house and the children to
Hen'retta, and went pleasurin' frequent all in my best. I
always was a dressy woman in them days, and Lisha
give me his earnin's real lavish, bless his heart! and I
went and spent 'em on my sinful gowns and bunnets."
Here Mrs. Wilkins stopped to give a remorseful groan
and stroke her faded dress, as if she found great comfort
in its dinginess. " It ain't no use tellin' all I done, but I
had full swing, and at fust I thought luck was in my
dish sure. But it warn't, seei' I didn't deserve it, and I
had to take my mess of trouble, which was needful and
nourishin,' ef I'd had the grace to see it so. "Lisha got
into debt, and no wonder, with me a wastin' of his
substance; Hen'retta went off suddin', with whatever
she could lay her hands on, and everything was at sixes
I and sevens. Lisha's patience give out at last, for I was
dreadful fractious, knowin' it was all my fault. The
children seemed to git out of sorts, too, and acted like
time in the primer, with croup and pins, and whoopin'cough and temper. I declare I used to think the pots and
kettles biled over to spite each other and me too in them
days. "All this was nuts to Mis Bascum, and she kep'
advisin' and encouragin' of me, and I didn't see through
her a mite, or guess that settin' folks by the ears was as
relishin' to her as bitters is to some. Merciful, suz! what
a piece a work we did make betwixt us! I scolded and
moped cause I couldn't have my way; Lisha swore and
threatened to take to drinkin' ef I didn't make home
more comfortable; the children run" wild, and the house
was gittin' too hot to hold us, when we was brought up
with a round turn, and I see the redicklousness of my
doin's in time. "One day Lisha come home tired and
cross, for bills was pressin', work slack, and folks
talkin' about us as ef they'd nothin' else to do. I was
dishin' up dinner, feelin' as nervous as a witch, for a
whole batch of bread had burnt to a cinder while I was
trimmin' a new bunnet, Wash had scart me most to
death swallerin' a cent, and the steak had been on the
floor more'n once, owin' to my havin' babies, dogs, cats,
or hens under my feet the whole blessed time. " Lisha
looked as black as thunder, throwed his hat into a
corner, and came along to the sink where I was skinnin'
pertaters. As he washed his hands, I asked what the
matter was; but he only muttered and slopped, and I
couldn't git nothin' out of him, for he ain't talkative at
the best of times as you see, and when he's werried
corkscrews wouldn't draw a word from him. " Bein'
riled myself didn't mend matters, and so we fell to
hectorin' one another right smart. He said somethin' that
dreened my last drop of patience; I give a sharp answer,
and fust thing I knew he up with his hand and slapped
me. It warn't a hard blow by no means, only a kind of a
wet spat side of the head; but I thought I should have
flew, and was as mad as ef I'd been knocked down. You
never see a man look so shamed as Lisha did, and ef I'd
been wise I should have made up the quarrel then. But I
was a fool. I jest flung fork, dish, pertaters and all into
the pot, and says, as ferce as you please:
"'Lisha Wilkins, when you can treat me decent you may
come and fetch me back; you won't see me till then, and
so I tell you.' "Then I made a bee-line for Mis
Bascum's;' told her the whole story, had a good cry, and
was all ready to go home in half an hour, but Lisha
didn't come. "Wal, that night passed, and what a long
one it was to be sure! and me without a wink of sleep,
thinkin' of Wash and the cent, my emptins and the
baby. Next day come, but no Lisha, no message, no
nothin', and I began to think I'd got my match though I
had a sight of grit in them days. I sewed, and Mis
Bascum she clacked; but I didn't say much, and jest
worked like sixty to pay for my keep, for I warn't goin'
to be beholden to her for nothin'. "The day dragged on
terrible slow, and at last I begged her to go and git me a
clean dress, for I'd come off jest as I was, and folks kep'
droppin' in, for the story was all round, thanks to Mis
Bascum's long tongue. " Wal, she went, and ef you'll
believe me Lisha wouldn't let her in! He handed my
best things out a winder and told her to tell me they
were gittin' along fust rate with Florindy Walch to do
the work. He hoped I'd have a good time, and not
expect him for a considerable spell, for he liked a quiet
house, and now he'd got it. "When I heard that, I knew
he must be provoked the wust kind, for he ain't a hash
man by nater. I could have crep' in at the winder ef he
wouldn't open the door, I was so took down by that
message. But Mis Bascum wouldn't hear of it, and kep'
stirrin' of me up till I was ashamed to eat'umble. pie
fust; so I waited to see how soon he'd come round. But
he had the best on't you see, for he'd got the babies and
lost a cross wife, while I'd lost every thing but Mis
Bascum, who grew hatefuler to me every hour, for I
begun to mistrust she was a mischief-maker,-- widders
most always is, -- seein' how she pampered up my pride
and'peared to like the quarrel.:" I thought I should have
died more'n once, for sure as you live it went on three
mortal days, and of all miser'ble creeters I was the
miser'blest. Then I see how wicked and ungrateful I'd
been; how I'd shirked my bounden duty and scorned my
best blessins. There warn't a hard job that ever I'd hated
but what grew easy when I remembered who it was
done for; there warn't a trouble or a care that I wouldn't
have welcomed hearty, nor one hour of them dear
fractious babies that didn't seem precious when I'd gone
and left'em. I'd got time to rest enough now, and might
go pleasuring all day long; but I couldn't do it, and
would have given a dozin bunnets trimmed to kill ef I
could only have been back moilin' in my old kitchen
with the children hangin' round me and Lisha a comin'
in cheerful from his work as he used to'fore I spoilt his
home for him. How sing'lar it is folks never do know
when they are wal off!"
"I know it now," said Christie, rocking lazily to and fro,
with a face almost as tranquil as little Vic's, lying half
asleep in her lap. " Glad to hear it, my dear. As I was
goin' on to say, when Saturday come, a tremendus
storm set in, and it rained guns all day. I never shall
forgit it, for I was hankerin' after baby, and dreadful
werried about the others, all bein' croupy, and Florindy
with no more idee of nussin' than a baa lamb. The rain
come down like a reg'lar deluge, but I didn't seem to
have no ark to run to. As night come on things got wuss
and wuss, for the wind blowed the roof off Mis
Bascum's barn and stove in the butt'ry window; the
brook riz and went ragin' every which way, and you
never did see such a piece of work. " My heart was
most broke by that time, and I knew I should give
in'fore Monday. But I set and sewed and listened to the
tinkle tankle of the drops in the pans set round to
ketch'em, for the house leaked like a sieve. Mis Bascum
was down suller putterin' about, for every kag and sarce
jar was afloat. Moses, her brother, was lookin' after his
stock and tryin' to stop the damage. All of a sudden he
bust in lookin' kinder wild, and settin' down the lantern,
he sez, sez he: 'You're ruthern an unfortinate woman tonight, Mis Wilkins. "How so?' sez I, as ef nuthin' was
the matter already. " Why,' sez he,'the spilins have give
way up in the rayvine, and the brook's come down like
a river, upsot your lean-to, washed the mellion patch
slap into the road, and while your husband was tryin' to
git the pig out of the pen, the water took a turn and
swep him away.' "' Drownded?' sez I, with only breath
enough for that one word.'Shouldn't wonder,' sez
Moses,'nothin' ever did come up alive after goin' over
them falls.' "It come over me like a streak of lightenin';
every thin' kinder slewed round, and I dropped in the
first faint I ever had in my life. Next I knew Lisha was
holdin' of me and cryin' fit to kill himself. I thought I
was dreamin, and only had wits enough to give a sort of
permiscuous grab at him and call out:
"'Oh, Lisha! ain't you drownded?' He give a gret start at
that, swallered down his sobbin', and sez as lovin' as
ever a man did in this world:
" Bless your dear heart, Cynthy, it warn't me it was the
pig;' and then fell to kissin' of me, till betwixt laughin'
and cryin' I was most choked. Deary me, it all comes
back so livin' real it kinder takes my breath away." And
well it might, for the good soul entered so heartily into
her story that she unconsciously embellished it with
dramatic illustrations. At the slapping episode she flung
an invisible "fork, dish, and pertaters" into an imaginary
kettle, and glared; when the catastrophe arrived, she fell
back upon her chair to express fainting; gave Christie's
arm the "permiscuous grab" at the proper moment, and
uttered the repentant Lisha's explanation with an
incoherent pathos that forbid a laugh at the sudden
introduction of the porcine martyr. " What did you do
then?" asked Christie in a most flattering state of
interest. "Oh, law! I went right home and hugged them
children for a couple of hours stiddy," answered Mrs.
Wilkins, as if but one conclusion was possible. "Did all
your troubles go down with the pig?" asked Christie,
presently. "Massy, no, we're all poor, feeble worms, and
the best meanin' of us fails too often," sighed Mrs.
Wilkins, as she tenderly adjusted the sleepy head of the
young worm in her lap. " After that scrape I done my
best; Lisha was as meek as a whole flock of sheep, and
we give Mis Bascum a wide berth. Things went lovely
for ever so long, and though, after a spell, we had our
ups and downs, as is but natural to human creeters, we
never come to such a pass agin. Both on us tried real
hard; whenever I felt my temper risin' or discontent
comin' on I remembered them days and kep' a taut rein;
and as for Lisha he never said a raspin' word, or got
sulky, but what he'd bust out laughin' after it and say:
'Bless you, Cynthy, it warn't me, it was the pig."' Mrs.
Wilkins' hearty laugh fired a long train of lesser ones,
for the children recognized a household word. Christie
enjoyed the joke, and even the tea-kettle boiled over as
if carried away by the fun. "Tell some more, please,"
said Christie, when the merriment subsided, for she felt
her spirits rising. " There's npthin' more to tell, except
one thing that prevented my ever forgittin' the lesson I
got then. My little Almiry took cold that week and
pined away rapid. She'd always been so ailin' I never
expected to raise her, and more'n once in them sinful
tempers of mine I'd thought it would be a mercy ef she
was took out of her pain. But when I laid away that
patient, sufferin' little creeter I found she was the
dearest of 'em all. I most broke my heart to hev her
back, and never, never forgive myself for leavin' her
that time." With trembling lips and full eyes Mrs.
Wilkins stopped to wipe her features generally on
Andrew Jackson's pinafore, and heave a remorseful
sigh. "And this is how you came to be the cheerful,
contented woman you are?" said Christie, hoping to
divert the mother's mind from that too tender memory. (
Yes," she answered, thoughtfully, " I told you Lisha
was a smart man; he give me a good lesson, and it set
me to thinkin' serious.'Pears to me trouble is a kind of
mellerin' process, and ef you take it kindly it doos you
good, and you learn to be glad of it. I'm sure Lisha and
me is twice as fond of one another, twice as willin' to
work, and twice as patient withour trials sense dear
little Almiry died, and times was hard. I ain't what I
ought to be, not by a long chalk, but I try to live up to
my light, do my duty cheerful, love my neighbors, and
fetch up my family in the fear of God. Ef I do this the
best way I know how, I'm sure I'll get my rest some
day, and the good Lord won't forgit Cynthy Wilkins. He
ain't so far, for I keep my health wonderfle, Lisha is
kind and stiddy, the children lourishin', and I'm a happy
woman though I be a humly one.? There she was
mistaken, for as her eye roved round the narrow room
from the old hat on the wall to the curly heads bobbing
here and there, contentment, piety, and mother-love
made her plain face beautiful. "That story has done me
ever so much good, and I shall not forget it. Now, goodnight, for I must be up early to-morrow, and I don't
want to drive Mr. Wilkins away entirely," said Christie,
after she had helped put the little folk to bed, during
which process she had heard her host creaking about
the kitchen -- as if afraid to enter the sitting-room. She
laughed as she spoke, and ran up stairs, wondering if
she could be the same forlorn creature who had crept so
wearily up only the night before.
It was a very humble little sermon that Mrs. Wilkins
had preached to her, but she took it to heart and profited
by it; for she was a pupil in the great charity school
where the best teachers are often unknown, unhonored
here, but who surely will receive commendation and
reward from the head master when their long vacation
comes.
Chapter IX
Mrs. Wilkins's Minister. Mr. Power.
NEXT day Christie braved the lion in his den,
otherwise the flinty Flint, in her second-class boardinghouse, and found that alarm and remorse had produced
a softening effect upon her. She was unfeignedly glad
to see her lost lodger safe, and finding that the new
friends were likely to put her in the way of paying her
debts, this much harassed matron permitted her to pack
up her possessions, leaving one trunk as a sort of
hostage. Then, with promises to redeem it as soon as
possible, Christie said good-bye to the little room where
she had hoped and suffered, lived and "labored so long,
and went joyfully back to the humble home she had
found with the good laundress. All the following week
Christie " chored round," as Mrs. Wilkins called the
miscellaneous light work she let her do. Much washing,
combing, and clean pinaforing of children fell to her
share, and she enjoyed it amazingly; then, when the
elder ones were packed off to school she lent a hand to
any of the numberless tasks housewives find to do from
morning till night. In the afternoon, when other work
was done, and little Vic asleep or happy with her
playthings, Christie clapped laces, sprinkled muslins,
and picked out edgings at the great table where Mrs.
Wilkins stood ironing, fluting, and crimping till the
kitchen bristled all over with immaculate frills and
flounces. It was pretty delicate work, and Christie liked
it, for Mrs. Wilkins was an adept at her trade and took
as much pride and pleasure in it as any French
blanchisseuse tripping through the streets of Paris with
a tree full of coquettish caps, capes, and petticoats
borne before her by a half invisible boy. Being women,
of course they talked as industriously as they worked;
fingers flew -- and tongues clacked with equal profit
and pleasure, and, by Saturday, Christie had made up
her mind that Mrs. Wilkins was the most sensible
woman she ever knew. Her grammar was an outrage
upon the memory of Lindley Murray, but the goodness
of her heart would have done honor to any saint in the
calendar. She was very plain, and her manners were by
no means elegant, but good temper made that homely
face most lovable, and natural refinement of soul made
mere external polish of small account. Her shrewd ideas
and odd sayings amused Christie very much, while her
good sense and bright way of looking at things did the
younger woman a world of good. Mr. Wilkins devoted
himself to the making of shoes and the consumption of
food, with the silent regularity of a placid animal. His
one dissipation was tobacco, and in a fragrant cloud of
smoke he lived and moved and had his being so entirely
that he might have been described as a pipe with a man
somewhere behind it. Christie once laughingly spoke of
this habit and declared she would try it herself if she
thought it would make her as quiet and undemonstrative
as Mr. Wilkins, who, to tell the truth, made no more
impression on her than a fly. "I don't approve on't, but
he might do wuss. We all have to have our comfort
somehow, so I let Lisha smoke as much as he likes, and
he lets me gab, so it's about fair, I reckon," answered
Mrs. Wilkins, from the suds. She laughed as she spoke,
but something in her face made Christie suspect that at
some period of his life Lisha had done " wuss;" and
subsequent observations confirmed this suspicion and
another one also, -- that his good wife had saved him,
and was gently easing him back to self-control and selfrespect. But, as old Fuller quaintly says, " She so gently
folded up his faults in silence that few guessed them,"
and loyally paid him that respect which she desired
others to bestow. It was always "Lisha and me," " I'll
ask my husband " or "Lisha'll know; he don't say much,
but he's a dreadful smart man," and she kept up the
fiction so dear to her wifely soul by endowing him with
her own virtues, and- giving him the credit of her own
intelligence. Christie loved her all the better for this
devotion, and for her sake treated Mr. Wilkins as if he
possessed the strength of Samson and the wisdom of
Solomon. He received her respect as if it was his due,
and now and then graciously accorded her a few words
beyond the usual scanty allowance of morning and
evening greetings. At his shop all day, she only saw
him at meals and sometimes of an evening, for Mrs.
Wilkins tried to keep him at home safe from temptation,
and Christie helped her by Leading, talking, and
frolicking with the children, so that he might find home
attractive. He loved his babies and would even
relinquish his precious pipe for a time to ride the little
chaps on his foot, or amuse Vic with shadow rabbits on
the wall. At such times the entire content in Mrs.
Wilkins's face made tobacco fumes endurable, and the
burden of a dull man's presence less oppressive to
Christie, who loved to pay her debts in something
besides money. As they sat together finishing off some
delicate laces that Saturday afternoon, Mrs. Wilkins
said, "Ef it's fair to-morrow I want you to go to my
meetin' and hear my minister. It'll do you good." Who is
he?" "Mr. Power." Christie looked rather startled, for
she had heard of Thomas Power as a rampant radical
and infidel of the deepest dye, and been warned never
to visit that den of iniquity called his free church.
"Why, Mrs. Wilkins, you don't mean it!" she said,
leaving her lace to dry at the most critical stage. "Yes, I
do!" answered Mrs. Wilkins, setting down her flat-iron
with emphasis, and evidently preparing to fight
valiantly for her minister, as most women will. " I beg
your pardon; I was a little surprised, for I'd heard all
sorts of things about him," Christie hastened to say.
"Did you ever hear him, or read any of his writins? "
demanded Mrs. Wilkins, with a calmer air.. Never."
"'Then don't judge. You go hear and see that blessed
man, and ef you don't say he's the shadder of a great
rock in a desert land, I'll give up," cried the good
woman, waxing poetical in her warmth. "I will to please
you, if nothing else. I did go once just because I was
told not to; but he did not preach that day and every
thing was so peculiar, I didn't know whether to like it or
be shocked." "It is kind of sing'lar at fust, I'm free to
confess, and not as churchy as some folks like. But
there ain't no place but that big enough to hold the
crowds that want to go, for the more he's abused the
more folks flock to see him. They git their money's
wuth I do believe, for though there ain't no pulpits and
pews, there's a sight of brotherly love round in them
seats, and pious practice, as well as powerful preaching,
in that shabby desk. He don't need no'commandments
painted up behind him to read on Sunday, for he keeps
'em in his heart and life all the week as honest as man
can." There Mrs. Wilkins paused, flushed and
breathless with her defence, and Christie said, candidly:
" I did like the freedom and good-will there, for people
sat where they liked, and no one frowned over shut
pewdoors, at me a stranger. An old black woman sat
next me, and said' Amen' when she liked what she
heard, and a very shabby young man was on the other,
listening as if his soul was as hungry as his body.
People read books, laughed and cried, clapped when
pleased, and hissed when angry; that I did not like." "
No more does Mr. Power; he don't mind the cryin' and
the smilin' as it's nat'ral, but noise and disrespect of no
kind ain't pleasin' to him. His own folks behave
becomin', but strangers go and act as they like, thinkin'
that there ain't no bounds to the word free. Then we are
picked at for their doin's, and Mr. Power has to carry
other folkses' sins on his shoulders. But, dear suz, it
ain't much matter after all, ef the souls is well-meanin'.
Children always make a noise a strivin' after what they
want most, and I shouldn't wonder ef the Lord forgive
all our short-comin's of that sort, sense we are hankerin'
and reachin' for the truth." "I wish I had heard Mr.
Power that day, for I was striving after peace with all
my heart, and he might have given it to me," said
Christie, interested and impressed with what she heard.
( Wal, no, dear, I guess not. Peace ain't give to no one.
all of a suddin, it gen'lly comes through much
tribulation, and the sort that comes hardest is best wuth
havin'. Mr. Power would a' ploughed and harrered you,
so to speak, and sowed good seed liberal; then ef you
warn't barren ground things would have throve, and the
Lord give you a harvest accordin' to your labor. Who
did you hear?" asked Mrs. Wilkins, pausing to starch
and clap vigorously. "A very young man who seemed
to be airing his ideas and beliefs in the frankest manner.
He belabored everybody and every thing, upset church
and state, called names, arranged heaven and earth to
suit himself, and evidently meant every word he said.
Much of it would have been ridiculous if the boy had
not been so thoroughly in earnest; sincerity always
commands respect, and though people smiled, they
liked his courage, and seemed to think he would make a
man when his spiritual wild oats were sown." "I ain't a
doubt on't. We often have such, and they ain't all empty
talk, nuther; some of'em are surprisingly bright, and all
mean so well I don't never reluct to hear'em. They must
blow off their steam somewheres, else they'd bust with
the big idees a swellin' in 'em; Mr. Power knows it and
gives 'em the chance they can't find nowheres else.
'Pears to me," added Mrs. Wilkins, ironing rapidly as
she spoke, "that folks is very like clothes, and a sight
has to be done to keep'em clean and whole. All on us
has to lend a hand in this dreadful mixed-up wash, and
each do our part, same as you and me is now. There's
scrubbin' and bilin', wrenchin' and bluein', dryin' and
foldin', ironin' and polishin', before any of us is fit for
wear a Sunday mornin'." "What part does Mr. Power
do?" asked Christie, much amused at this peculiarly
appropriate simile.
"The scrubbin' and the bilin'; that's always the hardest
and the hottest part. He starts the dirt and gits the stains
out, and leaves 'em ready for other folks to finish off. It
ain't such pleasant work as hangin' out, or such pretty
work as doin' up, but some one's got to do it, and them
that's strongest does it best, though they don't git half so
much credit as them as polishes and crimps. That's
showy work, but it wouldn't be no use ef the things
warn't well washed fust," and Mrs. Wilkins
thoughtfully surveyed the snowy muslin cap, with its
border fluted like the petals of a prim white daisy,that
hung on her hand. "I'd like to be a washerwoman of that
sort; but as I'm not one of the strong, I'll be a laundress,
and try to make purity as attractive as you do," said
Christie, soberly. "Ah, my dear, it's warm and wearin'
work I do assure you, and hard to' give satisfaction, try
as you may. Crowns of glory ain't wore in this world,
but it's my'pinion that them that does the hard jobs here
will stand a good chance of havin' extra bright ones
when they git through." "I know you will," said
Christie, warmly. "Land alive, child! I warn't thinking
of Cynthy Wilkins, but Mr. Power. I'll be satisfied ef I
can set low down somewheres and see him git the
meddle. He won't in this world, but I know there's
rewards savin' up for him byme-by." "I'll go to-morrow
if it pours!" said Christie, with decision. " Do, and I'll
lend you my bunnit," cried Mrs. Wilkins, passing, with
comical rapidity, from crowns of glory to her own
cherished head-gear.
"Thank you, but I can't wear blue, I look as yellow as a
dandelion in it. Mrs. Flint let me have my best things
though I offered to leave them, so I shall be respectable
and by-and-by blossom out." On the morrow Christie
went early, got a good seat, and for half an hour
watched the gathering of the motley congregation that
filled the great hall. Some came in timidly, as if
doubtful of their welcome; some noisily, as if, as Mrs.
Wilkins said, they had not learned the wide difference
between liberty and license; many as if eager and
curious; and a large number with the look of children
gathering round a family table ready to be fed, and sure
that wholesome food would be bountifully provided for
them. Christie was struck by the large proportion of
young people in the place, of all classes, both sexes,
and strongly contrasting faces. Delicate girls looking
with the sweet wistfulness of maidenly hearts for
something strong to lean upon and love; sad-eyed
women turning to heaven for the consolations or the
satisfactions earth could not give them; anxious
mothers perplexed with many cares, trying to find light
and strength; young men with ardent faces, restless,
aspiring, and impetuous, longing to do and dare; tired-
looking students, with perplexed wrinkles on their
foreheads, evidently come to see if this man had
discovered the great secrets they were delving after; and
soul-sick people trying this new, and perhaps dangerous
medicine, when others failed to cure. Many earnest,
thoughtful men and women were there, some on the
anxious seat, and some already at peace, having found
the clew that leads safely through the labyrinth of life.
Here and there a white head, a placid old face, or one of
those fine countenances that tell, unconsciously, the
beautiful story of a victorious soul. Some read, some
talked, some had flowers in their hands, and all sat at
ease, rich and poor, black and white, young and old,
waiting for the coming of the man who had power to
attract and hold so many of his kind. Christie was so
intent on watching those about her that she did not see
him enter, and only knew it by the silence which began
just in front of her, and seemed to flow backward like a
wave, leaving a sea of expectant faces turning to one
point. That point was a gray head, just visible above the
little desk which stood in the middle of a great
platform. A vase of lovely flowers was on the little
shelf at one side, a great Bible reposed on the other, and
a manuscript lay on the red slope between. In a moment
Christie forgot every thing else, and waited with a
curious anxiety to see what manner of man this was.
Presently he got up with an open book in his hand,
saying, in a strong, cheerful voice:
"Let us sing," and having read a hymn as if he had
composed it, he sat down again. Then everybody did
sing; not harmoniously, but heartily, led by an organ,
which the voices followed at their own sweet will. At
first, Christie wanted to smile, for some shouted and
some hummed, some sat silent, and others sung
sweetly; but before the hymn ended she liked it, and
thought that the natural praise of each individual soul
was perhaps more grateful to the ear of God than
masses by great masters, or psalms warbled tunefully
by hired opera singers.
Then Mr. Power rose again, and laying his hands
together, with a peculiarly soft and reverent gesture,
lifted up his face and prayed. Christie had never heard a
prayer like that before; so devout, so comprehensive,
and so brief. A quiet talk with God, asking nothing but
more love and duty toward Him and our fellowmen;
thanking Him for many mercies, and confiding all
things trustfully to the "dear father and mother of
souls." The sermon which followed was as peculiar as
the prayer, and as effective. "One of Power's judgment
day sermons," as she heard one man say to another,
when it was over. Christie certainly felt at first as if
kingdoms and thrones were going down, and each man
being sent to his own place. A powerful and popular
wrong was arrested, tried, and sentenced then and there,
with a courage and fidelity that made plain words
eloquent, and stern justice beautiful. He did not take
David of old for his text, but the strong, sinful, splendid
Davids of our day, who had not fulfilled the promise of
their youth, and whose seeming success was a delusion
and a snare to themselves and others, sure to be
followed by sorrowful abandonment, defeat, and
shame. The ashes of the ancient hypocrites and
Pharisees was left in peace, but those now living were
heartily denounced; modern money-changers scourged
out of the temple, and the everlasting truth set up
therein. As he spoke, not loudly nor vehemently, but
with the indescribable effect of inward force and true
inspiration, a curious stir went through the crowd at
times, as a great wind sweeps over a corn field, lifting
the broad leaves to the light and testing the strength of
root and stem. People looked at one another with a
roused expression; eyes kindled, heads nodded
involuntary approval, and an emphatic, " that's so!"
dropped from the lips of men who saw their own vague
instincts and silent opinions strongly confirmed and
nobly uttered. Consciences seemed to have been
pricked to duty, eyes cleared to see that their golden
idols had feet of clay, and wavering wills strengthened
by the salutary courage and integrity of one indomitable
man. Another hymn, and a benediction that seemed like
a fit grace after meat, and then the crowd poured out;
not yawning, thinking of best clothes, or longing for
dinner, but waked up, full of talk, and eager to do
something to redeem the country and the world.
Christie went rapidly home because she could not help
it, and burst in upon Mrs. Wilkins with a face full of
enthusiasm,.exclaiming, while she cast off her bonnet
as if her head had outgrown it since she left:
"It was splendid! I never heard such a sermon before,
and I'll never go to church anywhere else." "I knew it!
ain't it fillin'? don't it give you a kind of spirital h'ist,
and make things wuth more somehow?' cried Mrs.
Wilkins, gesticulating with the pepper-pot in a way
which did not improve the steak she was cooking, and
caused great anguish to the noses of her offspring, who
were watching the operation. Quite deaf to the chorus
of sneezes which accompanied her words, Christie
answered, brushing back her hair, as if to get a better
out-look at creation generally:
"Oh, yes, indeed! At first it was rather terrible, and yet
so true I wouldn't change a word of it. But I don't
wonder he is misunderstood, belied, and abused. He
tells the truth so plainly, and lets in the light so clearly,
that hypocrites and sinners must fear and hate him. I
think he was a little hard and unsparing, sometimes,
though I don't know enough to judge the men and
measures he condemned. I admire him very much, but I
should be afraid of him if I ever saw him nearer." "No,
you wouldn't; not a grain. You hear him preach agin
and you'll find him as gentle as a lamb. Strong folks is
apt to be ruther ha'sh at times; they can't help it no more
than this stove can help scorchin' the vittles when it gits
red hot. Dinner's ready, so set right up and tell me all
about it," said Mrs. Wilkins, slapping the steak on to the
platter, and beginning to deal out fried potatoes all
round with absent-minded lavishness. Christie talked,
and the good soul enjoyed that far more than her dinner,
for she meant to ask Mr. Power to help her find the
right sort of home for the stranger whose unfitness for
her present place was every day made more apparent to
the mind of her hostess. "What took you there first?""
asked Christie, still wondering at Mrs. Wilkins's choice
of a minister. "The Lord, my dear," answered the good
woman, in a tone of calm conviction. "I'd heard of him,
and I always have a leanin' towards them that's reviled;
so one Sabbath I felt to go, and did. 'That's the gospel
for me,' says I,' my old church ain't big enough now,
and I ain't goin' to set and nod there any longer,' and I
didn't." "Hadn't you any doubts about it, any fears of
going wrong or being sorry afterwards?" asked Christie,
who believed, as many do, that religion could not be
attained without much tribulation of some kind. "In
some things folks is led; I be frequent, and when them
leadin's come I don't ask no questions but jest foller,
and it always turns out right." " I wish I could be led."
"You be, my dear, every day of your life only you don't
see it. When you are doubtful, set still till the call
comes, then git up and walk whichever way it says, and
you won't fall. You've had bread and water long
enough, now you want meat and wine a spell; take it,
and when it's time for milk and honey some one will
fetch 'em ef you keep your table ready. The Lord feeds
us right; it's we that quarrel with our vittles." " I will,"
said Christie, and began at once to prepare her little
board for the solid food of which she had had a taste
that day. That afternoon Mrs. Wilkins took her turn at
churchgoing, saw Mr. Power, told Christie's story in her
best style, and ended by saying:
"She's true grit, I do assure you, sir. Willin' to work, but
she's seen the hard side of things and got kind of
discouraged. Soul and body both wants tinkerin' up, and
I don't know anybody who can do the job better'n you
can." "Very well, I'll come and see her," answered Mr.
Power, and Mrs. Wilkins went home well satisfied. He
kept his word, and about the middle of the week came
walking in upon them as they were at work. "(Don't let
the irons cool," he said, and sitting down in the kitchen
began to talk as comfortably as if in the best parlor;
more so, perhaps, for best parlors are apt to have a
depressing effect upon the spirits, while the mere sight
of labor is exhilarating to energetic minds. He greeted
Christie kindly, and then addressed himself to Mrs.
Wilkins on various charitable matters, for he was a
minister at large, and she one of his almoners. Christie
could really see him now, for when he preached she
forgot the man in the sermon, and thought of him only
as a visible conscience. A sturdy man of fifty, with a
keen, brave face, penetrating eyes; and mouth a little
grim; but a voice so resonant and sweet it reminded one
of silver trumpets, and stirred and won the hearer with
irresistible power. Rough gray hair, and all the features
rather rugged, as if the Great Sculptor had blocked out a
grand statue, and left the man's own soul to finish it.
Had Christie known that he came to see her she would
have been ill at ease; but Mrs. Wilkins had kept her
own counsel, so when Mr. Power turned to Christie,
saying:
" My friend here tells me you want something to do.
Would you like to help a Quaker lady with her
housework, just out of town?" She answered readily:
"Yes, sir, any thing that is* honest." "Not as a servant,
exactly, but companion and helper. Mrs. Sterling is a
dear old lady, and the place a pleasant little nest. It is
good to be there, and I think you'll say so if you go." "It
sounds pleasant. When shall I go?"
Mr. Power smiled at her alacrity, but the longing look
in her eyes' explained it, for he saw at a glance that her
place was not here. "I will write at once and let you
know how matters are settled. Then you shall try it, and
if it is not what you want, we will find you something
else. There's plenty to do, and nothing pleasanter than
to put the right pair of hands to the right task. Good-by;
come and see me if the spirit moves, and don't let go of
Mrs. Wilkins till you lay hold of a better friend, if you
can find one." Then he shook hands cordially, and went
walking out again into the wild March weather as if he
liked it. " Were you afraid of him? " asked Mrs.
Wilkins. " I forgot all about it:
he looked so kind and friendly. But I shouldn't like to
have those piercing eyes of his fixed on me long if I had
any secret on my conscience," answered Christie. "You
ain't nothin' to fear. He liked your way of speakin' fust
rate, I see that, and you'll be all right now he's took
hold." "Do you know Mrs. Sterling?" "Only by sight,
but she's a sweet appearin' woman, and I wouldn't ask
nothin' better'n to see more of her," said Mrs. Wilkins,
warmly, fearing Christie's heart might misgive her. But
it did not, and when a note came saying Mrs. Sterling
would be ready for her the next week, she seemed quite
content with every thing, for though the wages were not
high she felt that country air and quiet were worth more
to her just then than money, and that Wilkinses were
better taken homoeopathically.
The spirit did move her to go and see Mr. Power, but
she could not make up her mind to pass that invisible
barrier which stands between so many who could give
one another genuine help if they only dared to ask it.
But when Sunday came she went to church, eager for
more, and thankful that she knew where to go for it.
This was a very different sermon from the other, and
Christie felt as if he preached it for her alone. "Keep
innocency and take heed to the thing that is right, for
this will bring a man peace at the last," might have been
the text, and Mr. Power treated it as if he had known all
the trials and temptations that made it hard to live up to.
Justice and righteous wrath possessed him before, now
mercy and tenderest sympathy for those who faltered in
well-doing, and the stern judge seemed changed to a
pitiful father. But better than the pity was the wise
counsel, the cheering words, and the devout surrender
of the soul to its best instincts; its close communion
with its Maker, unchilled by fear, untrammelled by the
narrowness of sect or superstition, but full and free and
natural as the breath of life. As she listened Christie felt
as if she was climbing up from a solitary valley,
through mist and shadow toward a mountain top,
where, though the way might be rough and strong
winds blow, she would get a wider outlook over the
broad earth, and be nearer the serene blue sky. For the
first time in her life religion seemed a visible and vital
thing; a power that she could grasp and feel, take into
her life and make her daily bread.
Not a vague, vast idea floating before her, now
beautiful, now terrible, always undefined and far away.
She was strangely and powerfully moved that day, for
the ploughing had begun; and when the rest stood up
for the last hymn, Christie could only bow her head and
let the uncontrollable tears flow down like summer rain,
while her heart sang with new aspiration:
"Nearer, my God, to thee, E'en though a cross it be That
raiseth me, Still all my song shall be, Nearer, my God,
to thee. Nearer to thee!" Sitting with her hand before
her eyes, she never stirred till the sound of many feet
told her that service was done. Then she wiped her
eyes, dropped her veil, and was about to rise when she
saw a little bunch of flowers between the leaves of the
hymn book lying open in her lap. Only a knot of violets
set in their own broad leaves, but blue as friendly eyes
looking into hers, and sweet'as kind words whispered in
her ear. She looked about her hoping to detect and
thank the giver; but all faces were turned the other way,
and all feet departing rapidly. Christie followed with a
very grateful thought in her heart for this little kindness
from some unknown friend; and, anxious to recover
herself entirely before she faced Mrs. Wilkins, she took
a turn in the park. The snow was gone, high winds had
dried the walk, and a clear sky overhead made one
forget sodden turf and chilly air. March was going out
like a lamb, and Christie enjoyed an occasional vernal
whiff from far-off fields and wakening woods, as she
walked down the broad mall watching the buds on the
boughs, and listening to the twitter of the sparrows,
evidently discussing the passers-by as they sat at the
doors of their little mansions. Presently she turned to
walk back again and saw Mr. Power coming toward
her. She was glad, for all her fear had vanished now,
and she wanted to thank him for the sermon that had
moved her so deeply. He shook hands in his cordial
way, and, turning, walked with her, beginning at once
to talk of her affairs as if interested in them. "Are you
ready for the new experiment?" he asked. "Quite ready,
sir; very glad to go, and very much obliged to you for
your kindness in providing for me." " That is what we
were put into the world for, to help one another. You
can pass on the kindness by serving my good friends
who, in return, will do their best for you." "That's so
pleasant! I always knew there were plenty of good,
friend people in the world, only I did not seem to find
them often, or be able to keep them long when I did. Is
Mr. Sterling an agreeable old man?" "Very agreeable,
but not old. David is about thirty-one or two, I think. He
is the son of my friend, the husband died some years
ago. I thought I mentioned it." " You said in your note
that Mr. Sterling was a florist, and might like me to
help in the green-house, if I was willing. It must be
lovely work, and I should like it very much."
" Yes, David devotes himself to his flowers, and leads a
very quiet life. You may think him rather grave and
blunt at first, but you'll soon find him out and get on
comfortably, for he is a truly excellent fellow, and my
right-hand man in good works." A curious little change
had passed over Christie's face during these last
questions and answers, unconscious, but quite
observable to keen eyes like Mr. Power's. Surprise and
interest appeared first, then a shadow of reserve as if
the young woman dropped a thin veil between herself
and the young man, and at the last words a half smile
and a slight raising of the brows seemed to express the
queer mixture of pity and indifference with which we
are all apt to regard " excellent fellows" and "amiable
girls." Mr. Power understood the look, and went on
more confidentially than he had at first intended, for he
did not want Christie to go off with a prejudice in her
mind which might do both David and herself injustice.
"People sometimes misjudge him, for he is rather oldfashioned in manner and plain in speech, and may seem
unsocial, because he does not seek society. But those
who know the cause of this forgive any little shortcomings for the sake of the genuine goodness of the
man. David had a great trouble some years ago and
suffered much. He is learning to bear it bravely, and is
the better for it, though the memory of it is still bitter,
and the cross hard to bear even with pride to help him
hide it, and principle to keep him from despair." Mr.
Power glanced at Christie as he paused, and was
satisfied with the effect of his words, for interest, pity,
and respect shone in her face, and proved that he had
touched the right string. She seemed to feel that this
little confidence was given for a purpose, and showed
that she accepted it as a sort of gage for her own fidelity
to her new employers. "Thank you, sir, I shall
remember," she said, with her frank eyes lifted gravely
to his own. "I like to work for people whom I can
respect," she added, "and will bear with any
peculiarities of Mr. Sterling's without a thought of
complaint. When a man has suffered through one
woman, all women should be kind and patient with
him, and try to atone for the wrong which lessens his
respect and faith in them." "There you are right; and in
this case all women should be kind, for David pities and
protects womankind as the only retaliation for the lifelong grief one woman brought upon him. That's not a
common revenge, is it?" " It's beautiful!" cried Christie,
and instantly David was a hero. "At one time it was an
even chance whether that trouble sent David to the
devil,' as he expressed it, or made a man of him. That
little saint of a mother kept him safe till the first
desperation was over, and now he lives for her, as he
ought. Not so romantic an ending as a pistol or Byronic
scorn for the world in general and women in particular,
but dutiful and brave, since it often takes more courage
to live than to die." "Yes, sir," said Christie, heartily,
though her eyes fell, remembering how she had failed
with far less cause for despair than David. They were at
the gate now, and Mr. Power left her, saying, with a
vigorous hand-shake:
"Best wishes for a happy summer. I shall come
sometimes to see how you prosper; and remember, if
you tire of it and want to change, let me know, for I
take great satisfaction in putting the right people in the
right places. Good-by, and God be with you."
Chapter X
Beginning Again. Mrs. Sterling.
IT was an April day when Christie went to her new
home. Warm rains had melted the last trace of snow,
and every bank was full of pricking grass-blades, brave
little pioneers and heralds of the Spring. The budding
elm boughs swung in the wind; blue-jays screamed
among the apple-trees; and robins chirped shrilly, as if
rejoicing over winter hardships safely passed. Vernal
freshness was in the air despite its chill, and lovely
hints of summer time were everywhere.
These welcome sights and sounds met Christie, as she
walked down the lane, and, coming to a gate, paused
there to look about her. An old-fashioned cottage stood
in the midst of a garden just awakening from its winter
sleep. One elm hung protectingly over the low roof,
sunshine lay warmly on it, and at every window
flowers' bright faces smiled at the passer-by invitingly.
On one side glittered a long green-house, and on the
other stood a barn, with a sleek cow ruminating in the
yard, and an inquiring horse poking his head out of his
stall to view the world. Many comfortable gray hens
were clucking and scratching about the hay-strewn
floor, and a flock of doves sat cooing on the roof. A
quiet, friendly place it looked; for nothing marred its
peace; and the hopeful, healthful spirit of the season
seemed to haunt the spot. Snow-drops and crocuses
were up in one secluded nook; a plump maltese cat sat
purring in the porch; and a dignified old dog came
marching down the walk to escort the stranger in. With
a brightening face Christie went up the path, and tapped
at the quaint knocker, hoping that the face, she was
about to see would be in keeping with the pleasant
place. She was not disappointed, for the dearest of little
Quaker ladies opened to her, with such an air of peace
and good-will that the veriest ruffian, coming to molest
or make afraid, would have found it impossible to mar
the tranquillity of that benign old face, or disturb one
fold of the soft muslin crossed upon her breast. "I come
from Mr. Power, and I have a note for Mrs. Sterling,"
began Christie in her gentlest tone, as, her last fear
vanished at sight of that mild maternal figure. " I am
she; come in, friend; I am glad to see thee," said the old
lady, smiling placidly, as she led the way into a room
whose principal furniture seemed to be books, flowers,
and sunshine. The look, the tone, the gentle "thee,"
went straight to Christie's heart; and, while Mrs.
Sterling put on her spectacles and slowly read the note,
she stroked the cat and said to herself:
" Surely, I have fallen among a set of angels. I thought
Mrs. Wilkins a sort of saint, Mr. Power was an
improvement even upon that good soul, and if I am not
mistaken this sweet little lady is the best and dearest of
all. I do hope she will like me." "It is quite right, my
dear, and I am most glad to see thee; for we need help
at this season of the year, and have had none for several
weeks. Step up to the room at the head of the stairs, and
lay off thy things. Then, if thee is not tired, I will give
thee a little job with me in the kitchen," said the old
lady with a kindly directness which left no room for
awkwardness on the new-comer's part. Up went
Christie, and after a hasty look round a room as plain
and white and still as a nun's cell, she whisked on a
working-apron and ran down again, feeling, as she
fancied the children did in the fairy tale, when they first
arrived at the house of the little old woman who lived in
the wood. Mrs. Wilkins's kitchen was as neat as a room
could be, wherein six children came and went, but this
kitchen was tidy with the immaculate order of-which
Shakers and Quakers alone seem to possess the secret, - a fragrant, shining cleanliness, that made even black
kettles ornamental and dish-pans objects of interest.
Nothing burned or boiled over, though the stove was
full of dinner-pots and skillets. There was no litter or
hurry, though the baking of cake and pies was going on,
and when Mrs. Sterling put a pan of apples, and a knife
into her new assistant's hands, saying in a tone that
made the request a favor, " Will thee kindly pare these
for me? " Christie wondered what would happen if she
dropped a seed upon the floor, or did not cut the apples
into four exact quarters. "I never shall suit this dear
prim soul," she thought, as her eye went fiom Puss,
sedately perched on one small mat, to the dog dozing
upon another, and neither offering to stir from their own
dominions. This dainty nicety amused her at first, but
she liked it, and very soon her thoughts went back to
the old times when she worked with Aunt Betsey, and
learned the good old-fashioned arts which now were to
prove her fitness for this pleasant place. Mrs. Sterling
saw the shadow that crept into Christie's face, and led
the chat to cheerful things, not saying much herself, but
beguiling the other to talk, and listening with an interest
that made it easy to go on. Mr. Power and the Wilkinses
made them friends very soon; and in an hour or two
Christie was moving about the kitchen as if she had
already taken possession of her new kingdom. "Thee
likes housework I think," said Mrs. Sterling, as she
watched her hang up a towel to dry, and rinse her dishcloth when the cleaning up was done. "Oh, yes! if I
need not do it with a shiftless Irish girl to drive me
distracted by pretending to help. I have lived out, and
did not find it hard while I had my good Hepsey. I was
second girl, and can set a table in style. Shall I try now?
" she asked, as the old lady went into a little diningroom with fresh napkins in her hand. "Yes, but we have
no style here. I will show thee once, and hereafter it
will be thy work, as thy feet are younger than mine." A
nice old-fashioned table was soon spread, and Christie
kept smiling at the contrast between this and Mrs.
Stuart's. Chubby little pitchers appeared, delicate old
glass, queer china, and tiny tea-spoons; linen as smooth
as satin, and a quaint tankard that might have come
over in the "' May-flower."
" Now, will thee take that pitcher of water to David's
room? It is at the top of the house, and may need a little
dusting. I have not been able to attend to it as I would
like since I have been alone," said Mrs. Sterling. Rooms
usually betray something of the character and tastes of
their occupants, and Christie paused a moment as she
entered David's, to look about her with feminine
interest. It was the attic, and extended the whole length
of the house. One end was curtained off as a bedroom,
and she smiled at its austere simplicity. A gable in the
middle made a sunny recess, where were stored bags
and boxes of seed, bunches of herbs, and shelves full of
those tiny pots in which baby plants are born and
nursed till they can grow alone. The west end was
evidently the study, and here Christie took a good look
as she dusted tidily. The furniture was nothing, only an
old sofa, with the horsehair sticking out in tufts here
and there; an antique secretary; and a table covered
with books. As she whisked the duster down the front
of the ancient piece of furniture, one of the doors in the
upper half swung open, and Christie saw three objects
that irresistibly riveted her eyes for a moment. A broken
fan, a bundle of letters tied up with a black ribbon, and
a little workbasket in which lay a fanciful needle-book
with "Letty" embroidered on it in faded silk. " Poor
David, that is his little shrine, and I have no right to see
it," thought Christie, shutting the door with selfreproachful haste. At the table she paused again, for
books always attracted her, and here she saw a goodly
array whose names were like the faces of old friends,
because she remembered them in her father's library.
Faust was full of ferns, Shakspeare, of rough sketches
of the men and women whom he has made immortal.
Saintly Herbert lay side by side with Saint Augustine's
confessions. Milton and Montaigne stood socially
together, and Andersen's lovely " Marchen " fluttered
its pictured leaves in the middle of an open Plato; while
several books in unknown tongues were half-hidden by
volumes of Browning, Keats, and Coleridge. In the
middle of this fine society, slender and transparent as
the spirit of a shape, stood a little vase holding one half-
opened rose, fresh and fragrant as if just gathered.
Christie smiled as she saw it, and wondered if the dear,
dead, or false woman had been fond of roses. Then her
eye went to the. mantel-piece, just above the table, and
she laughed; for, on it stood three busts, idols evidently,
but very shabby ones; for Gothe's nose was broken,
Schiller's head cracked visibly, and the dust of ages
seemed to have settled upon Linnaeus in the middle. On
the wall above them hung a curious old picture of a
monk kneeling in a devout ecstasy, while the face of an
angel is dimly seen through the radiance that floods the
cell with divine light. Portraits of Mr. Power and Martin
Luther stared thoughtfully at one another from either
side, as if making up their minds to shake hands in spite
of time and space. "Melancholy, learned, and
sentimental," said Christie to herself, as she settled
David's character after these discoveries. The sound of
a bell made her hasten down, more curious than ever to
see if this belief was true. "Perhaps thee had better step
out and call my son. Sometimes he does not hear the
bell when he is busy. Thee will find my garden-hood
and shawl behind the door," said Mrs. Sterling,
presently; for punctuality was a great virtue in the old
lady's eyes. Christie demurely tied on the little
pumpkin-hood, wrapped the gray shawl about her, and
set out to find her "master," as she had a fancy to call
this unknown David. From the hints dropped by Mr.
Power, and her late discoveries, she had made a hero
for herself; a sort of melancholy Jaques; sad and pale
and stern; retired from the world to nurse his wounds in
solitude. She rather liked this picture; for romance dies
hard in a woman, and, spite of her experiences, Christie
still indulged in dreams and fancies. 6 It will be so
interesting to see how he bears his secret sorrow. I am
fond of woe; but I do hope he won't be too
lackadaisical, for I never could abide that sort of
blighted being." Thinking thus, she peeped here and
there, but saw no one in yard or barn, except a
workman scraping the mould off his boots near the
conservatory. "This David is among the flowers, I
fancy; I will just ask, and not bolt in, as he does not
know me. " Where is Mr. Sterling? " added Christie
aloud, as she approached. The man looked up, and a
smile came into his eyes, as he glanced from the old
hood to the young face inside. Then he took off his hat,
and held out his hand, saying with just his mother's
simple directness:
"I am David; and this is Christie Devon, I know. How
do you do?" "Yes; dinner's ready," was all she could
reply, for the discovery that this was the "master,"
nearly took her breath away. Not the faintest trace of
the melancholy Jaques about him; nothing interesting,
romantic, pensive, or even stern. Only a broadshouldered, brown-bearded man, with an old hat and
coat, trousers tucked into his boots, fresh mould on the
hand he had given her to shake, and the cheeriest voice
she had ever heard. What a blow it was to be sure!
Christie actually felt vexed with him for disappointing
her so, and could not recover herself, but stood red and
awkward, till, with a last scrape of his boots, David said
with placid brevity:
" Well, shall we go in?" Christie walked rapidly into the
house, and by the time she got there the absurdity of her
fancy struck her, and she stifled a laugh in the depths of
the little pumpkin-hood, as she hung it up. Then,
assuming her gravest air, she went to give the finishing
touches to dinner. Ten minutes later she received
another surprise; for David appeared washed, brushed,
and in a suit of gray, a personable gentleman, quite
unlike the workman in the yard. Christie gave one look,
met a pair of keen yet kind eyes with a suppressed
laugh in them, and dropped her own, to be no more
lifted up till dinner was done. It was a very quiet meal,
for no one said much; and it was evidently the custom
of the house to eat silently, only now and then saying a
few friendly words, to show that the hearts were social
if the tongues were not. On the present occasion this
suited Christie; and she ate her dinner without making
any more discoveries, except that the earth-stained
hands were very clean now, and skilfully supplied her
wants before she could make them known. As they rose
from table, Mrs. Sterling said:
"Davy, does thee want any help this afternoon?" "I shall
be very glad of some in about an hour if thee can spare
it, mother." "I can, dear." " Do you care for flowers? "
asked David, turning to Christie, "because if you do
not, this will be a very trying place for you." " I used to
love them dearly; but I have not had any for so long I
hardly remember how they look," answered Christie
with a sigh, as she recalled Rachel's roses, dead long
ago. "Shy, sick, and sad; poor soul, we must lend a
hand and cheer her up a bit" thought David, as he
watched her eyes turn toward the green things in the
windows with a bright, soft look, he liked to see. "
Come to the conservatory in an hour, and I'll show you
the best part of a German,'" he said, with a nod and a
smile, as he went away, beginning to whistle like a boy
when the door was shut behind him. "What did he
mean?" thought Christie, as she helped clear the table,
and put every thing in Pimlico order. She was curious
to know, and when Mrs. Sterling said:
"Now, my dear, I am going to take my nap, and thee
can help David if thee likes," she was quite ready to try
the new work. She would have been more than woman
if she had not first slipped upstairs to smooth her hair,
put on a fresh collar, and a black silk apron with certain
effective frills and pockets, while a scarlet rigolette
replaced the hood, and lent a little color to her pale
cheeks. " I am a poor ghost of what I was," she thought;
"but that's no matter:
few can be pretty, any one can be neat, and that is more
than ever necessary here." Then she went away to the
conservatory, feeling rather oppressed with the pity and
sympathy, for which there was no call, and fervently
wishing that David would not be so comfortable, for he
ate a hearty dinner, laughed four times, and whistled as
no heart-broken man would dream of doing. No one
was visible as she went in, and walking slowly down
the green aisle, she gave herself up to the enjoyment of
the lovely place. The damp, sweet air made summer
there, and a group of slender, oriental trees whispered
in the breath of wind that blew in from an open sash.
Strange vines and flowers hung overhead; banks of
azaleas, ruddy, white, and purple, bloomed in one
place; roses of every hue turned their lovely faces to the
sun; ranks of delicate ferns, and heaths with their waxen
bells, were close by; glowing geraniums and stately
lilies side by side; savage-looking scarlet flowers with
purple hearts, or orange spikes rising from leaves
mottled with strange colors; dusky passion-flowers, and
gay nasturtiums climbing to the roof. All manner of
beautiful and curious plants were there; and Christie
walked among them, as happy as a child who finds its
playmates again. Coming to a bed of pansies she sat
down on a rustic chair, and, leaning forward, feasted
her eyes on these her favorites. Her face grew young as
she looked, her hands touched them with a lingering
tenderness as if to her they were half human, and her
own eyes were so busy enjoying the gold and purple
spread before her, that she did not see another pair
peering at her over an unneighborly old cactus, all
prickles, and queer knobs. Presently a voice said at her
elbow:
" You look as if you saw something beside pansies
there." David spoke so quietly that it did not startle her,
and she answered before she had time to feel ashamed
of her fancy. "I do; for, ever since I was a child, I
always see a little face when I look at this flower.
Sometimes it is a sad one, sometimes it's merry, often
roguish, but always a dear little face; and when I see so
many together, it's like a flock of children, all nodding
and smiling at me at once." "So it is!" and David
nodded, and smiled himself, as he handed her two or
three of the finest, as if it was as natural a thing as to
put a sprig of mignonette in his own button-hole.
Christie thanked him, and then jumped up,
remembering that she came there to work, not to dream.
He seemed to understand, and went into a little room
near by, saying, as he pointed to a heap of gay flowers
on the table:
"These are to be made into little bouquets for a'
German' to-night. It is pretty work, and better fitted for
a woman's fingers than a man's. This is all you have to
do, and you can use your taste as to colors." While he
spoke David laid a red and white carnation on a bit of
smilax, tied them together, twisted a morsel of silver
foil about the stems, and laid it before Christie as a
sample. "Yes, I can do that, and shall like it very
much," she said, burying her nose in the mass of
sweetness before her, and feeling as if her new situation
grew pleasanter every minute. " Here is the apron my
mother uses, that bit of silk will soon be spoilt, for the
flowers are wet," and David gravely offered her a large
checked pinafore. Christie could not help laughing as
she put it on:
all this was so different from the imaginary picture she
had made. She was disappointed, and yet she began to
feel as if the simple truth was better than the
sentimental fiction; and glanced up at David
involuntarily to see if there were any traces of
interesting woe about him. But he was looking at her
with the steady, straightforward look which she liked so
much, yet could not meet just yet; and all she saw was
that he was smiling also with an indulgent expression as
if she was a little girl whom he was trying to amuse.
"Make a few, and I'll be back directly when I have
attended to another order," and he went away thinking
Christie's face was very like the pansies they had been
talking about, -- one of the sombre ones with a bright
touch of gold deep down in the heart, for thin and pale
as the face was, it lighted up at a kind word, and all the
sadness vanished out of the anxious eyes when the
frank laugh came. Christie fell to work with a woman's
interest in such a pleasant task, and soon tied and
twisted skilfully, exercising all her taste in contrasts,
and the pretty little conceits flower-lovers can produce.
She was so interested that presently she began to hum
half unconsciously, as she was apt to do when happily
employed:
"Welcome, maids of honor, You do bring In the spring,
And wait upon her. She has virgins many, Fresh and
fair, Yet you are More sweet than any." There she
stopped, for David's step drew near, and she
remembered where she was. "The last verse is the best
in that little poem. Have you forgotten it?"' he said,
pleased and surprised to find the new-comer singing
Herrick's lines " To Violets." "Almost; my father used
to say that when we went looking for early violets, and
these lovely ones reminded me of it," explained
Christie, rather abashed.
As if to put her at ease David added, as he laid another
handful of double-violets on the table:
"' Y are the maiden posies, And so graced, To be placed
Fore damask roses. Yet, though thus respected, By and
by Ye do lie, Poor girls, neglected.' "I always think of
them as pretty, modest maids after' that, and can't bear
to throw them away, even when faded." Christie hoped
he did not think her sentimental, and changed the
conversation by pointing to her work, and saying, in a
business-like way:
"Will these do? I have varied the posies as much as
possible, so that they may suit all sorts of tastes and
whims. I never went to a 'German' myself; but I have
looked on, and remember hearing the young people say
the little bouquets didn't mean any thing, so I tried to
make these expressive." Well, I should think you had
succeeded excellently, and it is a very pretty fancy. Tell
me what some of them mean:
will you?" "You should know better than I, being a
florist," said Christie, glad to see he approved of her
work. " I can grow the flowers, but not read them," and
David looked rather depressed by his own ignorance of
those delicate matters. Still with the business-like air,
Christie held up one after another of the little knots,
saying soberly, though her eyes smiled:
"This white one might be given to a newly engaged girl,
as suggestive of the coining bridal. That halfblown bud
would say a great deal from a lover to his idol; and this
heliotrope be most encouraging to a timid swain. Here
is a rosy daisy for some merry little damsel; there is a
scarlet posy for a soldier; this delicate azalea and fern
for some lovely creature just out; and there is a bunch
of sober pansies for a spinster, if spinsters go
to'Germans.' Heath, scentless but pretty, would do for
many; these Parma violets for one with a sorrow; and
this curious purple flower with arrowshaped stamens
would just suit a handsome, sharptongued woman, if
any partner dared give it to her." David laughed, as his
eye went from the flowers to Christie's face, and when
she laid down the last breastknot, looking as if she
would like the chance of presenting it to some one she
knew, he seemed much amused. " If the beaux and
belles at this party have the wit to read your posies, my
fortune will be made, and you will have your hands full
supplying compliments, declarations, rebukes, and
criticisms for the fashionable butterflies. I wish I could
put consolation, hope, and submission into my work as
easily, but I am afraid I can't," he added a moment
afterward with a changed face, as he began to lay the
loveliest white flowers into a box. "Those are not for a
wedding, then? For a dead baby; and I can't seem to
find any white and sweet enough." "You know the
people?" asked Christie, with the sympathetic tone in
her voice.
"Never saw or heard pf them till to-day. Isn't it enough
to know that 'baby's dead,' as the poor man said, to
make one feel for them?" "Of course it is; only you
seemed so interested in arranging the flowers, I
naturally thought it was for some friend," Christie
answered hastily, for David looked half indignant at her
question. "I want them to look lovely and comforting
when the mother opens the box, and I don't seem to
have the right flowers. Will you give it a touch? women
have a tender way of doing such things that we can
never learn." "I don't think I can improve it, unless I
add another sort of flower that seems appropriate:
may I?" "Any thing you can find." Christie waited for
no more, but ran out of the greenhouse to David's great
surprise, and presently came hurrying back with a
handful of snow-drops. "Those are just what I wanted,
but I didn't know the little dears were up yet! You shall
put them in, and I know they will suggest what you
hope to these poor people," he said approvingly, as he
placed the box before her, and stood by watching her
adjust the little sheaf of pale flowers tied up with a
blade of grass. She added a frail fern or two, and did
give just the graceful touch here and there which would
speak to the mother's sore heart of the tender thought
some one had taken for her dead darling. The box was
sent away, and Christie went on with her work, but that
little task performed together seemed to have made
them friends; and, while David tied up several grand
bouquets at the same table, they talked as if the
strangeness was fast melting away from their short
acquaintance. Christie's own manners were so simple
that simplicity in others always put her at her ease:
kindness soon banished her reserve, and the desire to
show that she was grateful for it helped her to please.
David's bluntness was of such a gentle sort that she
soon got used to it, and found it a pleasant contrast tothe polite insincerity so common. He was as frank and
friendly as a boy, yet had a certain paternal way with
him which rather annoyed her at first, and made her feel
as if he thought her a mere girl, while she was very sure
he could not be but a year or two older than herself. "I'd
rather he'd be masterful, and order me about," she
thought, still rather regretting the " blighted being" she
had not found. In spite of this she spent a pleasant
afternoon, sitting in that sunny place, handling flowers,
asking questions about them, and getting the sort of
answers she liked; not dry botanical names and facts,
but all the delicate traits, curious habits, and poetical
romances of the sweet things, as if the speaker knew
and loved them as friends, not merely valued them as
merchandise. They had just finished when the great dog
came bouncing in with a basket in his mouth. "M3other
wants eggs:
will you come to the barn and get them? Hay is
wholesome, and you can feed the doves if you like"
said David, leading the way with Bran rioting about
him. " Why don't he offer to put up a swing for me, or
get me a doll? It's the pinafore that deceives him. Never
mind:
I rather like it after all," thought Christie; but she left
the apron behind her, and followed with the most
dignified air. It did not last long, however, for the sights
and sounds that greeted her, carried her back to the days
of egg-hunting in Uncle Enos's big barn; and, before
she knew it, she was rustling through the hay mows,
talking to the cow and receiving the attentions of Bran
with a satisfaction it was impossible to conceal. The
hens gathered about her feet cocking their expectant
eyes at her; the doves came circling round her head; the
cow stared placidly, and the inquisitive horse responded
affably when she offered him a handful of hay. "How
tame they all are! I like animals, they are so contented
and intelligent," she said, as a plump dove lit on her
shoulder with an impatient coo. "That was Kitty's pet,
she always fed the fowls. Would you like to do it?" and
David offered a little measure of oats. "Very much;"
and Christie began to scatter the grain, wondering who
" Kitty" was. As if he saw the wish in her face, David
added, while he shelled corn for the hens:
"She was the little girl who was with us last. Her father
kept her in a factory, and took all her wages, barely
giving her clothes and food enough to keep her alive.
The poor child ran away, and was trying to hide when
Mr. Power found and sent her here to be cared for." "As
he did me?" said Christie quickly. Yes, that's a way he
has." "A very kind and Christian way. Why didn't she
stay?"
"Well, it was rather quiet for the lively little thing, and
rather too near the city, so we got a good place up in the
country where she could go to school and learn
housework. The mill had left her no time for these
things, and at fifteen she was as ignorant as a child."
"You must miss her." "I do very much." "Was she
pretty?" "She looked like a little rose sometimes," and
David smiled to himself as he fed the gray hens.
Christie immediately made a picture of the " lively little
thing" with a face "like a rose," and was uncomfortably
conscious that she did not look half as well feeding
doves as Kitty must have done. Just then David handed
her the basket, saying in the paternal way that half
amused, half piqued her:
" It is getting too chilly for you here:
take these in please, and I'll bring the milk directly." In
spite of herself she smiled, as a sudden vision of the
elegant Mr. Fletcher, devotedly carrying her book or
beach-basket, passed through her mind; then hastened
to explain the smile, for David lifted his brows
inquiringly, and glanced about him to see what amused
her. "I beg your pardon:
I've lived alone so much that it seems a little odd to be
told to do things, even if they are as easy and pleasant
as this." "I am so used to taking care of people, and
directing, that I do so without thinking. I won't if you
don't like it," and he put out his hand to take back the
basket with a grave, apologetic air. "But I do like it;
only it amused me to be treated like a little girl again,
when I am nearly thirty, and feel seventy at least, life
has been so hard to me lately." Her face sobered at the
last words, and David's instantly grew so pitiful she
could not keep her eyes on it lest they should fill, so
suddenly did the memory of past troubles overcome
her. " I know," he said in a tone that warmed her heart,
" I know, but we are going to try, and make life easier
for you now, and you must feel that this is home and we
are friends." "I do!" and Christie flushed with grateful
feeling and a little shame, as she went in, thinking to
herself:
" How silly I was to say that! I may have spoil; the
simple friendliness that was so pleasant, and have made
him think me a foolish stuck-up old creature."
Whatever he might have thought, David's manner was
unchanged when he came in and found her busy with
the table. " It's pleasant to see thee resting, mother, and
every thing going on so well," he said, glancing about
the room, where the old lady sat, and nodding toward
the kitchen, where Christie was toasting bread in her
neatest manner. "Yes, Davy, it was about time I had a
helper for thy sake, at least; and this is a great
improvement upon heedless Kitty, I am inclined to
think." Mrs. Sterling dropped her voice over that last
sentence; but Christie heard it, and was pleased. A
moment or two later, David came toward her with a
glass in his hand, saying as if rather doubtful of his
reception:
" New milk is part of the cure: will you try it? "
For the first time, Christie looked straight up in the
honest eyes that seemed to demand honesty in others,
and took the glass, answering heartily:
"Yes, thank you; I drink good health to you, and better
manners to me." The newly lighted lamp shone full in
her face, and though it was neither young nor blooming,
it showed something better than youth and bloom to
one who could read the subtle language of character as
David could. He nodded as he took the glass, and went
away saying quietly:
" We are plain people here, and you won't find it hard to
get on with us, I think?' But he liked the candid look,
and thought about it, as he chopped kindlings, whistling
with a vigor which caused Christie to smile as she
strained the milk. After tea a spider-legged table was
drawn out toward the hearth, where an open fire burned
cheerily, and puss purred on the rug, with Bran near by.
David unfolded his newspapers, Mrs. Sterling pinned
on her knitting-sheath, and Christie sat a moment
enjoying the comfortable little scene. She sighed
without knowing it, and Mrs. Sterling asked quickly:
"Is thee tired, my dear?" "Oh, no! only happy." "I am
glad of that:
I was afraid thee would find it dull." " It's beautiful! "
then Christie checked herself, feeling that these
outbursts would not suit such quiet people; and, half
ashamed of showing how much she felt, she added
soberly,;" If you will give me something to do I shall be
quite contented."
" Sewing is not good for thee. If thee likes to knit I'll set
up a sock for thee to-morrow," said the old lady well
pleased at the industrious turn of her new handmaid. " I
like to darn, and I see some to be done in this basket.
May I do it?" and Christie laid hold of the weekly job
which even the best housewives are apt to set aside for
pleasanter tasks. "As thee likes, my dear. My eyes will
not let me sew much in the evening, else I should have
finished that batch to-night. Thee will find the yarn and
needles in the little bag." So Christie fell to work on
gray socks, and neat lavender-colored hose, while the
old lady knit swiftly, and David read aloud. Christie
thought she was listening to the report of a fine lecture;
but her ear only caught the words, for her mind
wandered away into a region of its own, and lived there
till her task was done. Then she laid the tidy pile in the
basket, drew her chair to a corner of the hearth, and
quietly enjoyed herself. The cat, feeling sure of a
welcome, got up into her lap, and went to sleep in a
cosy bunch; Bran laid his nose across her feet, and
blinked at her with sleepy good-will, while her eyes
wandered round the room, from its quaint furniture and
the dreaming flowers in the windows, to the faces of its
occupants, and lingered there. The plain border of aQuaker cap encircled that mild old face, with bands of
silver hair parted on a forehead marked with many
lines. But the eyes were clear and sweet; winter roses
bloomed in the cheeks, and an exquisite neatness
pervaded the small figure, from the trim feet on the
stool, to the soft shawl folded about the shoulders, as
only a Quakeress can fold one. In Mrs. Sterling, piety
and peace made old age lovely, and the mere presence
of this tranquil soul seemed to fill the room with a
reposeful charm none could resist. The other face
possessed no striking comeliness of shape or color; but
the brown, becoming beard made it manly, and the
broad arch of a benevolent brow added nobility to
features otherwise not beautiful, -- a face plainly
expressing resolution and rectitude, inspiring respect as
naturally as a certain protective kindliness of manner
won confidence. Even in repose wearing a vigilant look
as if some hidden pain or passion lay in wait to surprise
and conquer the sober cheerfulness that softened the
lines of the firm-set lips, and warmed the glance of the
thoughtful eyes. Christie fancied she possessed the key
to this, and longed to know all the story of the cross
which Mr. Power said David had learned to bear so
well. Then she began to wonder if they could' like and
keep her, to hope so, and to feel that here at last she was
at home with friends. But the old sadness crept over
her, as she remembered how often she had thought this
before, and how soon the dream ended, the ties were
broken, and she adrift again. "Ah well," she said within
herself, "I won't think of the morrow, but take the good
that comes and enjoy it while I may. I must not
disappoint Rachel, since she kept her word so nobly to
me. Dear soul, when shall I see her again?" The thought
of Rachel always touched her heart, more now than
ever; and, as she leaned back in her chair' with closed
eyes and idle hands, these tender memories made her
unconscious face most eloquent. The eyes peering over
the spectacles telegraphed a meaning message to the
other eyes glancing over the paper now and then; and
both these friends in deed as well as name felt assured
that this woman needed all the comfort they could give
her. But the busy needles never stopped their click, and
the sonorous voice read on without a pause, so Christie
never knew what mute confidences passed between
mother and son, or what helpful confessions her
traitorous face had made for her. The clock struck nine,
and these primitive people prepared for rest; for their
day began at dawn, and much wholesome work made
sleep a luxury. "Davy will tap at thy door as he goes
down in the morning, and I will soon follow to show
thee about matters. Good-night, and good rest, my
child." So speaking, the little lady gave Christie a
maternal kiss; David shook hands; and then she went
away, wondering why service was so lightened by such
little kindnesses. As she lay in her narrow white bed,
with the "pale light of stars" filling the quiet, cell-like
room, and some one playing softly on a flute overhead,
she felt as if she had left the troublous world behind
her, and shutting out want, solitude, and despair, had
come into some safe, secluded spot full of flowers and
sunshine, kind hearts, and charitable deeds.
Chapter XI
In The Strawberry Bed
FROM that day a new life began for Christie, a happy,
quiet, useful life, utterly unlike any of the brilliant
futures she had planned for herself; yet indescribably
pleasant to her now, for past experience had taught her
its worth, and made her ready to enjoy it. Never had
spring seemed so early or so fair, never had such a crop
of hopeful thoughts and happy feelings sprung up in her
heart as now; and nowhere was there a brighter face, a
blither voice, or more willing hands than Christie's
when the apple blossoms came. This was what she
needed, the protection of a home, wholesome cares and
duties; and, best of all, friends to live and labor for,
loving and beloved. Her whole soul was in her work
now, and as health returned, much of the old energy and
cheerfulness came with it, a little sobered, but more
sweet and earnest than ever. No task was too hard or
humble; no day long enough to do all she longed to do;
and no sacrifice would have seemed too great for those
whom she regarded with steadily increasing love and
gratitude. Up at dawn, the dewy freshness of the hour,
the morning rapture of the birds, the daily miracle of
sunrise, set her heart in tune, and gave her Nature's
most healing balm. She kept the little house in order,
with Mrs. Sterling to direct and share the labor so
pleasantly, that mistress and maid soon felt like mother
and daughter, and Christie often said she did not care
for any other wages. The house-work of this small
family was soon done, and then Christie went to tasks
that she liked better. Much out-of-door life was good
for her, and in garden and green-house there was plenty
of light labor she could do. So she grubbed contentedly
in the wholesome earth, weeding and potting, learning
to prune and bad, and finding Mrs. Wilkins was quite
right in her opinion of the sanitary virtues of dirt. Trips
to town to see the good woman and carry country gifts
to the little folks; afternoon drives with Mrs. Sterling in
the old-fashioned chaise, drawn by the Roman-nosed
horse, and Sunday pilgrimages to church to be "righted
up" by one of Mr. Power's stirring sermons, were
among her new pleasures. But, on the whole, the
evenings were her happiest times:
for then David read aloud while she worked; she sung
to the old piano tuned for her use; or, better still, as
spring came on, they sat in the porch, and talked as
people only do talk when twilight, veiling the outer
world, seems to lift the curtains of that inner world
where minds go exploring, hearts learn to know one
another, and souls walk together in the cool of the day.
At such times Christie seemed to catch glimpses of
another David than the busy, cheerful man apparently
contented with the humdrum duties of an obscure,
laborious life, and the few unexciting pleasures
afforded by books, music, and much silent thought. She
sometimes felt with a woman's instinct that under this
composed, commonplace existence another life went
on; for, now and then, in the interest of conversation, or
the involuntary yielding to a confidential impulse, a
word, a look, a gesture, betrayed an unexpected power
and passion, a secret unrest, a bitter memory that would
not be ignored. Only at rare moments did she catch
these glimpses, and so brief, so indistinct, were they
that she half believed her own lively fancy created
them. She longed to know more; but "David's trouble"
made him sacred in her eyes from any prying curiosity,
and always after one of these twilight betrayals Christie
found him so like his unromantic self next day, that she
laughed and said " I never shall outgrow my foolish
way of trying to make people other than they are. Gods
are gone, heroes hard to find, and one should be
contented with good men, even if they do wear old
clothes, lead prosaic lives, and have no
accomplishments but gardening, playing the flute, and
keeping their temper." She felt the influences of that
friendly place at once; but for a time she wondered at
the natural way in which kind things were done, the
protective care extended over her, and the confiding air
with which these people treated her. They asked no
questions, demanded no explanations, seemed
unconscious of conferring favors, and took her into
their life so readily that she marvelled, even while she
rejoiced, at the good fortune which led her there.
She understood this better when she discovered, what
Mr. Power had not mentioned, that the little cottage was
a sort of refuge for many women like herself; a halfway house where they could rest and recover
themselves after the wrongs, defeats, and weariness that
come to such in the battle of life. With a chivalry older
and finer than any Spenser sung, Mr. Power befriended
these forlorn souls, and David was his faithful squire.
Whoever knocked at that low door was welcomed,
warmed, and fed; comforted, and set on their way,
cheered and strengthened by the sweet good-will that
made charity no burden, and restored to the more
desperate and despairing their faith in human nature and
God's love. There are many such green spots in this
world of ours, which often seems so bad that a second
Deluge could hardly wash it clean again; and these
beneficent, unostentatious asylums are the salvation of
more troubled souls than many a great institution gilded
all over with the rich bequests of men who find
themselves too heavily laden to enter in at the narrow
gate of heaven. Happy the foot-sore, heart-weary
traveller who turns from the crowded, dusty highway
down the green lane that leads to these humble inns,
where the sign of the Good Samaritan is written on the
face of whomsoever opens to the stranger, and
refreshment for soul and body is freely given in the
name of Him who loved the poor. Mr. Power came now
and then, for his large parish left him but little time to
visit any but the needy. Christie enjoyed these brief
visits heartily, for her new friends soon felt that she was
one of them, and cordially took her into the large circle
of workers and believers to which they belonged. Mr.
Power's heart was truly an orphan asylum, and every
lonely creature found a welcome there. He could rebuke
sin sternly, yet comfort and uplift the sinner with
fatherly compassion; righteous wrath would flash from
his eyes at injustice, and contempt sharpen his voice as
he denounced hypocrisy:
yet the eyes that lightened would dim with pity for a
woman's wrong, a child's small sorrow; and the voice
that thundered would whisper consolation like a
mother, or give counsel with a wisdom books cannot
teach. He was a Moses in his day and generation, born
to lead his people out of the bondage of dead
superstitions, and go before them through a Red Sea of
persecution into the larger liberty and love all souls
hunger for, and many are just beginning to find as they
come doubting, yet desiring, into the goodly land such
pioneers as he have planted in the wilderness. He was
like a tonic to weak natures and wavering wills; and
Christie felt a general revival going on within herself as
her knowledge, honor, and affection for him grew. His
strength seemed to uphold her; his integrity to rebuke
all unworthiness in her own life; and the magic of his
generous, genial spirit to make the hard places smooth,
the bitter things sweet, and the world seem. a happier,
honester place than she had ever thought it since her
father died. Mr. Power had been interested in her from
the first; had watched her through other eyes, and tried
her by various unsuspected tests. She stood them well;
showed her faults as frankly as her virtues, and tried to
deserve their esteem by copying the excellencies she
admired in them. " She is made of the right stuff, and
we must keep her among us; for she must not be lost or
wasted by being left to drift about the world with no
ties to make her safe and happy. She is doing so well
here, let her stay till the restless spirit begins to stir
again; then she shall come to me and learn contentment
by seeing greater troubles than her own." Mr. Power
said this one day as he rose to go, after sitting an hour
with Mrs. Sterling, and hearing from her a good report
of his new protegee. The young people were out at
work, and had not been called in to see him, for the
interview had been a confidential one. But as he stood
at the gate he saw Christie in the strawberry bed, and
went toward her, glad to see how well and happy she
looked. Her hat was hanging on her shoulders, and the
sun giving her cheeks a healthy color; she was
humming to herself like a bee as her fingers flew, and
once she paused, shaded her eyes with her hand, and
took a long look at a figure down in the meadow,; then
she worked on silent and smiling,- a pleasant creature to
see, though her hair was ruffled by the wind; her
gingham gown pinned up; and her fingers deeply
stained with the blood of many berries. "I wonder if that
means any thing?" thought Mr. Power, with a keen
glance from the distant man to the busy woman close at
hand. "It might be a helpful, happy thing for both, if
poor David only could forget." I-e had time for no more
castle-building, for a startled robin flew away with a
shrill chirp, and Christie looked up. "Oh, I'm so glad! "
she said, rising quickly. "I was picking a special box for
you, and now you can have a feast beside, just as you
like it, fresh from the vines. Sit here, please, and I'll hull
faster than you can eat." "This is luxury!" and Mr.
Power sat down on the three-legged stool offered him,
with a rhubarb leaf on his knee which Christie kept
supplying with delicious mouthfuls.
"Well, and how goes it? Are we still happy and
contented here? " he asked. "I feel as if I had been born
again; as if this was a new heaven and a new earth, and
every thing was as it should be," answered Christie,
with a look of perfect satisfaction in her face. "' That's a
pleasant hearing. Mrs. Sterling has been praising you,
but I wanted to be sure you were as satisfied as she.
And how does David wear? well, I hope." "Oh, yes, he
is very good to me, and is teaching me to be a gardener,
so that I needn't kill myself with sewing any more.
Much of this is fine work for women, and so healthy.
Don't I look a different creature from the ghost that
came here three or four months ago?" and she turned
her face for inspection like a child. " Yes, David is a
good gardener. I often send my sort of plants here, and
he always makes them grow and blossom sooner or
later," answered Mr. Power, regarding her like a
beneficent genie on a three-legged stool. " You are the
fresh air, and Mrs. Sterling is the quiet sunshine that
does the work, I fancy. David only digs about the
roots." "Thank you for my share of the compliment; but
why say only digs'? That is a most important part of the
work:
I'm afraid you don't appreciate David." "Oh, yes, I do;
but he rather aggravates me sometimes," said Christie,
laughing, as she put a particularly big berry in the green
plate to atone for her frankness. "How?" asked Mr.
Power, interested in these little revelations. " Well, he
won't be ambitious. I try to stir him up, for he has
talents; I've found that out: but he won't seem to care
for any thing but watching over his mother, reading his
old books, and making flowers bloom double when
they ought to be single." " There are worse ambitions
than those, Christie. I know many a man who would be
far better employed in cherishing a sweet old woman,
studying Plato, and doubling the beauty of a flower,
than in selling principles for money, building up a
cheap reputation that dies with him, or chasing
pleasures that turn to ashes in his mouth." "Yes, sir; but
isn't it natural for a young man to have some personal
aim or aspiration to live for? If David was a weak or
dull man I could understand it; but I seem to feel a
power, a possibility for something higher and better
than any thing I see, and this frets me. He is so good, I
want him to be great also in some way." "A wise man
says,'The essence of greatness is the perception that
virtue is enough.' Ithink David one of the most
ambitious men I ever knew, because at thirty he has
discovered this truth, and taken it to heart. Many men
can be what the world calls great:
very few men are what God calls good. This is the
harder task to choose, yet the only success that satisfies,
the only honor that outlives death. These faithful lives,
whether seen of men or hidden in corners, are the
salvation of the world, and few of us fail to
acknowledge it in the hours when we are brought close
to the heart of things, and see a little as God sees."
Christie did not speak for a moment:
Mr. Power's voice had been so grave, and his words so
earnest that she could not answer lightly, but sat turning
over the new thoughts in her mind. Presently she said,
in a penitent but not quite satisfied tone:
"Of course you are right, sir. I'll try not to care for the
outward and visible signs of these hidden virtues; but
I'm afraid I still shall have a hankering for the worldly
honors that are so valued by most people." " Success
and glory are the children of hard work and God's
favor,' according to AEschylus, and you will find he
was right. David got a heavy blow some years ago as I
told you, I think; and he took it hard, but it did not spoil
him:
it made a man of him; and, if I am not much mistaken,
he will yet do something to be proud of, though the
world may never hear of it." " I hope so! " and
Christie's face brightened at the thought. "Nevertheless
you look as if you doubted it, 0 you of little faith. Every
one has two sides to his nature:
David has shown you the least interesting one, and you
judge accordingly. I think he will show you the other
side some day, -for you are one of the women who win
confidence without trying, -- and then you will know
the real David. Don't expect too much, or quarrel with
the imperfections that make him human; but take him
for what he is worth, and help him if you can to make
his life a brave and good one." "I will, sir," answered
Christie so meekly that Mr. Power laughed; for this
confessional in the strawberry bed amused him very
much. " You are a hero-worshipper, my dear; and if
people don't come up to the mark you are so
disappointed that you fail to see the fine reality which
remains when the pretty romance ends. Saints walk
about the world to, day as much as ever, but instead of
haircloth and halos they now wear" -- "Broadcloth and
wide-brimmed hats," added Christie, looking up as if
she had already found a better St. Thomas than any the
church ever canonized. He thanked her with a smile,
and went on with a glance toward the meadow. " And
knights go crusading as gallantly as ever against the
giants and the dragons, though you don't discover it,
because, instead of banner, lance, and shield they carry"
-- "Bushel-baskets, spades, and sweet-flag for their
mothers," put in Christie again, as David came up the
path with the loam he had been digging. Both began to
laugh, and he joined in the merriment without knowing
why, as he put down his load, took off his hat, and
shook hands with his honored guest. "What's the joke?"
he asked, refreshing himself with the handful of berries
Christie offered him. "Don't tell," she whispered,
looking dismayed at the idea of letting him know what
she had said of him. But Mr. Power answered
tranquilly:
"We were talking about coins, and Christie was
expressing her opinion of one I showed her. The face
and date she understands; but the motto puzzles her,
and she has not seen the reverse side yet, so does not
know its value. She will some day; and then she will
agree with me, I think, that it is sterling gold." The
emphasis on the last words enlightened David: his
sunburnt cheek reddened, but he only shook his head,
saying:
" She will find a brass farthing I'm afraid, sir," and
began to crumble a handful of loam about the roots of a
carnation that seemed to have sprung up by chance at
the foot of the apple-tree. " How did that get there?"
asked Christie, with sudden interest in the flower. "It
dropped when I was setting out the others, took root,
and looked so pretty and comfortable that I left it.
These waifs sometimes do better than the most
carefully tended ones:
I only dig round them a bit and leave them to sun and
air." Mr. Power looked at Christie with so much
meaning in his face that it was her turn to color now.
But with feminine perversity she would not own herself
mistaken, and answered with eyes as full of meaning as
his own:
I like the single ones best: double-carnations are so
untidy, all bursting out of the calyx as if the petals had
quarrelled and could not live together." "The single
ones are seldom perfect, and look poor and incomplete
with little scent or beauty," said unconscious David
propping up the thin-leaved flower, that looked like a
pale solitary maiden, beside the great crimson and
white carnations near by, filling the air with spicy odor.
"I suspect you will change your mind by and by,
Christie, as your taste improves, and you will learn to
think the double ones the handsomest," added Mr.
Power, wondering in his benevolent heart if he would
ever be the gardener to mix the colors of the two human
plants before him. "I must go," and David shouldered
his basket as if he felt he might be in the way. " So must
I, or they will be waiting for me at the hospital. Give
me a handful of flowers, David: they often do the poor
souls more good than my prayers or preaching." Then
they went away, and left Christie sitting in the
strawberry bed, thinking that David looked less than
ever like a hero with his blue shirt, rough straw hat, and
big boots; also wondering if he would ever show her his
best side, and if she would like it when she saw it.
Chapter XII
Christie's Gala
ON the fourth of September, Christie woke up, saying
to herself:
"It is my birthday, but no one knows it, so I shall get no
presents. Ah, well, I'm too old for that now, I suppose;"
but she sighed as she said it, for well she knew one
never is too old to be remembered and beloved. Just
then the door opened, and Mrs. Sterling entered,
carrying what looked very like a pile of snow-flakes in
her arms. Laying this upon the bed, she kissed Christie,
saying with a tone and gesture that made the words a
benediction:
"A happy birthday, and God bless thee, my daughter!"
Before Christie could do more than hug both gift and
giver, a great bouquet came flying in at the open
window, aimed with such skill that it fell upon the bed,
while David's voice called out from below:
"A happy birthday, Christie, and many of them!" " How
sweet, how kind of you, this is! I didn't dream you
knew about to-day, and never thought of such a
beautiful surprise," cried Christie, touched and charmed
by this unexpected celebration.
"Thee mentioned it once long ago, and we remembered.
They are very humble gifts, my dear; but we could not
let the day pass without some token of the thanks we
owe thee for these months of faithful service and
affectionate companionship." Christie had no answer to
this little address, and was about to cry as the only
adequate expression of her feelings, when a hearty
"Hear! Hear!" from below made her laugh, and call out:
"You conspirators! how dare you lay plots, and then
exult over me when I can't find words to thank you? I
always did think you were a set of angels, and now 1'm
quite sure of it." "Thee may be right about Davy, but
Iam only a prudent old woman, and have taken much
pleasure in privately knitting this light wrap to wear
when thee sits in the porch, for the evenings will soon
grow chilly. My son did not know what to get, and
finally decided that flowers would suit thee best; so he
made a bunch of those thee loves, and would toss it in
as if he was a boy." "I like that way, and both my
presents suit me exactly," said Christie, wrapping the
fleecy shawl about her, and admiring the nosegay in
which her quick eye saw all her favorites, even to a
plumy spray of the little wild asters which she loved so
much. "Now, child, I will step down, and see about
breakfast. Take thy time; for this is to be a holiday, and
we mean to make it a happy one if we can." With that
the old lady went away, and Christie soon followed,
looking very fresh and blithe as she ran down smiling
behind her great bouquet. David was in the porch,
training up the morning-glories that bloomed late and
lovely in that sheltered spot. He turned as she
approached, held out his hand, and bent a little as if he
was moved to add a tenderer greeting. But he did not,
only held the hand she gave him for a moment, as he
said with the paternal expression unusually visible:
"I wished you many happy birthdays; and, if you go on
getting younger every year like this, you will surely
have them." It was the first compliment he had ever
paid her, and she liked it, though she shook her head as
if disclaiming it, and answered brightly:
"I used to think many years would be burdensome, and
just before I came here I felt as if I could not bear
another one. But now I like to live, and hope I shall a
long, long time." "I'm glad of that; and how do you
mean to spend these long years of yours?" asked David,
brushing back the lock of hair that was always falling
into his eyes, as if he wanted to see more clearly the
hopeful face before him. "In doing what your morningglories do, -- climb up as far and as fast as I can before
the frost comes," answered Christie, looking at the
pretty symbols she had chosen. " You have got on a
good way already then," began David, smiling at her
fancy. "Oh no, I haven't!" she said quickly. "I'm only
about half way up. See here:
I'll tell how it is;" and, pointing to the different parts of
the flowery wall, she added in her earnest way:
"I've watched these grow, and had many thoughts about
them, as I sit sewing in the porch. These variegated
ones down low are my childish fancies; most of them
gone to seed you see. These lovely blue ones of all
shades are my girlish dreams and hopes and plans. Poor
things! some are dead, some torn by the wind, and only
a few pale ones left quite perfect. Here you observe
they grow sombre with a tinge of purple; that means
pain and gloom, and there is where I was when I came
here. Now they turn from those sad colors to crimson,
rose, and soft pink. That's the happiness and health I
found here. You and your dear mother planted them,
and you see how strong and bright they are." She lifted
up her hand, and gathering one of the great rosy cups
offered it to him, as if it were brimful of the thanks she
could not utter. He comprehended, took it with a quiet
"Thank you," and stood looking at it for a moment, as if
her little compliment pleased him very much. "And
these?" he said presently, pointing to the delicate violet
bells that grew next the crimson ones. The color
deepened a shade in Christie's cheek, but she went on
with no other sign of shyness; for with David she
always spoke out frankly, because she could not help it.
"Those mean love to me, not passion: the deep red ones
half hidden under the leaves mean that. My violet
flowers are the best and purest love we can know:
the sort that makes life beautiful and lasts for ever. The
white ones that come next are tinged with that soft color
here and there, and they mean holiness. I know there
will be love in heaven; so, whether I ever find it here or
not, I am sure I shall not miss it wholly." Then, as if
glad to leave the theme that never can be touched
without reverent emotion by a true woman, she added,
looking up to where a few spotless blossoms shone like
silver in the light:
" Far away there in the sunshine are my highest
aspirations. I cannot reach them: but I can look up, and
see their beauty; believe in them, and try to follow
where they lead; remember that frost comes latest to
those that bloom the highest; and keep my beautiful
white flowers as long as I can." "The mush is ready;
come to breakfast, children," called Mrs. Sterling, as
she crossed the hall with a teapot in her hand. Christie's
face fell, then she exclaimed laughing:
"That's always the way; I never take a poetic flight but
in comes the mush, and spoils it all." " Not a bit; and
that's where women are mistaken. Souls and bodies
should go on together; and you will find that a hearty
breakfast won't spoil the little hymn the morningglories sung;" and David set her a good example by
eating two bowls of hasty-pudding and milk, with the
lovely flower in his button-hole. " Now, what are we to
do next?" asked Christie, when the usual morning work
was finished. "In about ten minutes thee will see, I
think," answered Mrs. Sterling, glancing at the clock,
and smiling at the bright expectant look in the younger
woman's eyes. She did see; for in less than ten minutes
the rumble of an omnibus was heard, a sound of many
voices, and then the whole Wilkins brood came
whooping down the lane. It was good to see Ma
Wilkins jog ponderously after in full state and festival
array; her bonnet trembling with bows, red roses all
over her gown, and a parasol of uncommon brilliancy
brandished joyfully in her hand. It was better still to see
her hug Christie, when the latter emerged, flushed and
breathless, from the chaos of arms, legs, and chubby
faces in which she was lost for several tumultuous
moments; and it was best of all to see the good woman
place her cherished "bunnit" in the middle of the parlor
table as a choice and lovely ornament, administer the
family pocket-handkerchief all round, and then settle
down with a hearty:
" Wal, now, Mis Sterlin', you've no idee how tickled we
all was when Mr. David came, and told us you was
goin' to have a galy here to-day. It was so kind of
providential, for Lisha was invited out to a day's
pleasurin', so I could leave jest as wal as not. The
childern's ben hankerin' to come the wust kind, and go
plummin' as they did last month, though I told 'em
berries was gone weeks ago. I reelly thought I'd never
get 'em here whole, they trained so in that bus. Wash
would go on the step, and kep fallin' off; Gusty's hat
blew out a winder; them two bad boys tumbled round
loose; and dear little Victory set like a lady, only I
found she'd got both feet in the basket right atop of the!
birthday cake, I made a puppose for Christie." " It hasn't
hurt it a bit; there was a cloth over it, and I like it all the
better for the marks of Totty's little feet, bless 'em!" and
Christie cuddled the culprit with one hand while she
revealed the damaged delicacy with the other,
wondering inwardly what evil star was always in the
ascendant when Mrs. Wilkins made cake. "Now, my
dear, you jest go and have a good frolic with them
childern, I'm a goin' to git dinner, and you a goin' to
play; so we don't want to see no more of you till the bell
rings," said Mrs. Wilkins pinning up her gown, and
"shooing" her brood out of the room, which they
entirely filled. Catching up her hat Christie obeyed,
feeling as much like a child as any of the excited six.
The revels that followed no pen can justly record, for
Goths and Vandals on the rampage but feebly describes
the youthful Wilkinses when their spirits effervesced
after a month's bottling up in close home quarters.
David locked the greenhouse door the instant he saw
them; and pervaded the premises generally like a most
affable but very watchful policeman, for the ravages
those innocents committed much afflicted him. Yet he
never had the heart to say a word of reproof, when he
saw their raptures over dandelions, the relish with
which they devoured fruit, and the good it did the little
souls and bodies to enjoy unlimited liberty, green grass,
and country air, even for a day. Christie usually got
them into the big meadow as soon as- possible, and
there let them gambol at will; while she sat on the
broken bough of an apple-tree, and watched her flock
like an old-fashioned shepherdess. To-day she did so;
and when the children were happily sailing boats,
tearing to and fro like wild colts, or discovering the
rustic treasures Nurse Nature lays ready to gladden little
hearts and hands, Christie sat idly making a garland of
green brakes, and ruddy sumach leaves ripened before
the early frosts had come. David saw her there, and,
feeling that he might come off guard for a time, went
strolling down to lean upon the wall, and chat in the
friendly fashion that had naturally grown up between
these fellow-workers. She was waiting for the new
supply of ferns little Adelaide was getting for her by the
wall; and while she waited she sat resting her cheek
upon her hand, and smiling to herself, as if she saw
some pleasant picture in the green grass at her feet.
"Now I wonder what she's thinking about," said David's
voice close by, and Christie straightway answered:
"Philip Fletcher." "And who is he? " asked David,
settling his elbow in a comfortable niche between the
mossy stones, so that he could " lean and loaf" at his
ease. The brother of the lady whose children I took care
of;" and Christie wished she had thought before she
answered that first question, for in telling her
adventures at different times she had omitted all
mention of this gentleman. "Tell about him, as the
children say:
your experiences are always interesting, and you look
as if this man was uncommonly entertaining in some
way," said David, indolently inclined to be amused.
"Oh, dear no, not at all entertaining! invalids seldom
are, and he was sick aid lazy, conceited and very cross
sometimes." Christie's heart rather smote her as she said
this, remembering the last look poor Fletcher gave her.
" A nice man to be sure; but I don't see any thing to
smile about," persisted David, who liked reasons for
things; a masculine trait often very trying to feminine
minds. "I was thinking of a little quarrel we once had.
He found out that I had been an actress; for I basely did
not mention that fact when I took the place, and so got
properly punished for my deceit. I thought he'd tell his
sister of course, so I did it myself, and retired from the
situation as much disgusted with Christie Devon as you
are." " Perhaps I ought to be, but I don't find that I am.
Do you know I think that old Fletcher was a sneak? "
and David looked as if he would rather like to mention
his opinion to that gentleman. "He probably thought he
was doing his duty to the children: few people would
approve of an actress for.a teacher you know. He had
seen me play, and remembered it all of a sudden, and
told me of it:
that was the way it came about," said Christie hastily,
feeling that she must get out of the scrape as soon as
possible, or she would be driven to tell every thing in
justice to Mr. Fletcher. " I should like to see you act."
"You a Quaker, and express such a worldly and
dreadful wish? " cried Christie, much amused, and very
grateful that his thoughts had taken a new direction. "
I'm not, and never have been. Mother married out of the
sect, and, though she keeps many of her old ways,
always left me free to believe what I chose. I wear drab
because I like it, and say 'thee' to her because she likes
it, and it is pleasant to have a little word all our own.
I've been to theatres, but I don't care much for them.
Perhaps I should if I'd had Fletcher's luck in seeing you
play." " You didn't lose much:
I was not a good actress; though now and then when I
liked my part I did pretty well they said," answered
Christie, modestly. " Why didn't you go back after the
accident? " asked David, who had heard that part of the
story. "I felt that it was bad for me, and so retired to
private life."
Do you ever regret it?" " Sometimes when the restless
fit is on me: but not so often now as I used to do; for on
the whole I'd rather be a woman than act a queen."
"Good! " said David, and then added persuasively:
" But you will play for me some time:
won't you? I've a curious desire to see you do it."
"Perhaps I'll try," replied Christie, flattered by his
interest, and not unwilling to display her little talent.
"Who are you making that for? it's very pretty," asked
David, who seemed to be in an inquiring frame of mind
that day. " Any one who wants it. I only do it for the
pleasure:
I always liked pretty things; but, since I have lived
among flowers and natural people, I seem to care more
than ever for beauty of all kinds, and love to make it if I
can without stopping for any reason but the
satisfaction." "'Tell them, dear, that if eyes were made
for seeing, "' Then beauty is its own excuse for being,'
observed David, who had a weakness for poetry, and,
finding she liked his sort, quoted to Christie almost as
freely as to himself. "Exactly, so look at that and enjoy
it," and she pointed to the child standing knee-deep in
graceful ferns, looking as if she grew there, a living
buttercup, with her buff frock off at one plump shoulder
and her bright hair shining in the sun. Before. David
could express his admiration, the little picture was
spoilt; for Christie called out, " Come, Vic, bring me
some more pretties!" startling baby so that she lost her
balance, and disappeared with a muffled cry, leaving
nothing to be seen but a pair of small convulsive shoes,
soles uppermost, among the brakes. David took a leap,
reversed Vic, and then let her compose her little
feelings by sticking bits of green in all the button-holes
of his coat, as he sat on the wall while she stood beside
him in the safe shelter of his arm. "You are very like an
Englishman," said Christie, after watching the pair for a
few minutes. "How do you know?" asked David,
looking surprised. "There were several in our company,
and I found them very much alike. Blunt and honest,domestic and kind; hard to get at, but true as steel when
once won; not so brilliant and original as Americans,
perhaps, but more solid and steadfast. On the whole, I
think them the manliest men in the world," answered
Christie, in the decided way young people have of
expressing their opinions. " You speak as if you had
known and studied a great variety of men," said David,
feeling that he need not resent the comparison she had
made. "I have, and it has done me good. Women who
stand alone in the world, and have their own way to
make, have a better chance to know men truly than
those who sit safe at home and only see one side of
mankind. We lose something; but I think we gain a
great deal that is more valuable than admiration,
flattery, and the superficial service most men give to
our sex. Some one says,'Companionship teaches men
and women to know, judge, and treat one another
justly.' I believe it; for we who are compelled to be
fellowworkers with men understand and value them
more truly than many a belle who has a dozen lovers
sighing at her feet. I see their faults and follies; but I
also see so much to honor, love, and trust, that I feel as
if the world was full of brothers. Yes, as a general rule,
men have been kinder to me than women; and if I
wanted a staunch friend I'd choose a man, for they wear
better than women, who ask too much, and cannot see
that friendship lasts longer if a little respect and reserve
go with the love and confidence." Christie had spoken
soberly, with no thought of flattery or effect; for the
memory of many kindnesses bestowed on her by many
men, from rough Joe Butterfield to Mr. Power, gave
warmth and emphasis to her words. The man sitting on
the wall appreciated the compliment to his sex, and
proved that he deserved his share of it by taking it
exactly as she meant it, and saying heartily:
"I like that, Christie, and wish more women thought and
spoke as you do." " If they had had my experience they
would, and not be ashamed of it. I am so old now I can
say these things and not be misjudged; for even some
sensible people think this honest sort of fellowship
impossible if not improper. I don't, and I never shall, so
if I can ever do any thing for you, David, forget that I
am a woman and tell me as freely as if I was a younger
brother." "I wish you were!" "So do I; you'd make a
splendid elder brother." " No, a very bad one." There
was a sudden sharpness in David's voice that jarred on
Christie's ear and made her look up quickly. She only
caught a glimpse of his face, and saw that it was
strangely troubled, as he swung himself over the wall
with little Vic on his arm and went toward the house,
saying abruptly:
"Baby's sleepy: she must go in." Christie sat some time
longer, wondering what she had said to disturb him, and
when the bell rang went in still perplexed. But David
looked as usual, and the only trace of disquiet was an
occasional hasty shaking back of the troublesome lock,
and a slight knitting of the brows; two tokens, as she
had learned to know, of impatience or pain. She was
soon so absorbed in feeding the children, hungry and
clamorous as young birds for their food, that she forgot
every thing else. When dinner was done and cleared
away, she devoted herself to Mrs. Wilkins for an hour
or two, while Mrs. Sterling took her nap, the infants
played riotously in the lane, and David was busy with
orders. The arrival of Mr. Power drew every one to the
porch to welcome him. As he handed Christie a book,
he asked with a significant smile:
" Have you found him yet? " She glanced at the title of
the new gift, read "Heroes and Hero-worship," and
answered merrily:
"No, sir, but I'm looking hard." "Success to your
search," and Mr. Power turned to greet David, who
approached. "Now, what shall we play?" asked Christie,
as the children gathered about her demanding to be
amused. George Washington suggested leap-frog, and
the others added equally impracticable requests; but
Mrs. Wilkins settled the matter by saying:
"Let's have some play-actin', Christie. That used to
tickle the children amazin'ly, and I was never tired of
hearin' them pieces, specially the solemn ones." "Yes,
yes! do the funny girl with the baby, and the old
woman, and the lady that took pison and had fits!"
shouted the children, charmed with the idea. Christie
felt ready for any thing just then, and gave them Tilly
Slowboy, Miss Miggs, and Mrs. Gummage, in her best
style, while the young folks rolled on the grass in
ecstasies, and Mrs. Wilkins laughed till she cried. "Now
a touch of tragedy!" said Mr. Power, who sat under the
elm, with David leaning on the back of his chair, both
applauding heartily. "You insatiable people! do you
expect me to give you low comedy and heavy tragedy
all alone? I'm equal to melodrama I think, and I'll give
you Miss St. Clair as Juliet, if you wait a moment."
Christie stepped into the house, and soon reappeared
with a white table-cloth draped about her, two
dishevelled locks of hair on her shoulders, and the
vinegar cruet in her hand, that being the first bottle she
could find. She meant to burlesque the poison scene,
and began in the usual ranting way; but she soon forgot
St. Clair in poor Juliet, and did it as she had often
longed to do it, with all the power and passion she
possessed. Very faulty was her rendering, but the
earnestness she put into it made it most effective to her
uncritical audience, who "brought down the house,"
when she fell upon the grass with her best stage drop,
and lay there getting her breath after the mouthful of
vinegar she had taken in the excitement of the moment.
She was up again directly, and, inspired by this superb
success, ran in and presently reappeared as Lady
Macbeth with Mrs. Wilkins's scarlet shawl for royal
robes, and the leafy chaplet of the morning for a crown.
She took the stage with some difficulty, for the
unevenness of the turf impaired the majesty of her
tragic stride, and fixing her eyes on an invisible Thane
(who cut his part shamefully, and spoke in the gruffest
of gruff voices) she gave them the dagger-scene. David
as the orchestra, had been performing a drum solo on
the back of a chair with two of the corn-cobs Victoria
had been building houses with; but, when Lady
Macbeth said, "Give me the daggers," Christie plucked
the cobs suddenly from his hands, looking so fiercely
scornful, and lowering upon him so wrathfully with her
corked brows that he ejaculated an involuntary, " Bless
me!" as he stepped back quite daunted. Being in the
spirit of her part, Christie closed with the sleep-walking
scene, using the table-cloth again, while a towel
composed the tragic nightcap of her ladyship. This was
an imitation, and having a fine model and being a good
mimic, she did well; for the children sat staring with
round eyes, the gentlemen watched the woful face and
gestures intently, and Mrs. Wilkins took a long breath
at the end, exclaiming:
"I never did see the beat of that for gastliness! My sister
Clarissy used to walk in her sleep, but she warn't half so
kind of dreadfil." " If she had had the murder of a few
friends on her conscience, I dare say she would have
been," said Christie, going in to make herself tidy. "
Well, how do you like her as an actress?" asked Mr.
Power of David, who stood looking, as if he still saw
and heard the haunted lady. "Very much; but better as a
woman. I'd no idea she had it in her," answered David,
in a wonder-stricken tone. "Plenty of tragedy and
comedy in all of us," began Mr. Power; but David said
hastily:
"Yes, but few of us have passion and imagination
enough to act Shakspeare in that way." "Very true:
Christie herself could not give a whole character in that
style, and would not think of trying." " I think she
could; and I'd like to see her try it," said David, much
impressed by the dramatic ability which Christie's usual
quietude had most effectually hidden. He was still
thinking about it, when she came out again.. Mr. Power
beckoned to her, saying, as she came and stood before
him, flushed and kindled with her efforts:
" Now, you must give me a bit from the 'Merchant of
Venice.' Portia is a favorite character of mine, and I
want to see if you can do any thing with it." " No, sir, I
cannot. I used to study it, but it was too sober to suit
me. I am not a judicial woman, so I gave it up,"
answered Christie, much flattered by his request, and
amused at the respectful way in which' David looked at
her. Then, as if it just occurred to her, she added, "I
remember one little speech that I can say to you, sir,
with great truth, and I will, since you like that play."
Still standing before him, she bent her head a little, and
with a graceful gesture of the hands, as if offering
something, she delivered with heartfelt emphasis the
first part of Portia's pretty speech to her fortunate suitor:
"You see me, Lord Bassanio, where I stand, Such as-I
am:
though, for myself alone, I would not be ambitious in
my wish, To wish myself much better; yet for you, I
would be trebled twenty times myself; A thousand
times more fair, ten thousand times more rich; That,
only to stand high in your account, I might in virtues,
beauties, livings, friends, Exceed account:
but the full sum of me Is sum of something; which, to
term in gross, Is an unlesson'd girl, unschool'd,
unpractis'd: Happy in this, she is not yet so old But she
may learn; happier than this, She is not bred so dull but
she can learn; Happiest of all, is that her willing spirit
Commits itself to yours to be directed, As from her
lord, her governor, her king." David applauded
vigorously; but Mr. Power rose silently, looking both
touched and surprised; and, drawing Christie's hand
through his arm, led her away into the garden for one of
the quiet talks that were so much to her. When they
returned, the Wilkinses were preparing to depart; and,
after repeated leave-takings, finally got under way,
were packed into the omnibus, and rumbled off with
hats, hands, and handkerchiefs waving from every
window. Mr. Power soon followed, and peace returned
to the little house in the lane. Later in the evening,
when Mrs. Sterling was engaged with a neighbor, who
had come to confide some affliction to the good lady,
Christie went into the porch, and found David sitting on
the step, enjoying the mellow moonlight and the balmy
air. As he did not speak, she sat down silently, folded
her hands in her lap, and began to enjoy the beauty of
the night in her own way. Presently she became
conscious that David's eyes had turned from the moon
to her own face. He sat in the shade, she in the light,
and he was looking at her with the new expression
which amused her. "Well, what is it? You look as if you
never saw me before," she said, smiling. "I feel as if I
never had," he answered, still regarding her as if she
had been a picture. "What do I look like?" "A peaceful,
pious nun, just now." " Oh! that is owing to my pretty
shawl. I put it on in honor of the day, though it is a trifle
warm, I confess." And Christie stroked the soft folds
about her shoulders, and settled the corner that lay
lightly on her hair. "I do feel peaceful to-night, but not
pious. I am afraid I never shall do that," she added
soberly. "Why not?" " Well, it does not seem to be my
nature, and I don't know how to change it. I want
something to keep me steady, but I can't find it. So I
whiffle about this way and that, and sometimes think I
am a most degenerate creature." "That is only human
nature, so don't be troubled. We are all compasses
pointing due north. We get shaken often, and the needle
varies in spite of us; but the minute we are quiet, it
points right, and we have only to follow it."
The keeping quiet is just what I cannot do. Your mother
shows me how lovely it is, and I try to imitate it; but
this restless soul of mine will ask questions and doubt
and fear, and worry me in many ways. What shall I do
to keep it still? " asked Christie, smiling, yet earnest.
"Let it alone:
you cannot force these things, and the best way is to
wait till the attraction is strong enough to keep the
needle steady. Some people get their ballast slowly,
some don't need much, and some have to work hard for
theirs." "Did you?" asked Christie; for David's voice
fell a little, as he uttered the last words. " I have not got
much yet." "I think you have. Why, David, you are
always cheerful and contented, good and generous. If
that is not true piety, what is?" "You are very much
deceived, and I am sorry for it," said David, with the
impatient gesture of the head, and a troubled look.
"Prove it!" And Christie looked at him with such
sincere respect and regard, that his honest nature would
not let him accept it, though it gratified him much. He
made no answer for a minute. Then he said slowly, as if
feeling a modest man's hesitation to speak of himself,
yet urged to it by some irresistible impulse:
"I will prove it if you won't mind the unavoidable
egotism; for I cannot let you think me so much better
than I am. Outwardly I seem to you cheerful, contented,
generous, and good.' In reality I am sad, dis-satisfied,
bad, and selfish:
see if I'm not. I often tire of this quiet life, hate my
work, and long to break away, and follow my own wild
and wilful impulses, no matter where they lead.
Nothing keeps me at such times but my mother and
God's patience." David began quietly; but the latter part
of this confession was made with a sudden impetuosity
that startled Christie, so utterly unlike his usual selfcontrol was it. She could only look at him with the
surprise she felt. His face was in the shadow; but she
saw that it was flushed, his eyes excited, and in his
voice she heard an undertone that made it sternly selfaccusing. "I am not a hypocrite," he went on rapidly, as
if driven to speak in spite of himself. "I try to be what I
seem, but it is too hard sometimes and I despair.
Especially hard is it to feel that I have learned to feign
happiness so well that others are entirely deceived. Mr.
Power and mother know me as I am:
other friends I have not, unless you will let me call you
one. Whether you do or not after this, I respect you too
much to let you delude yourself about my virtues, so I
tell you the truth and abide the consequences." He
looked up at her as he paused, with a curious mixture of
pride and humility in his face, and squared his broad
shoulders as if he had thrown off a burden that had
much oppressed him. Christie offered him her hand,
saying -in a tone that did his heart good:
"The consequences are that I respect, admire, and trust
you more than ever, and feel proud to be your friend."
David gave the hand a strong and grateful pressure,
said, "Thank you," in a moved tone, and then leaned
back into the shadow, as if trying to recover from this
unusual burst of confidence, won from him by the soft
magic of time, place, and companionship. Fearing he
would regret the glimpse he had given her, and anxious
to show how much she liked it, Christie talked on to
give him time to regain composure. "I always thought
in reading the lives of saints or good men of any time,
that their struggles were the most interesting and
helpful things recorded. Human imperfection only
seems to make real piety more possible, and to me more
beautiful; for where others have conquered I can
conquer, having suffered as they suffer, and seen their
hard-won success. That is the sort of religion I want;
something to hold by, live in, and enjoy, if I can only
get it." " I know you will." He said it heartily, and
seemed quite calm again; so Christie obeyed the instinct
which told her that questions would be good for David,
and that he was in the mood for answering them. " May
I ask you something," she began a little timidly. " Any
thing, Christie," he answered instantly. " That is a rash
promise:
I am a woman, and therefore curious; what shall you do
if I take advantage of the privilege? " "Try and see." "I
will be discreet, and only ask one thing," she replied,
charmed with her success. " You said just now that you
had learned to feign happiness. I wish you would tell
me how you do it, for it is such an excellent imitation I
shall be quite content with it till I can learn the genuine
thing." David fingered the troublesome forelock
thought fully for a moment, then said, with something
of the former impetuosity coming back into his voice
and manner:
" I will tell you all about it; that's the best way:
I know I shall some day because I can't help it; so I may
as well have done with it now, since I have begun. It is
not interesting, mind you, -- only a grim little history of
one man's fight with the world, the flesh, and the devil:
will you have it?" "Oh, yes!" answered Christie, so
eagerly that David laughed, in spite of the bitter
memories stirring at his heart. "So like a woman,
always ready to hear and forgive sinners," he said, then
took a long breath, and added rapidly:
"I'll put it in as few words as possible and much good
may it do you. Some years ago I was desperately
miserable; never mind why:
I dare say I shall tell you all about it some day if I go on
at this rate. Well, being miserable, as I say, every thing
looked black and bad to me:
I hated all men, distrusted all women, doubted the
existence of God, and was a forlorn wretch generally.
Why I did not go to the devil I can't say:
I did start once or twice; but the thought of that dear old
woman in there sitting all alone and waiting for me
dragged me back, and kept me here till the first
recklessness was over. People talk about duty being
sweet; I have not found it so, but there it was:
I should have been a brute to shirk it; so I took it up,
and held on desperately till it grew bearable." "It has
grown sweet now, David, I am sure," said Christie, very
low.
"No, not yet," he answered with the stern honesty that
would not let him deceive himself or others, cost what
it might to be true. " There is a certain solid satisfaction
in it that I did not use to find. It is not a mere dogged
persistence now, as it once was, and that is a step
towards loving it perhaps." He spoke half to himself,
and sat leaning his head on both hands propped on his
knees, looking down as if the weight of the old trouble
bent his shoulders again. "What more, David?" said
Christie. "Only this. When I found I had got to live, and
live manfully, I said to myself, 'I must have help or I
cannot do it.' To no living soul could I tell my grief, not
even to my mother, for she had her own to bear: no
human being could help me, yet I must have help or
give up shamefully. Then I did what others do when all
else fails to sustain them; I turned to God: not humbly,
not devoutly or trustfully, but doubtfully, bitterly, and
rebelliously; for I said in my despairing heart,' If there
is a God, let Him help me, and I will believe.' He did
help me, and I kept my word." "Oh, David, how?"
whispered Christie after a moment's silence, for the last
words were solemn in their earnestness. "The help did
not come at once. No miracle answered me, and I
thought my cry had not been heard. But it had, and
slowly something like submission came to me. It was
not cheerful nor pious:
it was only a dumb, sad sort of patience without hope or
faith. It was better than desperation; so I accepted it,
and bore the inevitable as well as I could. Presently,
courage seemed to spring up again:
I was ashamed to be beaten in the first battle, and some
sort of blind instinct made me long to break away from
the past and begin again. My father was dead; mother
left all to me, and followed where I led. I sold the old
place, bought this, and, shutting out the world as much
as I could, I fell to work as if my life depended on it.
That was five or six years ago:
and for a long time I delved away without interest or
pleasure, merely as a safety-valve for my energies, and
a means of living; for I gave up all my earlier hopes and
plans when the trouble came. " I did not love my work;
but it was good for me, and helped cure my sick soul. I
never guessed why I felt better, but dug on with
indifference first, then felt pride in my garden, then
interest in the plants I tended, and by and by I saw what
they had done for me, and loved them like true friends."
A broad woodbine leaf had been fluttering against
David's head, as he leaned on the slender pillar of the
porch where it grew. Now, as if involuntarily, he laid
his cheek against it with a caressing gesture, and sat
looking over the garden lying dewy and still in the
moonlight, with the grateful look of a man who has
learned' the healing miracles of Nature and how near
she is to God. "Mr. Power helped you: didn't he?" said
Christie, longing to hear more. " So much! I never can
tell you what he was to me, nor how I thank him. To
him, and to my work I owe the little I have won in the
way of strength and comfort after years of effort. I see
now the compensation that comes out of trouble, the
lovely possibilities that exist for all of us, and the
infinite patience of God, which is to me one of the
greatest of His divine attributes. I have only got so far,
but things grow easier as one goes on; and if I keep
tugging I may yet be the cheerful, contented man I
seem. That is all, Christie, and a longer story than I
meant to tell." " Not long enough: some time you will
tell me more perhaps, since you have once begun. It
seems quite natural now, and I am so pleased and
honored by your confidence. But I cannot help
wondering what made you do it all at once," said
Christie presently, after they had listened to a
whippoorwill, and watched the flight of a downy owl.
"I do not think I quite know myself, unless it was
because I have been on my good behavior since you
came, and, being a humbug, as I tell you, was forced to
unmask in spite of myself. There are limits to human
endurance, and the proudest man longs to unpack his
woes before a sympathizing friend now and then. I have
been longing to do this for some time; but I never like
to disturb mother's peace, or take Mr. Power from those
who need him more. So to-day, when you so sweetly
offered to help me if you could, it quite went to my
heart, And seemed so friendly and comfortable, I could
not resist trying it tonight, when you began about my
imaginary virtues. That is the truth, I believe:
now, what shall we do about it?" "Just go on, and do it
again whenever you feel like it. I know what loneliness
is, and how telling worries often cures them. I meant
every word I said this morning, and will prove it by
doing any thing in the world I can for you. Believe this,
and let me be your friend." They had risen, as a stir
within told them the guest was going; and as Christie
spoke she was looking up with the moonlight full upon
her face. If there had been any hidden purpose in her
mind, any false sentiment, or trace of coquetry in her
manner, it would have spoiled that hearty little speech
of hers. But in her heart was nothing but a sincere
desire to prove gratitude and offer sympathy; in her
manner the gentle frankness of a woman speaking to a
brother; and in her face the earnestness of one who felt
the value of friendship, and did not ask or give it
lightly. "I will," was David's emphatic answer, and
then, as if to seal the bargain, he stooped down, and
gravely kissed her on the forehead. Christie was a little
startled, but neither offended nor confused; for there
was no love in that quiet kiss, -- only respect, affection,
and much gratitude; an involuntary demonstration from
the lonely man to the true-hearted woman who had
dared to come and comfort him. Out trotted neighbor
Miller, and that was the end of confidences in the
porch; but David played melodiously on his flute that
night, and Christie fell asleep saying happily to herself:
"Now we are all right, friends for ever, and every thing
will go beautifully."
Chapter XIII
Waking Up Kitty
EVERY thing did "go beautifully" for a time; so much
so, that Christie began to think she really had " got
religion." A delightful peace pervaded her soul, a new
interest made the dullest task agreeable, and life grew
so inexpressibly sweet that she felt as if she could
forgive all her enemies, love her friends more than ever,
and do any thing great, good, or glorious. She had
known such moods before, but they had never lasted
long, and were not so intense as this; therefore, she was
sure some blessed power had come to uphold and cheer
her. She sang like a lark as she swept and dusted;
thought high and happy thoughts among the pots and
kettles, and, when she sat sewing, smiled unconsciously
as if some deep satisfaction made sunshine from within.
Heart and soul seemed to wake up and rejoice as
naturally and beautifully as flowers in the spring. A soft
brightness shone in her eyes, a fuller tone sounded in
her voice, and her face grew young and blooming with
the happiness that transfigures all it touches. "Christie's
growing handsome," David would say to his mother, as
if she was a flower in which he took pride. "Thee is a
good gardener, Davy," the old lady would reply, and
when he was busy would watch him with a tender sort
of anxiety, as if to discover a like change in him. But no
alteration appeared, except more cheerfulness and less
silence; for now there was no need to hide his real self,
and all the social virtues in him came out delightfully
after their long solitude. In her present uplifted state,
Christie could no more help regarding David as a
martyr and admiring him for it, than she could help
mixing sentiment with her sympathy. By the light of the
late confessions, his life and character looked very
different to her now. His apparent contentment was
resignation; his cheerfulness, a manly contempt for
complaint; his reserve, the modest reticence of one
who, having done a hard duty well, desires no praise for
it. Like all enthusiastic persons, Christie had a hearty
admiration for self-sacrifice and self-control; and, while
she learned to see David's virtues, she also exaggerated
them, and could not do enough to show the daily
increasing esteem and respect she felt for him, and to
atone for the injustice she once did him. She grubbed in
the garden and green-house, and learned hard botanical
names that she might be able to talk intelligently upon
subjects that interested her comrade. Then, as autumn
ended out-of-door work, she tried to make home more
comfortable and attractive than ever. David's room was
her especial care; for now to her there was something
pathetic in the place and its poor furnishing. He had
fought many a silent battle there; won many a secret
victory; and tried to cheer his solitude with the best
thoughts the minds of the bravest, wisest men could
give him. She did not smile at the dilapidated idols
now, but touched them tenderly, and let no dust obscure
their well-beloved faces. She set the books in order
daily, taking many a sip of refreshment from them by
the way, and respectfully regarded those in unknown
tongues, full of admiration for David's learning. She
covered the irruptive sofa neatly; saw that the little vase
was always clear and freshly filled; cared for the
nursery in the gable-window; and preserved an
exquisite neatness everywhere, which delighted the soul
of the room's order-loving occupant. She also -- alas,
for romance! -- cooked the dishes David loved, and
liked to see him enjoy them with the appetite which
once had shocked her so. She watched over his buttons
with a vigilance that would have softened the heart of
the crustiest bachelor:
she even gave herself the complexion of a lemon by
wearing blue, because David liked the pretty contrast
with his mother's drabs. After recording that last fact, it
is unnecessary to explain what was the matter with
Christie. She honestly thought she had got religion; but
it was piety's twin sister, who produced this wonderful
revival in her soul; and though she began in all good
faith she presently discovered that she was "Not the
first maiden Who came but for friendship, And took
away love." After the birth-night confessions, David
found it easier to go on with the humdrum life he had
chosen from a sense of duty; for now he felt as if he had
not only a fellow-worker, but a comrade and friend who
understood, sympathized with, and encouraged him by
an interest and good-will inexpressibly comfortable and
inspiring. Nothing disturbed the charm of the new
league in those early days; for Christie was thoroughly
simple and sincere, and did her womanly work with no
thought of reward or love or admiration. David saw
this, and felt it more attractive than any gift of beauty or
fascination of manner would have been. He had no
desire to be a lover, having forbidden himself that hope;
but he found it so easy and pleasant to be a friend that
he reproached himself for not trying it before; and
explained his neglect by the fact that Christie was not
an ordinary woman, since none of all the many he had
known and helped, had ever been any thing to him but
objects of pity and protection. Mrs. Sterling saw these
changes with her wise, motherly eyes, but said nothing;
for she influenced others by the silent power of
character. Speaking little, and unusually gifted with the
meditative habits of age, she seemed to live in a more
peaceful world than this. As George MacDonald
somewhere says, "Her soul seemed to sit apart in a
sunny little room, safe from dust and noise, serenely
regarding passers-by through the clear muslin curtains
of her window." Yet, she was neither cold nor careless,
stern nor selfish, but ready to share all the joys and
sorrows of those about her; and when advice was asked
she gave it gladly. Christie had won her heart long ago,
and now was as devoted as a daughter to her; lightening
her cares so skilfully that many of them slipped
naturally on to the young shoulders, and left the old
lady much time for rest, or the lighter tasks fitted for
feeble hands. Christie often called her "Mother," and
felt herself rewarded for the hardest, humblest job she
ever did when the sweet old voice said gratefully, "I
thank thee, daughter." Things were in this prosperous,
not to say paradisiacal, state, when one member of the
family began to make discoveries of an alarming
nature. The first was that the Sunday pilgrimages to
church were seasons of great refreshment to soul and
body when David went also, and utter failures if he did
not. Next, that the restless ambitions of all sorts were
quite gone; for now Christie's mission seemed to be
sitting in a quiet corner and making shirts in the most
exquisite manner, while thinking about- well, say
botany, or any kindred subject. Thirdly, that home was
woman's sphere after all, and the perfect roasting of
beef, brewing of tea, and concocting of delectable
puddings, an end worth living for if masculine
commendation rewarded the labor. Fourthly, and worst
of all, she discovered that she was not satisfied with
half confidences, and quite pined to know all about
"David's trouble." The little needlebook with the faded
" Letty" on it haunted her; and when, after a pleasant
evening below, she heard him pace his room for hours,
or play melancholy airs upon the flute, she was jealous
of that unknown woman who had such power to disturb
his peace, and felt a strong desire to smash the musical
confidante into whose responsive breast he poured his
woe. At this point Christie paused; and, after evading
any explanation of these phenomena in the most skilful
manner for a time, suddenly faced the fact, saying to
herself with great candor and decision:
" I know what all this means:
I'm beginning to like David more than is good for me. I
see this clearly, and won't dodge any longer, but put a
stop to it at once. Of course I can if I choose, and now
is the time to do it; for I understand myself perfectly,
and if I reach a certain point it is all over with me. That
point I will not reach:
David's heart is in that Letty's grave, and he only cares
for me as a friend. I promised to be one to him, and I'll
keep my word like an honest woman. It may not be
easy; but all the sacrifices shall not be his, and I won't
be a fool." With praiseworthy resolution Christie set
about the reformation without delay; not an easy task
and one that taxed all her. wit and wisdom to execute
without betraying the motive for it. She decided that
Mrs. Sterling must not be left alone on Sunday, so the
young people took turns to go to church, and such
dismal trips Christie had never known; for all her
Sundays were bad weather, and Mr. Power seemed to
hit on unusually uninter'esting texts. She talked while
she sewed instead of indulging in dangerous thoughts,
and Mrs. Sterling was surprised and entertained by this
new loquacity. In the evening she read and studied with
a diligence that amazed and rather disgusted David;
since she kept all her lively chat for his mother, and
pored over her books when he wanted her for other
things. "I'm trying to brighten up my wits," she said,
and went on trying to stifle her affections. But though "
the absurdity," as she called the new revelation, was
stopped externally, it continued with redoubled vigor
internally. Each night she said, "this must be
conquered," yet each morning it rose fair and strong to
make the light and beauty of her day, and conquer her
again. She did her best and bravest, but was forced at
last to own that she could not "put a stop to it," because
she had already reached the point where "it was all over
with her." Just at this critical moment an event occurred
which completed Christie's defeat, and made her feel
that her only safety lay in flight. One evening she sat
studying ferns, and heroically saying over and over,
"Andiantum, Aspidium, and Asplenium, Tvichomanes,"
while longing to go and talk delightfully to David, who
sat musing by the fire. "I can't go on so much longer,"
she thought despairingly. "Polypodium aureum, a
native of Florida," is all very interesting in its place; but
it doesn't help me to gain self-control a bit, and I shall
disgrace myself if something doesn't happen very
soon." Something did happen almost instantly; for as
she shut the cover sharply on the poor Polypods, a
knock was heard, and before David could answer it the
door flew open and a girl ran in. Straight to him she
went, and clinging to his arm said excitedly:
"Oh, do take care of me:
I've run away again!" "Why, Kitty, what's the matter
now?" asked David, putting back her hood, and looking
down at her with the paternal expression Christie had
not seen for a long time, and missed very much. "Father
found me, and took me home, and wanted me to marry
a dreadful man, and I wouldn't, so I ran away to you.
He didn't know I came here before, and I'm safe if
you'll let me stay," cried Kitty, still clinging and
imploring. "Of course I will, and glad to see you back
again," answered David, adding pitifully, as he put her
in his easy-chair, took her cloak and hood off and stood
stroking her curly hair:
" Poor little girl it is hard to have to run away so much:
isn't it?." "Not if I come here; it's so pleasant I'd like to
stay all my life," and Kitty took a long breath, as if her
troubles were over now. "Who's that?" she asked
suddenly, as her eye fell on Christie, who sat watching
her with interest:
"That is our good friend Miss Devon. She came to take
your place, and we got so fond of her we could not let
her go," answered David with a gesture of introduction,
quite unconscious that his position just then was about
as safe and pleasant as that of, a man between a lighted
candle and an open powder barrel. The two young
women nodded to each other, took a swift survey, and
made up their minds before David had poked the fire.
Christie saw a pretty face with rosy cheeks, blue eyes,
and brown rings of hair lying on the smooth, low
forehead; a young face, but not childlike, for it was
conscious of its own prettiness, and betrayed the fact by
little airs and graces that reminded one of a coquettish
kitten. Short and slender, she looked more youthful than
she was; while a gay dress, with gilt ear-rings, locket at
the throat, and a cherry ribbon in her hair made her a
bright little figure in that plain room. Christie suddenly
felt as if ten years had been added to her age, as she
eyed the new-comer, who leaned back in the great chair
talking to David, who stood on the rug, evidently
finding it pleasanter to look at the vivacious face before
him than at the fire. "Just the pretty, lively sort of girl
sensible men often marry, and then discover how silly
they are," thought Christie, taking up her work and
assuming an indifferent air. "She's a lady and nice
looking, but I know I shan't like her," was Kitty's
decision, as she turned away and devoted herself to
David, hoping he would perceive how much she had
improved and admire her accordingly. " So you don't
want to marry this Miles because he is not handsome.
You'd better think again before you make up your
mind. He is respectable, well off, and fond of you, it
seems. Why not try it, Kitty? You need some one to
take care of you sadly," David said, when/her story had
been told. "If father plagues me much I may take the
man; but I'd rather have the other one if he wasn't
poor," answered Kitty with a side-long glance of the
blue eyes, and a conscious smile on the red lips. "Oh,
there's another lover, is there?" "Lots of'em." David
laughed and looked at Christie as if inviting her to be
amused with the freaks and prattle of a child. But
Christie sewed away without a sign of interest. "That
won't do, Kitty:
you are too young for much of such nonsense. I shall
keep you here a while, and see if we can't settle matters
both wisely and pleasantly," he said, shaking his head
as sagely as a grandfather. "I'm sure I wish you would:
I love to stay here, you are always so good to me. I'm in
no hurry to be married; and you won't make me: will
you?" Kitty rose as she spoke, and stood before him
with a beseeching little gesture, and a confiding air
quite captivating to behold. Christie was suddenly
seized with a strong desire to shake the girl and call her
an "artful little hussy," but crushed this unaccountable
impulse, and hemmed a pocket-handkerchief with
reckless rapidity, while she stole covert glances at the
tableau by the fire. David put his finger under Kitty's
round chin, and lifting her face looked into it, trying to
discover if she really cared for this suitor who seemed
so providentially provided for her. Kitty smiled and
blushed, and dimpled under that grave look so prettily
that it soon changed, and David let her go, saying
indulgently:
"You shall not be troubled, for you are only a child
after all. Let the lovers go, and stay and play with me,
for I've been rather lonely lately." "That's a reproach for
me," thought Christie, longing to cry out:
"No, no; send the girl away and let me be all in all to
you.". But she only turned up the lamp and pretended to
be looking for a spool, while her heart ached and her
eyes were too dim for seeing. "I'm too old to play, but
I'll stay and tease you as I used to, if Miles don't come
and carry me off as he said he would,"- answered Kitty,
with a* toss of the head which showed she was not so
childlike as David fancied. But the next minute she was
sitting on a stool at his feet petting the cat, while she
told her adventures with girlish volubility. -Christie
could not bear to sit and look on any longer, so she left
the room, saying she would see if Mrs. Sterling wanted
any thing, for the old lady kept her room with a touch
of rheumatism. As she shut the door, Christie heard
Kitty say softly:
" Now we'll be comfortable as we used to be: won't we?
What David answered Christie did not stay to hear, but
went into the kitchen, and had her first pang of jealousy
out alone, while she beat up the buckwheats for
breakfast with an energy that made them miracles of
lightness on the morrow. When she told Mrs. Sterling
of the new arrival, the placid little lady gave a cluck of
regret and said with unusual emphasis:
" I'm sorry for it." Why?" asked Christie, feeling as if
she could embrace the speaker for the words. "She is a
giddy little thing, and much care to whoever befriends
her." Mrs. Sterling would say no more, but, as Christie
bade her good-night, she held her hand, saying with a
kiss:
" No one will take thy place with me, my daughter."
For a week Christie suffered constant pin-pricks of
jealousy, despising herself all the time, and trying to be
friendly with the disturber of her peace. As if prompted
by an evil spirit, Kitty unconsciously tried and
tormented her from morning to night, and no one saw
or guessed it unless Mrs. Sterling's motherly heart
divined the truth. David seemed to enjoy the girl's
lively chat, her openly expressed affection, and the
fresh young face that always brightened when he came.
Presently, however, Christie saw a change in him, and
suspected that he had discovered that Kitty was a child
no longer, but a young girl with her head full of love
and lovers. The blue eyes grew shy, the pretty face
grew eloquent with blushes now and then, as he looked
at it, and the lively tongue faltered sometimes in
speaking to him. A thousand little coquetries were
played off for his benefit, and frequent appeals for
advice in her heart affairs kept tender subjects
uppermost in their conversations. At first all this
seemed to amuse David as much as if Kitty were a
small child playing at sweethearts; but soon his manner
changed, growing respectful, and a little cool when
Kitty was most confiding. He no longer laughed about
Miles, stopped calling her " little girl," and dropped his
paternal ways as he had done with Christie. By many
indescribable but significant signs he showed that he
considered Kitty a woman now and treated her as such,
being all the more scrupulous in the respect he paid her,
because she was so unprotected, and so wanting in the
natural dignity and refinement which are a woman's
best protection. Christie admired him for this, but saw
in it the beginning of a tenderer feeling than pity, and
felt each day that she was one too many now. Kitty was
puzzled and piqued by these changes, and being a born
flirt tried all her powers on David, veiled under
guileless girlishness. She was very pretty, very
charming, and at times most lovable and sweet when all
that was best in her shallow little heart was touched.
But it was evident to all that her early acquaintance
with the hard and sordid side of life had brushed the
bloom from her nature, and filled her mind with
thoughts and feelings unfitted to her years. Mrs.
Sterling was very kind to her, but never treated her as
she did Christie; and though not a word was spoken
between them the elder women knew that they quite
agreed in their opinion of Kitty. She evidently was
rather afraid of the old lady, who said so little and saw
so much. Christie also she shunned without appearing
to do so, and when alone with her put on airs that half
amused, half irritated the other. "David is my friend,
and I don't care for any one else," her manner said as
plainly as words; and to him she devoted herself so
entirely, and apparently so successfully, that Christie
made up her mind he had at last begun to forget his
Letty, and think of filling the void her loss had left.
A few words which she accidentally overheard
confirmed this idea, and showed her what she must do.
As she came quietly in one evening from a stroll in the
lane, and stood taking off cloak and hood, she caught a
glimpse through the half-open parlor door of David
pacing to and fro with a curiously excited expression on
his face, and heard Mrs. Sterling say with unusual
warmth:
".Thee is too hard upon thyself, Davy. Forget the past
and be happy as other men are. Thee has atoned for thy
fault long ago, so let me see thee at peace before I die,
my son." " Not yet, mother, not yet. I have no right to
hope or ask for any woman's love till I am worthier of
it," answered David in a tone that thrilled Christie's
heart:
it was so full of love and longing. Here Kitty came
running in from the green-house with her hands full of
flowers, and passing Christie, who was fumbling
among the cloaks in the passage, she went to show
David some new blossom. He had no time to alter the
expression of his face for its usual grave serenity:
Kitty saw the change at once, and spoke of it with her
accustomed want of tact. "How handsome you look!
What are you thinking about?" she said, gazing up at
him with her own eyes bright with wonder, and her
cheeks glowing with the delicate carmine of the frosty
air. "I am thinking that you look more like a rose than
ever," answered David turning her attention from
himself by a compliment, and beginning to admire the
flowers, still with that flushed and kindled look on his
own face. Christie crept upstairs, and, sitting in the
dark, decided with the firmness of despair to go away,
lest she should betray the secret that possessed her, a
dead hope now, but still too dear to be concealed. " Mr.
Power told me to come to him when I got tired of this.
I'll say I am tired and try something else, no matter
what: I can bear any thing, but to stand quietly by and
see David marry that empty-hearted girl, who dares to
show that she desires to win him. Out of sight of all
this, I can conquer my love, at least hide it; but if I stay
I know I shall betray myself in some bitter minute, and
I'd rather die than do that." Armed with this resolution,
Christie went the next day to Mr. Power, and simply
said:
"I am not needed at the Sterlings any more:
can you give me other work to do?" Mr. Power's keen
eye searched, her face for a moment, as if to discover
the real motive for her wish. But Christie had nerved
herself to bear that look, and showed no sign of her real
trouble, unless the set expression of her lips, and the
unnatural steadiness of her eyes betrayed it to that
experienced reader of human hearts. Whatever he
suspected or saw, Mr. Power kept to himself, -and
answered in his cordial way:
" Well, I've been expecting you would tire of that quiet
life, and have plenty of work ready for you. One of my
good Dorcases is tired out and must rest; so you shall
take her place and visit my poor, report their needs, and
supply them as fast as we can. Does that suit you?"
"Entirely, sir. Where shall I live?" asked Christie, with
an expression of relief that said much; "Here for the
present. I want a-secretary to put my papers in order,
write some of my letters, and do a thousand things to
help a busy man. My old housekeeper likes you, and
will let you take a duster now and then if you don't find
enough other work to do. When can you come?"
Christie answered with a long breath of satisfaction:
"To-morrow, if you like." " I do: can you be spared so
soon?" "Oh, yes! they don't want me now at all, or I
would not leave them. Kitty can take my place:
she needs protection more than I; and there is not room
for two." She checked herself there, conscious that a
tone of bitterness had crept into her voice. Then quite
steadily she added:
"Will you be kind enough to write, and ask Mrs.
Sterling-if she can spare me? I shall find it hard to tell
her myself, for I fear she may think me ungrateful after
all her kindness." "No: she is used to parting with those
whom she has helped, and is always glad to set them on
their way toward better things. I will write to-morrow,
and you can come whenever you will, sure of a
welcome, my child." Something in the tone of those last
words, and the pressure of the strong, kind hand,
touched Christie's sore heart, and made it impossible for
her to hide the truth entirely. She only said:
"Thank you, sir. I shall be very glad to come;" but her
eyes were full, and she held his hand an instant, as if
she clung to it sure of succor and support. Then she
went home so pale and quiet; so helpful, patient, and
affectionate, that Mrs. Sterling watched her anxiously;
David looked amazed; and, even self-absorbed Kitty
saw the change, and was touched by it. 'On the morrow,
Mr. Power's note came, and Christie fled upstairs while
it was read and discussed. -"If I get through this parting
without disgracing myself, I don't care what happens to
me afterward," she said; and, in order that she might do
so, she assumed a cheerful air, and determined to depart
with all the honors of war, if she died in the attempt.
So, when Mrs. Sterling called her down, she went
hummming into the parlor, smiled as she read the note
silently given her, and then said with an effort greater
than any she had ever made in her most arduous part on
the stage:
"Yes, I did say to Mr. Power that I thought I'd better be
moving on. I'm a restless creature as you know; and,
now that you don't need me, I've a fancy to see more of
the world. If you want me back again in the spring, I'll
come." " I shall want thee, my dear, but will not say a
word to keep thee now, for thee does need a change,
and Mr. Power can give thee work better suited to thy
taste than any here. We shall see thee sometimes, and
spring will make thee long for the flowers, I hope," was
Mrs. Sterling's answer, as Christie gave back the note at
the end of her difficult speech. "Don't think me
ungrateful. I have been very happy here, and never shall
forget how motherly kind you have been to me. You
will believe this and love me still, though I go away and
leave you for a little while?" prayed Christie, with a
face full of treacherous emotion. Mrs. Sterling laid her
hand on Christie's head, as she knelt down impulsively
before her, and with a soft solemnity that made the
words both an assurance and a blessing, she said:
"I believe and love and honor thee, my child. My heart
warmed to thee from the first: it has taken thee to itself
now; and nothing can ever come between us, unless
thee wills it. Remember that, and go in peace with an
old friend's thanks, and good wishes in return for
faithful service, which no money can repay." Christie
laid her cheek against that wrinkled one, and, for a
moment, was held close to that peaceful old heart which
felt so tenderly for her, yet never wounded her by a
word of pity. Infinitely comforting was that little instant
of time, when the venerable woman consoled the young
one with a touch, and strengthened her by the mute
eloquence of sympathy. This made the hardest task of
all easier to perform; and, when David met her in the
evening, Christie was ready to play out her part, feeling
that Mrs. Sterling would help her, if need be. But David
took it very quietly; at least, he showed no very
poignant regret at her departure, though he lamented it,
and hoped it would not be a very long absence. This
wounded Christie terribly; for all of a sudden a barrier
seemed to rise between them, and the old friendliness
grew chilled.
"He thinks I am ungrateful, and is offended," she said to
herself. "Well, I can bear coldness better than kindness
now, and it will make it easier to go." Kitty was pleased
at the prospect of reigning alone, and did not disguise
her satisfaction; so Christie's last day was any thing but
pleasant. Mr. Power would send for her on the morrow,
and she busied herself in packing her own possessions,
setting every thing in order, and making various little
arrangements for Mrs. Sterling's comfort, as Kitty was a
heedless creature; willing enough, but very forgetful. In
the evening some neighbors came in; so that dangerous
time was safely passed, and Christie escaped to her own
room with her usual quiet good-night all round. " We
won't have any sentimental demonstrations; no wailing,
or tender adieux. If I'm weak enough to break my heart,
no one need know it,- least of all, that little fool,"
thought Christie, grimly, as she burnt up several longcherished relics of her love. She was up early, and went
about her usual work with the sad pleasure with which
one performs a task for the last time. Lazy little Kitty
never appeared till the bell rang; and Christie was fond
of that early hour, busy though it was, for David was
always before her with blazing fires; and, while she got
breakfast, he came and went with wood and water, milk
and marketing; often stopping to talk, and always in his
happiest mood. The first snow-fall had made the world
wonderfully lovely that morning; and Christie stood at
the window admiring the bridal look of the earth, as it
lay dazzlingly white in the early sunshine. The little
parlor was fresh and clean, with no speck of dust
anywhere; the fire burned on the bright andirons; the
flowers were rejoicing in their morning bath; and the
table was set out with dainty care. So homelike, so
pleasant, so very dear to her, that Christie yearned to
stay, yet dared not, and had barely time to steady face
and voice, when David came in with the little posies he
always had ready for his mother and Christie at
breakfast time. Only a flower by their plates; but it
meant much to them:
for, in these lives of ours, tender little acts do more to
bind hearts together than great deeds or heroic words;
since the first are like the dear daily bread that none can
live without; the latter but occasional feasts, beautiful
and memorable, but not possible to all. This morning
David laid a sprig of sweet-scented balm at his mother's
place, two or three rosy daisies at Kitty's, and a bunch
of Christie's favorite violets at hers. She smiled as her
eye went from the scentless daisies, so pertly pretty, to
her own posy full of perfume, and the half sad, half
sweet associations that haunt these blue-eyed flowers.
"I wanted pansies for you, but not one would bloom; so
I did the next best, since you don't like roses," said
David, as Christie stood looking at the violets with a
thoughtful face, for something in the peculiarly graceful
arrangement of the heart-shaped leaves recalled;
another nosegay to her mind. "I like these very much,
because they came to me in the beginning of this, the
happiest year of my life;" and scarcely -- knowing why,
except that it was very sweet to talk with David in the
early sunshine, she told about the flowers some one had
given her at church. As she finished she looked up at
him; and, though his face was perfectly grave, his eyes
laughed, and with a sudden conviction of the truth,
Christie exclaimed! " David, I do believe it was you!"
"I couldn't help it:
you seemed so touched and troubled. I longed to speak
to you, but didn't dare, so dropped the flowers and got
away as fast as possible. Did you think it very rude? " "
I thought it the sweetest thing that ever happened to me.
That was my first step along a road that you have
strewn with flowers ever since. I can't thank you, but I
never shall forget it." Christie spoke out fervently, and
for an instant her heart shone in her face. Then she
checked herself, and, fearing she had said too much, fell
to slicing bread with an energetic rapidity which
resulted in a cut finger. Dropping the knife, she tried to
get her handkerchief, but the blood flowed fast, and the
pain of a deep gash made her a little faint. David sprung
to help her, tied up the wound, put her in the big chair,
held water to her lips, and bathed her temples with a
wet napkin; silently, but so tenderly, that it was almost
too much for poor Christie. For one happy moment her
head lay on his arm, and his hand brushed back her hair
with a touch that was a caress: she heard his heart beat
fast with anxiety; felt his breath on her cheek, and
wished that she might die then and there, though a
bread-knife Was not a romantic weapon, nor a cut
finger as interesting as a broken heart. Kitty's voice
made her start up, and the blissful vision of life, with
David in the little house alone, vanished like a bright
bubble, leaving the hard reality to be lived out with
nothing but a woman's pride to conceal a woman's most
passionate pain. "It's nothing:
I'm all right now. Don't say any thing to worry your
mother; I'll put on a bit of court-plaster, and no one will
be the wiser," she said, hastily removing all traces of
the accident but her own pale face. "Poor Christie, it's
hard that you should go away with a wound like this on
the hand that has done so much for us," said David, as
he carefully adjusted the black strip on that forefinger,
roughened by many stitches set for him. " I loved to do
it," was all Christie trusted herself to say. "I know you
did; and in your own words I can only answer: 'I don't
know how to thank you, but I never shall forget it.'"
And David kissed the wounded hand as gratefully and
reverently as if its palm was not hardened by the
humblest tasks. If he had only known -- ah, if he had
only known! -- how easily he might repay that debt, and
heal the deeper wound in Christie's heart. As it was, she
could only say, "You are too kind," and begin to shovel
tea into the pot, as Kitty came in, as rosy and fresh as
the daisies she put in her hair. a Ain't they becoming?"
she asked, turning to David for admiration. "No, thank
you," he answered absently, looking out over her head,
as he stood upon the rug in the attitude which the best
men will assume in the bosoms of their families. Kitty
looked offended, and turned to the mirror for comfort;
while Christie went on shovelling tea, quite
unconscious what she was about till David said gravely:
"Won't that be rather strong?" "How stupid of me! I
always forget that Kitty does not drink tea," and
Christie rectified her mistake with all speed. Kitty
laughed, and said in her pert little way:
"Getting up early don't seem to agree with either of you
this morning: I wonder what you've been doing?" "Your
work. Suppose you bring in the kettle:
Christie has hurt her hand." David spoke quietly; but
Kitty looked as much surprised as if he had boxed her
ears, for he had never used that tone to her before. She
meekly obeyed; and David added with a smile to
Christie:
"Mother is coming down, and you'll have to get more
color into your cheeks if you mean to hide your
accident from her." "That is easily done;" and Christie
rubbed her pale cheeks till they rivalled Kitty's in their
bloom. "How well you women know. how to conceal
your wounds," said David, half to himself. "It is an
invaluable accomplishment for us sometimes:
you forget that I have been an actress," answered
Christie, with a bitter sort of smile. " I wish I could
forget what I have been!" muttered David, turning his
back to her and kicking a log that had rolled out of
place. In came Mrs. Sterling, and every one brightened
up to meet her. Kitty was silent, and wore an injured air
which nobody minded; Christie was very lively; and
David did his best to help her through that last meal,
which was a hard one to three out of the four. At noon a
carriage came for Christie, and she said good-by, as she
had drilled herself to say it, cheerfully and steadily. "It
is only for a time, else I couldn't let thee go, my dear,"
said Mrs. Sterling, with a close embrace. "I shall see
you at church, and Tuesday evenings, even if you don't
find time to come to us, so I shall not say good-by at
all;" and David shook hands warmly, as he put her into
the carriage. "I'll invite you to my wedding when I
make up my mind," said Kitty, with feminine malice;
for in her eyes Christie was an old maid who doubtless
envied her her "lots of lovers." "I hope you will be very
happy. In the mean time try to save dear Mrs. Sterling
all you can, and let her make you-worthy a good
husband," was Christie's answer to a speech she was too
noble to resent by a sharp word, or even a
contemptuous look. Then she drove away, smiling and
waving her hand to the old lady at her window; but the
last thing she saw as she left the well-beloved lane, was
David going slowly up the path, with Kitty close beside
him, talking busily. If she had heard the short dialogue
between them, the sight would have been less bitter, for
Kitty said:
" She's dreadful good; but I'm glad she's gone:
ain't you?" No."' "Had you rather have her here than
me?" "Yes." "Then why don't you ask her to come
back." " I would if I could!" "I never did see any thing
like it; every one is so queer and cross to-day I get
snubbed all round. If folks ain't good to me, I'll go and
marry Miles! I de. dare I will." "You'd better," and with
that David left her frowning and pouting in the porch,
and went to shovelling snow with unusual vigor.
Chapter XIV
Which? David.
MR. POWER received Christie so hospitably that she
felt at home at once, and took up her new duties with
the energy of one anxious to repay a favor. Her friend
knew well the saving power of work, and gave her
plenty of it; but it was a sort that at once interested and
absorbed her, so that she had little time for dangerous
thoughts or vain regrets. As he once said, Mr. Power
made her own troubles seem light by showing her
others so terribly real and great that she was ashamed to
repine at her own lot.
Her gift of sympathy served her well, past experience
gave her a quick eye to read the truth in others, and the
earnest desire to help and comfort made her an
excellent almoner for the rich, a welcome friend to the
poor. She was in just the right mood to give herself
gladly to any sort of sacrifice, and labored with a quiet
energy, painful to witness had any one known the
hidden suffering that would not let her rest. If she had
been a regular novel heroine at this crisis, she would
have grown gray in a single night, had a dangerous
illness, gone mad, or at least taken to pervading the
house at unseasonable hours with her back hair down
and much wringing of the hands. Being only a
commonplace woman she did nothing so romantic, but
instinctively tried to sustain and comfort herself with
the humble, wholesome duties and affections which
seldom fail to keep heads sane and hearts safe. Yet,
though her days seemed to pass so busily and
cheerfully, it must be confessed that there were lonely
vigils in the night; and sometimes in the morning
Christie's eyes were very heavy, Christie's pillow wet
with tears. But life never is all work or sorrow; and
happy hours, helpful pleasures, are mercifully given
like wayside springs to pilgrims trudging wearily along.
Mr. Power showed Christie many such, and silently
provided her with better consolation than pity or advice.
"Deeds not words," was his motto; and he lived it out
most faithfully. "Books and work" he gave his new
charge; and then followed up that prescription with
"healthful play" of a sort she liked, and had longed for
all her life. Sitting at his table Christie saw the best and
bravest men and women of our times; for Mr. Power
was a magnet that drew them from all parts of the
world. She saw and heard, admired and loved them; felt
her soul kindle with the desire to follow in their steps,
share their great tasks, know their difficulties and
dangers, and in the end taste the immortal satisfactions
given to those who live and labor for their fellow-men.
In such society all other aims seemed poor and petty;
for they appeared to live in a nobler world than any she
had known, and she felt as if they belonged to another
race; not men nor angels, but a delightful mixture of the
two; more as she imagined the gods and heroes of old;
not perfect, but wonderfully strong and brave and good;
each gifted with a separate virtue, and each bent on a
mission that should benefit mankind. Nor was this the
only pleasure given her. One evening of each week was
set apart by Mr. Power for the reception of whomsoever
chose to visit him; for his parish was a large one, and
his house a safe haunt for refugees from all countries,
all oppressions. Christie enjoyed these evenings
heartily, for there was no ceremony; each comer
brought his mission, idea, or need, and genuine
hospitality made the visit profitable or memorable to
all, for entire freedom prevailed, and there was stabling
for every one's hobby. Christie felt that she was now
receiving the best culture, acquiring the polish that
society gives, and makes truly admirable when
character adds warmth and power to its charm. The
presence of her bosom-care calmed the old unrest,
softened her manners, and at-times touched her face
with an expression more beautiful than beauty. She was
quite unconscious of the changes passing over her; and
if any one had told her she was fast becoming a most
attractive woman, she would have been utterly
incredulous. But others saw and felt the new charm; for
no deep experience bravely borne can fail to leave its
mark, often giving power in return for patience, and
lending a subtle loveliness to faces whose bloom it has
destroyed. This fact was made apparent to Christie one
evening when she went down to the weekly gathering
in one of the melancholy moods which sometiines
oppressed her. She felt dissatisfied with herself because
her interest in all things began to flag, and a restless
longing for some new excitement to break up the
monotonous pain of her inner life possessed her. Being
still a little shy in company, she slipped quietly into a
recess which commanded a view of both rooms, and sat
looking listlessly about her while waiting for David,
who seldom failed to come. A curious collection of
fellow-beings was before her, and at another time she
would have found much to interest and amuse her. In
one corner a newly imported German with an Orsonlike head, thumb-ring, and the fragrance of many
meerschaums still hovering about him, was hammering
away upon some disputed point with a scientific
Frenchman, whose national politeness was only
equalled by his national volubility. A prominent
statesman was talking with a fugitive slave; a young
poet getting inspiration from the face and voice of a
handsome girl who had earned the right to put M. D. to
her name. An old philosopher was calming the ardor of
several rampant radicals, and a famous singer was
comforting the heart of an Italian exile by talking
politics in his own melodious tongue. There were
plenty of reformers:
some as truculent as Martin Luther; others as beaming
and benevolent as if the pelting of the world had only
mellowed them, and no amount of denunciatory thunder
could sour the milk of human kindness creaming in
their happy hearts. There were eager women just
beginning their protest against the wrongs that had
wrecked their peace; subdued women who had been
worsted in the unequal conflict and given it up; resolute
women with "No surrender" written all over their
strong-minded countenances; and sweet, hopeful
women, whose faith in God and man nothing could
shake or sadden. But to Christie there was only one face
worth looking at till David came, and that was Mr.
Power's; for he was a perfect host, and pervaded the
rooms like a genial atmosphere, using the welcome of
eye and hand which needs no language to interpret it,
giving to each guest the intellectual fare he loved, and
making their enjoyment his own. " Bless the dear man!
what should we all do without him?" thought Christie,
following him with grateful eyes, as he led an awkward
youth in rusty black to the statesman whom it had been
the desire of his ambitious soul to meet. The next
minute she proved that she at least could do without the
"dear man;" for David entered the room, and she forgot
all about him. Here and at church were the only places
where the friends had met during these months, except
one or two short visits to the little house in the lane
when Christie devoted herself to Mrs. Sterling. David
was quite unchanged, though once or twice Christie
fancied he seemed ill at ease with her, and immediately
tormented herself with the idea that some alteration in
her own manner had perplexed or offended him. She
did her best to be as frank and cordial as in the happy
old days; but it was impossible, and she soon gave it up,
assuming in the place of that former friendliness, a
grave and quiet manner which would have led a wiser
man than David to believe her busied with her own
affairs and rather indifferent to every thing else. If he
had known how her heart danced in her bosom, her
eyes brightened, and all the world became endurable,
the moment he appeared, he would not have been so
long in joining her, nor have doubted what welcome
awaited him. As it was, he stopped to speak to his host;-
and, before he reappeared, Christie had found the
excitement she had been longing for.
"Now some bore will keep him an hour, and the
evening is so short," she thought, with a pang of
disappointment; and, turning her eyes away from the
crowd which had swallowed up her heart's desire, they
fell upon a gentleman just entering, and remained fixed
with an expression of unutterable surprise; for there,
elegant, calm, and cool as ever, stood Mr. Fletcher.
"How came he here? " was her first question; " How
will he behave to me?" her second. As she could answer
neither, she composed herself as fast as possible,
resolving to let matters take their own course, and
feeling in the mood for an encounter with a discarded
lover, as she -took a womanish satisfaction in
remembering that the very personable gentleman before
her had once been. Mr. Fletcher and his companion
passed on to find their host; and, with a glance at the
mirror opposite, which showed her that the surprise of
the moment had given her the color she lacked before,
Christie occupied herself with a portfolio of engravings,
feeling very much as she used to feel when waiting at a
side scene for her cue. She had not long to wait before
Mr. Power came up, and presented the stranger; for
such he fancied him, never having learned a certain
episode in Christie's life. Mr. Fletcher bowed, with no
sign of recognition in his face, and began to talk in the
smooth, low voice she remembered so well. For the
moment, through sheer surprise, Christie listened and
replied as any young lady might have done to a newmade acquaintance. But very soon she felt sure that Mr.
Fletcher intended to ignore the past; and, finding her on
a higher round of the social ladder, to accept the fact
and begin again. At first she was angry, then amused,
then interested in the somewhat dramatic turn affairs
were taking, and very wisely decided to meet him on
his own ground, and see What came of it. In the midst
of an apparently absorbing discussion of one of
Raphael's most insipid Madonnas, she was conscious
that David had approached, paused, and was
scrutinizing her companion with unusual interest.
Seized with a sudden desire to see the two men
together, Christie beckoned; and when he obeyed, she
introduced him, drew him into the conversation, and
then left him in the lurch by falling silent and taking
notes while they talked. If she wished to wean her heart
from David by seeing him at a disadvantage, she could
have devised no better way; for, though a very feminine
test, it answered the purpose excellently. Mr. Fletcher
was a handsome man, and just then looked his best.
Improved health gave energy and color to his formerly
sallow, listless face:
the cold eyes were softer, the hard mouth suave and
smiling, and about the whole man there was that
indescribable something which often proves more
attractive than worth or wisdom to keener-sighted
women than Christie. Never had, he talked better; for,
as if he suspected what was in the mind of one hearer,
he exerted himself to be as brilliant as possible, and
succeeded admirably. David never appeared so ill, for
he had no clew to the little comedy being played before
him; and long seclusion and natural reserve unfitted
him to shine beside a man of the world like Mr.
Fletcher. His simple English sounded harsh, after the
foreign phrases that slipped so easily over the other's
tongue. He had visited no galleries, seen few of the
world's wonders, and could only listen when they were
discussed. More than once he was right, but failed to
prove it, for Mr. Fletcher skilfully changed the subject
or quenched him with a politely incredulous shrug.
Even in the matter of costume, poor David was
worsted; for, in a woman's eyes, dress has wonderful
significance. Christie used to think his suit of sober
gray the most becoming man could wear; but now it
looked shapeless and shabby, beside garments which
bore the stamp of Paris in the gloss and grace of
broadcloth and fine linen. David wore no gloves:
Mr. Fletcher's were immaculate. David's tie was so
plain no one observed it:
Mr. Fletcher's, elegant and faultless enough for a
modern Beau Brummel. David's handkerchief was of
the commonest sort (she knew that, for she hemmed it
herself):
Mr. Fletcher's was the finest cambric, and a delicate
breath of perfume refreshed the aristocratic nose to
which the article belonged. Christie despised herself as
she made these comparisons, and felt how superficial
they were; but, having resolved to exalt one man at the
expense of the other for her own good, she did not
relent till David took advantage of a pause, and left
them with a reproachful look that made her wish Mr.
Fletcher at the bottom of the sea. When they were alone
a subtle change in his face and manner convinced her
that he also had been taking notes, and had arrived at a
favorable decision regarding herself. Women are quick
at making such discoveries; and, even while she talked
with him as a stranger, she felt assured that, if she
chose, she might make him again her lover. Here was a
temptation! She had longed for some new excitement,
and fate seemed to have put one of the most dangerous
within her reach. It was natural to find comfort in the
knowledge that somebody loved her, and to take pride
in her power over one man, because another did not
own it. In spite of her better self she felt the fascination
of the hour, and yielded to it, half unconsciously
assuming something of the " dash and daring" which
Mr. Fletcher had once confessed to finding so
captivating in the demure governess. He evidently
thought so still, and played his part with spirit; for,
while apparently enjoying a conversation which
contained no allusion to the past, the memory of it gave
piquancy to that long tete-a-tete. As the first guests
began to go, Mr. Fletcher's friend beckoned to him; and
he rose, saying with an accent of regret which changed
to one of entreaty, as he put his question:
"I, too, must go. May I come again, Miss Devon?" "I
am scarcely more than a guest myself; but Mr. Power is
always glad to see whoever cares to come," replied
Christie rather primly, though her eyes were dancing
with amusement at the recollection of those love
passages upon the beach. "Next time, I shall come not
as a stranger, but as a former -- may I say friend? " he
added quickly, as if emboldened by the mirthful eyes
that so belied the demure lips. "Now you forget your
part," and Christie's primness vanished in a laugh. "I am
glad of it, for I want to ask about Mrs. Saltonstall and
the children. I've often thought of the little dears, and
longed to see them." "They are in Paris with their
father." "Mrs. Saltonstall is well, I hope?" " She died
six months ago." An expression of genuine sorrow
came over Mr. Fletcher's face as he spoke; and,
remembering that the silly little woman was his sister,
Christie put out her hand with a look and gesture so full
of sympathy that words were unnecessary. Taking
advantage of this propitious moment, he said, with an
expressive glance and effective tone:
"I am all alone now. You will let me come again?"
"Certainly, if it can give you pleasure," she answered
heartily, forgetting herself in pity for his sorrow. Mr.
Fletcher pressed her hand with a grateful, "Thank you!"
and wisely went away at once, leaving compassion to
plead for him- better than he could have done it for
himself. Leaning back in her chair, Christie was
thinking over this interview so intently that she started
when David's voice said close beside her:
"Shall I disturb you if I say,' Good-night'?" "I thought
you were not going to say it at all," she answered rather
sharply. "I've been looking for a chance; but you were
so absorbed with that man I had to wait." "Considering
the elegance of'that man,' you don't treat him with much
respect." " I don't feel much. What brought him here, I
wonder. A French salon is more in his line." "He came
to see Mr. Power, as every one else does, of course."
"Don't dodge, Christie:
you know he came to see you." "How do you like him?"
she asked, with treacherous abruptness. " Not
particularly, so far. But if I knew him, I dare say I
should find many good traits in him." "I know you
would!" said Christie, warmly, not thinking of Fletcher,
but of David's kindly way of finding good in every one.
"He must have improved since you saw him last; for
then, if I remember rightly, you found him lazy, cross,
selfish, and conceited.'" " Now, David, I never said any
thing of the sort," began Christie, wondering what
possessed him to be so satirical and short with her.
"Yes, you did, last September, sitting on the old appletree the morning of your birthday." "What an
inconvenient memory you have! Well, he was all that
then; but he is not an invalid now, and so we see his
real self." "I also remember that you gave me the
impression that he was an elderly man." "(Isn't forty
elderly?" "He wasn't forty when you taught his sister's
children." "( No; but he looked older than he does' now,
being so ill. I used to think he would be very handsome
with good health; and now I see I was right," said
Christie, with feigned enthusiasm; for it was a new
thing to tease David, and she liked it. But she got no
more of it; for, just then, the singer began to sing to the
select few who remained, and every one was silent.
Leaning on the high back of Christie's chair, David
watched the reflection of her face in the long mirror; for
she listened to the music with downcast eyes,
unconscious what eloquent expressions were passing
over her countenance. She seemed a new Christie to
David, in that excited mood; and, as he watched her, he
thought:
"She loved this man once, or he loved her; and tonight
it all comes back to her. How will it end?"
So earnestly did he try to read that altered face that
Christie felt the intentness of his gaze, looked up
suddenly, and met his eyes in the glass. Something in
the expression of those usually serene eyes, now
darkened and dilated with the intensity of that long
scrutiny, surprised and troubled her; and, scarcely
knowing what she said, she asked quickly:
"Who are you admiring?" "Not myself." "I wonder if
you'd think me vain if I asked you something that I
want to know?" she said, obeying a sudden impulse. "
Ask it, and I'1 tell you." "Am I much changed since you
first knew me?" "Very much." "For the better or the
worse?" " The better, decidedly." " Thank you, I hoped
so; but one never knows how one seems to other
people. I was wondering what you saw in the glass." "A
good and lovely woman, Christie." How sweet it
sounded to hear David say that! so simply and sincerely
that it was far more than a mere compliment. She did
not thank him, but said softly as if to herself:
"So let me seem until I be" -- and then sat silent, so full
of satisfaction in the thought that David found her
"good and lovely," she could not resist stealing a glance
at the tell-tale mirror to see if she might believe him.
She forgot herself, however; for he was off guard now,
and stood looking away with brows knit, lips tightly set,
and eyes fixed, yet full of fire; his whole attitude and
expression that of a man intent on subduing some
strong impulse by a yet stronger will. It startled
Christie; and she leaned forward, watching him with
breathless interest till the song ceased, and, with the old
impatient gesture, David seemed to relapse into his
accustomed quietude. "It was the wonderful music that
excited him:
that was all;" thought Christie; yet, when he came
round to say good-night, the strange expression was not
gone, and his manner was not his own. " Shall I ask if I
may come again," he said, imitating Mr. Fletcher's
graceful bow with an odd smile. "I let him come
because he has lost his sister, and is lonely," began
Christie, but got no further, for David said, "Good-night
" abruptly, and was gone without a word to Mr. Power.
"He's in a hurry to get back to his Kitty," she thought,
tormenting herself with feminine skill. "Never mind,"
she added, with a defiant sort of smile; " I've got my
Philip, handsomer and more in love than ever, if I'm not
deceived. I wonder if he will come again?" Mr. Fletcher
did come again, and with flattering regularity, for
several weeks, evidently finding something very
attractive in those novel gatherings. Mr. Power soon
saw why he came; and, as Christie seemed to enjoy his
presence, the good man said nothing to disturb her,
though he sometimes cast an anxious glance toward the
recess where the two usually sat, apparently busy with
books or pictures; yet, by their faces, showing that an
under current of deeper interest than art or literature
flowed through their intercourse.
Christie had not deceived herself, and it was evident
that her old lover meant to try his fate again, if she
continued to smile upon him as she had done of late. He
showed her his sunny side now, and very pleasant she
found it. The loss of his sister had touched his heart,
and made him long to fill the place her death left
vacant. Better health sweetened his temper, and woke
the desire to do something worth the doing; and the
sight of the only woman he had ever really loved,
reawakened the sentiment that had not died, and made it
doubly sweet. Why he cared for Christie he could not
tell, but he never had forgotten her; and, when he met
her again with that new beauty in her face, he felt that
time had only ripened the blithe girl into a deep-hearted
woman, and he loved her with a better love than before.
His whole manner showed this; for the half-careless,
half-condescending air of former times was replaced by
the most courteous respect, a sincere desire to win her
favor, and at times the tender sort of devotion women
find so charming. Christie felt all this, enjoyed it, and
tried to be grateful for it in the way he wished, thinking
that hearts could be managed like children, and when
one toy is unattainable, be appeased by a bigger or a
brighter one of another sort. "I must love some one,"
she said, as she leaned over a basket of magnificent
flowers just left for her by Mr. Fletcher's servant, a
thing which often happened now. "Philip has loved me
with a fidelity that ought to touch my heart. Why not
accept him, and enjoy a new life of luxury, novelty, and
pleasure? All these things he can give me:
all these things are valued, admired, and sought for; and
who would appreciate them more than I? I could travel,
cultivate myself in many delightful ways, and do so
much good. No matter if I was not very happy:
I should make Philip so, and have it in my power to
comfort many poor souls. That ought to satisfy me; for
what is nobler than to live for others?" This idea
attracted her, as it does all generous natures; she
became enamoured of self-sacrifice, and almost
persuaded herself that it was her duty to marry Mr.
Fletcher, whether she loved him or not, in order that she
might dedicate her life to the service of poorer, sadder
creatures than herself. But in spite of this amiable
delusion, in spite of the desire to forget the love she
would have in the love she might have, and in spite of
the great improvement in her faithful Philip, Christie
could not blind herself to the fact that her head, rather
than her heart, advised the match; she could not
conquer a suspicion that, however much Mr. Fletcher
might love his wife, he would be something of a tyrant,
and she was very sure she never would make a good
slave. In her cooler moments she remembered that men
are not puppets, to be moved as a woman's will
commands, and the uncertainty of being able to carry
out her charitable plans made her pause to consider
whether she would not be selling her liberty too
cheaply, if in return she got only dependence and
bondage along with fortune and a home. So tempted
and perplexed, self-deluded and self-warned, attracted
and repelled, was poor Christie, that she began to feel
as if she had got into a labyrinth without any clew to
bring her safely out. She longed to ask advice of some
one, but could not turn to Mrs. Sterling; and what other
woman friend had she except Rachel, from whom she
had not heard for months? As she asked herself this
question one day, feeling sure that Mr. Fletcher would
come in the evening, and would soon put his fortune to
the touch again, the thought of Mrs. Wilkins seemed to
answer her. "Why not?" said Christie: "she is sensible,
kind, and discreet; she may put me right, for I'm all in a
tangle now with doubts and fears, feelings and fancies.
I'll go and see her: that will do me good, even if I don't
say a word about my werryments,' as the dear soul
would call them." Away she went, and fortunately
found her friend alone in the "settin'-room," darning
away at a perfect stack of socks, as she creaked
comfortably to and fro in her old rocking-chair. "I was
jest wishin' somebody would drop in: it's so kinder
lonesome with the children to school and Adelaide
asleep. How be you, dear?" said Mrs. Wilkins, with a
hospitable hug and a beaming smile.
"I'm worried in my mind, so I came to see you,"
answered Christie, sitting down with a sigh. "Bless your
dear heart, what is to pay. Free your mind, and I'll do
my best to lend a hand." The mere sound of that hearty
voice comforted Christie, and gave her courage to
introduce the little fiction under which she had decided
to defraud Mrs. Wilkins of her advice.. So she helped
herself to a very fragmentary blue sock and a big
needle, that she might have employment for her eyes, as
they were not so obedient as her tongue, and then began
in as easy a tone as she could assume. " Well, you see a
friend of mine wants my advice on a very serious
matter, and I really don't know what to give her. It is
strictly confidential, you know, so I won't mention any
names, but just set the case before you and get your
opinion, for I've great faith in your sensible way of
looking at things." " Thanky, dear, your welcome to my
pinion ef it's wuth any thing. Be these folks you tell of
young? " asked Mrs. Wilkins, with evident relish for the
mystery. " No, the woman is past thirty, and the man
most forty, I believe," said Christie, darning away in
some trepidation at having taken the first plunge. " My
patience! ain't the creater old enough to know her own
mind? for I s'pose she's the one in the quanderry?"
exclaimed Mrs. Wilkins, looking over her spectacles
with dangerously keen eyes. "The case is this," said
Christie, in guilty haste. "The creature' is poor and
nobody, the man rich and of good family, so you see it's
rather hard for her to decide." "No, I don't see nothin' of
the sort," returned blunt Mrs. Wilkins. "Ef she loves the
man, take him: ef she don't, give him the mittin and
done with it. Money and friends and family ain't much
to do with the matter accordin' to my view. It's jest a
plain question betwixt them two. Ef it takes much
settlin' they'd better let it alone." " She doesn't love him
as much as she might, I fancy, but she is tired of
grubbing along alone. He is very fond of her, and very
rich; and it would be a fine thing for her in a worldly
way, I'm sure."
" Oh, she's goin' to marry for a livin' is she? Wal, now
I'd ruther one of my girls should grub the wust kind all
their days than do that. Hows'ever, it may suit some
folks ef they ain't got much heart, and is contented with
fine clothes, nice vittles, and handsome furnitoor.
Selfish, cold, silly kinder women might git on, I dare
say; but I shouldn't think any friend of your'n would be
one of that sort." " But she might do a great deal of
good, and make others happy even if she was not so
herself." "She might, but I doubt it, for money got that
way wouldn't prosper wal. Mis'able folks ain't half so
charitable as happy ones; and I don't believe five dollars
from one of 'em would go half so fur, or be half so
comfortin' as a kind word straight out of a cheerful
heart. I know some thinks that is a dreadful smart thing
to do; but I don't, and ef any one wants to go a
sacrificin' herself for the good of others, there's better
ways of doin' it than startin' with a lie in her mouth."
Mrs. Wilkins spoke warmly; for Christie's face made
her fiction perfectly transparent, though the good
woman with true delicacy showed no sign of
intelligence on that point. "Then you wouldn't advise
my friend to say yes?" "Sakes alive, no! I'd say to her as
I did to my younger sisters when their courtin' time
come: 'Jest be sure you're right as to there bein' love
enough, then go ahead, and the Lord will bless you."'
"Did they follow your advice?" "They did, and both is
prosperin' in different ways.
Gusty, she found she was well on't for love, so she
married, though Samuel Buck was poor, and they're
happy as can be a workin' up together, same as Lisha
and me did. Addy, she calc'lated she wan't satisfied
somehow, so she didn't marry, though James Miller was
wal off; and she's kep stiddy to her trade, and ain't
never repented. There's a sight said and writ about such
things," continued Mrs. Wilkins, rambling on to give
Christie time to think; " but I've an idee that women's
hearts is to be trusted ef they ain't been taught all
wrong. Jest let 'em remember that they take a husband
for wuss as well as better (and there's a sight of wuss in
this tryin' world for some on us), and be ready to do
their part patient and faithful, and I ain't a grain afraid
but what they'll be fetched through, always pervidin'
they love the man and not his money." There was a
pause after that last speech, and Christie felt as if her
perplexity was clearing away very fast; for Mrs.
Wilkins's plain talk seemed to show her things in their
true light, with all the illusions of false sentiment and
false reasoning stripped away. She felt clearer and
stronger already, and as if she could make up her mind
very soon when one other point had been discussed. "I
fancy my friend is somewhat influenced by the fact that
this man loved and asked her to marry him some years
ago. He has not forgotten her, and this touches her heart
more than any thing else. It seems as if his love must be
genuine to last so long, and not to mind her poverty,
want of beauty, and accomplishments; for he is a proud
and fastidious man." "I think wal of him for that!" said
Mrs. Wilkins, approvingly; " but I guess she's wuth all
he gives her, for there must be somethin' pretty
gennywin' in her to make him overlook her lacks and
hold on so stiddy. It don't alter her side of the case one
mite though; for love is love, and ef she ain't got it, he'd
better not take gratitude instid, but sheer off and leave
her for somebody else." "Nobody else wants her!"
broke from Christie like an involuntary cry of pain;
then she hid her face by stooping to gather up the
avalanche of hosiery which fell from her lap to the
floor. "She can't be sure of that," said Mrs. Wilkins
cheerily, though her spectacles were dim with sudden
mist. "I know there's a mate for her somewheres, so
she'd better wait a spell and trust in Providence. It
wouldn't be so pleasant to see the right one come along
after she'd went and took the wrong one in a hurry:
would it? Waitin' is always safe, and time needn't be
wasted in frettin' or bewailin'; for the Lord knows
there's a sight of good works sufferin' to be done, and
single women has the best chance at 'em." " I've
accomplished one good work at any rate; and, small as
it is, I feel better for it. Give this sock to your husband,
and tell him his wife sets a good example both by
precept and practice to other women, married or single.
Thank you very much, both for myself and my friend,
who shall profit by your advice," said Christie, feeling
that she had better go before she told every thing:
"I hope she will," returned Mrs. Wilkins, as her guest
went away with a much happier face than the one she
brought. "And ef I know her, which I think I do, she'll
find that Cinthy Wilkins ain't fur from right, ef her
experience is good for any thing," added the matron
with a sigh, and a glance at a dingy photograph of her
Lisha on the wall, a sigh that seemed to say there had
been a good deal of " wuss" in her bargain, though she
was too loyal to confess it. Something in Christie's face
struck Mr. Fletcher at once when he appeared that
evening. He had sometimes found her cold and quiet,
often gay and capricious, usually earnest and cordial,
with a wistful look that searched his face and both won
and checked him by its mute appeal, seeming to say,
"Wait a little till I have taught my heart to answer as
you wish." To-night her eyes shunned his, and when he
caught a glimpse of them they were full of a soft
trouble; her manner was kinder than ever before, and
yet it made him anxious, for there was a resolute
expression about her lips even when she smiled, and
though he ventured upon allusions to the past hitherto
tacitly avoided, she listened as if it had no tender charm
for her. Being thoroughly in earnest now, Mr. Fletcher
resolved to ask the momentous question again without
delay. David was not there, and had not been for several
weeks, another thorn in Christie's heart, though she
showed no sign of regret, and said to herself, "It is
better so." His absence left Fletcher master of the field,
and he seized the propitious moment. "Will you show
me the new picture? Mr. Power spoke of it, but I do not
like to trouble him." "With pleasure," and Christie led
the way to a little room where the newly arrived gift
was placed.
She knew what was coming, but was ready, and felt a
tragic sort of satisfaction in the thought of all-she was
relinquishing for love of David. No one was in the
room, but a fine copy of Michael Angelo's Fates hung
on the wall, looking down at them with weird
significance. "They look as if they would give a stern
answer to any questioning of ours," Mr. Fletcher said,
after a glance of affected interest. " They would give a
true one I fancy," answered Christie, shading her eyes
as if to see the better. I'd rather question a younger,
fairer Fate, hoping that she will give me an answer both
true and kind. May I, Christie?" " I will be true but -I
cannot be kind." It cost her much to say that; yet she did
it steadily, though he held her hand in both his own, and
waited for her words with ardent expectation. "Not yet
perhaps, -but in time, when I have proved how sincere
my love is, how entire my repentance for the,
ungenerous words you have not forgotten. I wanted you
then for my/own sake, now I want you for yourself,
because I love and honor you above all women. I tried
to forget you, but I could not; and all these years have
carried in my heart a very tender memory of the girl
who dared to tell me that all I could offer her was not
worth her love." "I was mistaken," began Christie,
finding this wooing much harder to withstand than the
other. "No, you were right:
I felt it then and resented it, but I owned it later, and
regretted it more bitterly than I can tell. I'm not worthy
of you; I never shall be: but I've loved you for five
years without hope, and I'll wait five more if in the end
you will come to me. Christie, I need you very much!"
If Mr. Fletcher had gone down upon his knees and
poured out the most ardent protestations that ever left a
lover's lips, it would not have touched her as did that
last little appeal, uttered with a break in the voice that
once was so proud and was so humble now. "Forgive
me!" she cried, looking up at him with real respect in
her face, and real remorse smiting her conscience. "
Forgive me! I have misled you and myself. I tried to
love you:
I was grateful for your regard, touched by your fidelity,
and I hoped I might repay it; but I cannot! I cannot! "
"Why?" Such a hard question! She owed him all the
truth, yet how could she tell it? She could not in words,
but her face did, for the color rose and burned on
cheeks and forehead with painful fervor; her eyes fell,
and her lips trembled as if endeavoring to keep down
the secret that was escaping against her will. A moment
of silence as Mr. Fletcher searched for the truth and
found it; then he said with such sharp pain in his voice
that Christie's heart ached at the sound:
"I see: I am too late?" "Yes." "And there is no hope?" "
None." "Then there is nothing more for me to say but
good-by. May you be happy." "I shall not be; -- I have
no hope; -- I only try to be true to you and to myself.
Oh, believe it, and pity me as I do you! " As the words
broke from Christie, she covered up her face, bowed
down with the weight of remorse that made her long to
atone for what she had done by any self-humiliation.
Mr. Fletcher was at his best at that moment; for real
love ennobles the worst and weakest while it lasts: but
he could not resist the temptation that confession
offered him. He tried to be generous, but the genuine
virtue was not in him; he did want Christie very much,
and the knowledge of a rival in her heart only made her
the dearer. " I'm not content with your pity, sweet as it
is: I want your love, and I believe that I might earn it if
you would let me try. You are all alone, and life is hard
to you:
come to me and let me make it happier. I'll be satisfied
with friendship till you can give me more." He said this
very tenderly, caressing the bent head while he spoke,
and trying to express by tone and gesture how eagerly
he longed to receive and cherish what that other man
neglected. Christie felt this to her heart's core, and for a
moment longed to end the struggle, say, " Take me,"
and accept the shadow for the substance. But those last
words of his vividly recalled the compact made with
David that happy birthday night. How could she be his
friend if she was Mr. Fletcher's wife? She knew she
could not be true to both, while her heart reversed the
sentiment she then would owe them:
David's friendship was dearer than Philip's love, and
she would keep it at all costs. These thoughts flashed
through her mind in the drawing of a breath, and she
looked up, saying steadily in spite of wet eyes and still
burning cheeks:
"Hope nothing; wait for nothing from me. I will have
no more delusions for either of us: it is weak and
wicked, for I know I shall not change. Some time we
may venture to be friends perhaps, but not now. Forgive
me, and be sure I shall suffer more than you for this
mistake of mine." When she had denied his suit before
he had been ungenerous and angry; for his pride was
hurt and his will thwarted:
now his heart bled and hope died hard; but all that was
manliest in him rose to help him bear the loss, for this
love was genuine, and made him both just and kind. His
face was pale with the pain of that fruitless passion, and
his voice betrayed how hard he strove for self-control,
as he said hurriedly:
"You need not suffer: this mistake has given me the
happiest hours of my life, and I am better for having
known so sweet and true a woman. God bless you,
Christie! " and with a quick embrace that startled her by
its suddenness and strength he left her, standing there
alone before the three grim Fates.
Chapter XV
Midsummer.
" 0 WOW it is all over. I shall never have another
chance like that, and must make up my mind to be a
lonely and laborious spinster all my life. Youth is going
fast, and I have little in myself to attract or win, though
David did call me'good and lovely.' Ah, well, I'll try to
deserve his praise, and not let disappointment sour or
sadden me. Better to hope and wait all my life than
marry without love." Christie often said this to herself
during the hard days that followed Mr. Fletcher's
disappearance; a disappearance, by the way, which
caused Mr. Power much satisfaction, though he only
betrayed it by added kindness to Christie, and in his
manner an increased respect very comforting to her.
But she missed her lover, for nothing now broke up the
monotony of a useful life. She had enjoyed that little
episode; for it had lent romance to every thing while it
lasted, even the charity basket with which she went her
rounds; for Mr. Fletcher often met her by accident
apparently, and carried it as if to prove the sincerity of
his devotion. No bouquets came now; no graceful little
notes with books or invitations to some coveted
pleasure; no dangerously delightful evenings in the
recess, where, for a time, she felt and used the power
which to a woman is so full of subtle satisfaction; no
bitter-sweet hopes; no exciting dreams of what might be
with the utterance of a word; no soft uncertainty to give
a charm to every hour that passed. Nothing but daily
duties, a little leisure that hung heavy on her hands with
no hope to stimulate, no lover to lighten it, and a sore,
sad heart that would clamor for its right; and even when
pride silenced it ached on with the dull pain which only
time and patience have the power to heal. But as those
weeks went slowly by, she began to discover some of
the miracles true love can work. She thought she had
laid it in its grave; but an angel rolled the stone away,
and the lost passion rose stronger, purer, and more
beautiful than when she buried it with bitter tears. A
spirit now, fed by no hope, warmed by no tenderness,
clothed in no fond delusion; the vital soul of love which
outlives the fairest, noblest form humanity can give it,
and sits among the ruins singing the immortal hymn of
consolation the Great Musician taught. Christie felt this
strange comfort resting like a baby in her lonely bosom,
cherished and blessed it; wondering while she rejoiced,
and soon perceiving with the swift instinct of a woman,
that this was a lesson, hard to learn, but infinitely
precious, helpful, and sustaining when once gained. She
was not happy, only patient; not hopeful, but trusting;
and when life looked dark and barren without, she went
away into that inner world of deep feeling, high
thought, and earnest aspiration; which is a never-failing
refuge to those whose experience has built within them.
The nunnery of a chaste heart and quiet mind." Some
women live fast; and Christie fought her battle, won her
victory, and found peace declared during that winter:
for her loyalty to love brought its own reward in time,
giving her the tranquil steadfastness which comes to
those who submit and ask nothing but fortitude. She
had seen little of David, except at church, and began to
regard him almost as one might a statue on a tomb, the
marble effigy of the beloved dead below; for the sweet
old friendship was only a pale shadow now. He always
found her out, gave her the posy she best liked, said
cheerfully, "How goes it, Christie?" and she always
answered, "Good-morning, David. I am well and busy,
thank you." Then they sat together listening to Mr.
Power, sung from the same book, walked a little way
together, and parted for another week with a handshake for good-by. Christie often wondered what
prayers David prayed when he sat so still with his face
hidden by his hand, and looked up with such a clear and
steady look when he had done. She tried to do the same;
but her thoughts would wander to the motionless gray
figure beside her, and she felt as if peace and strength
unconsciously flowed from it to sustain and comfort
her. Some of her happiest moments were those she
spent sitting there, pale and silent, with absent eyes, and
lips that trembled now and then, hidden by the flowers
held before them, kissed covertly, and kept like relics
long after they were dead. One bitter drop always
marred the pleasure of that hour; for when she had
asked for Mrs. Sterling, and sent her love, she forced
herself to say kindly:
"And Kitty, is she doing well?" "Capitally; come and
see how she has improved; we are quite proud of her."
"I will if I can find time. It's a hard winter and we have
so much to do," she would answer smiling, and then go
home to struggle back into the patient mood she tried to
make habitual. But she seldom made time to go and see
Kitty's improvement; and, when she did run out for an
hour she failed to discover any thing, except that the
girl was prettier and more coquettish than ever, and
assumed airs of superiority that tried Christie very
much. " I am ready for any thing," she always said with
a resolute air after one of these visits; but, when the
time seemed to have come she was not so ready as she
fancied. Passing out of a store one day, she saw Kitty
all in her best, buying white gloves with a most
important air. "That looks suspicious," she thought, and
could not resist speaking. " All well at home? " she
asked. "Grandma and I have been alone for nearly a
week; David went off on business; but he's back now
and -- oh, my goodness! I forgot: I'm not to tell a soul
yet;" and Kitty pursed up her lips, looking quite
oppressed with some great secret. "Bless me, how
mysterious! Well, I won't ask any dangerous questions,
only tell me if the dear old lady is well," said Christie,
desperately curious, but too proud to show it.
"She's well, but dreadfully upset by what's happened;
well she may be." And Kitty shook her head with a look
of mingled mystery and malicious merriment. "Mr.
Sterling is all right I hope?" Christie never called him
David to Kitty; so that impertinent little person took
especial pains to speak familiarly, sometimes even
fondly of him to Christie. " Dear fellow! he's so happy
he don't know what to do with himself. I just wish you
could see him go round smiling, and singing, and
looking as if he'd like to dance." " That looks as if he
was going to get a chance to do it," said Christie, with a
glance at the gloves, as Kitty turned from the counter. "
So he is!" laughed Kitty, patting the little parcel with a
joyful face. "I do believe you are going to be married:"
exclaimed Christie, half distracted with curiosity. " I
am, but not to Miles. Now don't you say another word,
for I'm dying to tell, and I promised I wouldn't. David
wants to do it himself. By-by." And Kitty hurried away,
leaving Christie as pale as if she had seen a ghost at
noonday. She had; for the thought of David's marrying
Kitty had haunted her all those months, and now she
was quite sure the blow had come. "If she was only a
nobler woman I could bear it better; but I am sure he
will regret it when the first illusion is past. I fancy she
reminds him of his lost Letty, and so he thinks he loves
her. I pray he may be happy, and I hope it will be over
soon," thought Christie, with a groan, as she trudged
away to carry comfort to those whose woes could be
relieved by tea and sugar, flannel petticoats, and orders
for a ton of coal. It was over soon, but not as Christie
had expected. That evening Mr. Power was called
away, and she sat alone, bravely trying to forget
suspense and grief in copying the record of her last
month's labor. But she made sad work of it; for her
mind was full of David and his wife, so happy in the
little home which had grown doubly dear to her since
she left it. No wonder then that she put down "two
dozen children" to MIrs. Flanagan, and "four knit
hoods" with the measles; or that a great blot fell upon "
twenty yards red flannel," as the pen dropped from the
hands she clasped together; saying with all the fervor of
true self-abnegation:
" I hope he will be happy; oh, I hope he will be happy!
" If ever woman deserved reward for patient endeavor,
hard-won submission, and unselfish love, Christie did
then. And she received it in full measure; for the dear
Lord requites some faithful hearts, blesses some lives
that seem set apart for silent pain and solitary labor.
Snow was falling fast, and a bitter wind moaned
without; the house was very still, and nothing stirred in
the room but the flames dancing on the hearth, and the
thin hand moving to and fro among the records of a
useful life. Suddenly the bell rang loudly and
repeatedly, as if the new-comer was impatient of delay.
Christie paused to listen. It was not Mr. Power's ring,
not his voice in the hall below, not his step that came
leaping up the stairs, nor his hand that threw wide the
door. She knew them all, and her heart stood still an
instant; then she gathered up her strength, said low to
herself, "Now it is coming," and was ready for the truth,
with a colorless face; eyes unnaturally bright and fixed;
and one hand on her breast, as if to hold in check the
rebellious heart that would throb so fast. It was David
who came in with such impetuosity. Snow-flakes shone
in his hair; the glow of the keen wind was on his cheek,
a smile on his lips, and in his eyes an expression she
had never seen before. Happiness, touched with the
shadow of some past pain; doubt and desire; gratitude
and love, -- all seemed to meet and mingle in it; while,
about the whole man, was the free and ardent air of one
relieved from some heavy burden, released from some
long captivity. "O David, what is it?" cried Christie, as
he stood looking at her with this strange look. " News,
Christie! such happy news I can't find words to tell
them," he answered, coming nearer, but too absorbed in
his own emotion to heed hers. She drew a long breath
and pressed her hand a little heavier on her breast, as
she said, with the ghost of a smile, more pathetic than
the saddest tears:
" I guess it, David." "How? " he demanded, as if
defrauded of a joy he had set his heart upon. " I met
Kitty,- she told me nothing, -- but her faco betrayed
what I have long suspected." David laughed, such a
glad yet scornful laugh, and, snatching a little miniature
from his pocket, offered it, saying, with the new
impetuosity that changed him so:
" That is the daughter I have found for my mother. You
know her, -- you love her; and you will not be ashamed
to welcome her, I think." Christie took it; saw a faded,
time-worn likeness of a young girl's happy face; a face
strangely familiar, yet, for a moment, she groped to find
the name belonging to it. Then memory helped her; and
she said, half incredulously, half joyfully:
"Is it my Rachel?" "It is my Letty!" cried David, with
an accent of such mingled love and sorrow, remorse
and joy, that Christie seemed to hear in it the deathknell of her faith in him. The picture fell from the hands
she put up, as if to ward off some heavy blow, and her
voice was sharp with reproachful anguish, as she cried:'
O0 David, David, any thing but that! " An instant he
seemed bewildered, then the meaning of the grief in her
face flashed on him, and his own grew white with
indignant repudiation of the thought that daunted her;
but he only said with the stern brevity of truth:
"Letty is my sister." "Forgive me, -- how could I know?
Oh, thank God! thank God! " and, dropping down upon
a chair, Christie broke into a passion of the happiest
tears she ever shed. David stood beside her silent, till
the first irrepressible paroxysm was over; then, while
she sat weeping softly, quite bowed down by emotion,
he said, sadly now, not sternly:
"You could not know, because we hid the truth so
carefully. I have no right to resent that belief of yours,
for I did wrong my poor Letty, almost as much as that
lover of hers, who, being dead, I do not curse. Let me
tell you every thing, Christie, before I ask your respect
and confidence again. I never deserved them, but I tried
to; for they were very precious to me." I-e paused a
moment, then went on rapidly, as if anxious to
accomplish a hard task; and Christie forgot to weep
while listening breathlessly. ("Letty was the pride of my
heart; and I loved her very dearly, for she was all I had.
Such a pretty child; such a gay, sweet girl; how could I
help it, when she was so fond of me? We were poor
then, -- poorer than now, -- and she grew restless; tired
of hard work; longed for a little pleasure, and could not
bear to waste her youth and beauty in that dull town. I
did not blame my little girl; but I could not help her, for
I was tugging away to fill father's place, he being
broken down and helpless. She wanted to go away and
support herself. You know the feeling; and I need not
tell you how the proud, high-hearted creature hated
dependence, even on a brother who would have worked
his soul out for her. She would go, and we had faith in
her. For a time she did bravely; but life was too hard for
her; pleasure too alluring, and, when temptation came
in the guise of love, she could not resist. One dreadful
day, news came that she was gone, never to come back,
my innocent little Letty, any more." His voice failed
there, and he walked fast through the room, as if the
memory of that bitter day was still unbearable. Christie
could not speak for very pity; and he soon continued,
pacing restlessly before her, as he had often done when
she sat by, wondering what unquiet spirit drove him to
and fro:
" That was the beginning of my trouble; but not the
worst of it: God forgive me, not the worst! Father was
very feeble, and the shock killed him; mother's heart
was nearly broken, and all the happiness was taken out
of life for me. But I could bear it, heavy as the blow
was, for I had no part in that sin and sorrow. A year
later, there came a letter from Letty, -- a penitent,
imploring, little letter, asking to be forgiven and taken
home, for her lover was dead, and she alone in a foreign
land. How would you answer such a letter, Christie?" "
As you did; saying: 'Come home and let us comfort
you.'" " I said:' You have killed your father; broken
your mother's heart; ruined your brother's hopes, and
disgraced your family. You no longer have a home with
us; and we never want to see your face again.'" " O
David, that was cruel! " "I said you did not know me;
now you see how deceived you have been. A stern,
resentful devil possessed me then, and I obeyed it. I was
very proud; full of ambitious plans and jealous love for
the few I took into my heart. Letty had brought a stain
upon our honest name that time could never wash
away; had quenched my hopes in despair and shame;
had made home desolate, and destroyed my faith in
every thing; for whom could I trust, when she, the
nearest and dearest creature in the world, deceived and
deserted me. I could not forgive; wrath burned hot
within me, and the desire for retribution would not be
appeased till those cruel words were said. The
retribution and remorse came swift and sure; but they
came most heavily to me." Still standing where he had
paused abruptly as he asked his question, David wrung
his strong hands together with a gesture of passionate
regret, while his face grew sharp with the remembered
suffering of the years he had given to the atonement of
that wrong. Christie put her own hand on those
clenched ones, and whispered softly:
" Don't tell me any more now: I can wait." I must, and
you must listen! I've longed to tell you, but I was afraid;
now, you shall know every thing, and then decide if you
can forgive me for Letty's sake," he said, so resolutely
that she listened with a face full of mute compassion.
"That little letter came to me; I never told my mother,
but answered it, and kept silent till news arrived that the
ship in which Letty had taken passage was lost.
Remorse had been tugging at my heart; and, when I
knew that she was dead, I forgave her with a vain
forgiveness, and mourned for my darling, as if she had
never left me. I told my mother then, and she did not
utter one reproach; but age seemed to fall upon her all
at once, and the pathetic quietude you see. " Then, but
for her, I should have been desperate; for day and night
Letty's face haunted me; Letty's voice cried: 'Take me
home!' and every word of that imploring letter burned
before my eyes as if written in fire. Do you wonder now
that I hid myself; that I had no heart to try for any
honorable place in the world, and only struggled to
forget, only hoped to expiate my sin?" With his head
bowed down upon his breast, David stood silent, asking
himself if he had even now done enough to win the
reward he coveted. Christie's voice seemed to answer
him; for she said, with heartfelt gratitude and respect:
" Surely you have atoned for that harshness to one
woman by years of devotion to many. Was it this that
made you 'a brother of girls,' as Mr. Power once called
you? And, when I asked what he meant, he said the
Arabs call a man that who has'a clean heart to love all
women as his sisters, and strength and courage to fight
for their protection!'" She hoped to lighten his trouble a
little, and spoke with a smile that was like cordial to
poor David. "Yes," he said, lifting his head again. "I
tried to be that, and, for Letty's sake, had pity on the
most forlorn, patience with the most abandoned; always
remembering that she might have been what they were,
if death had not been more merciful than I." "But she
was not dead:
she was alive and working as bravely as you. Ah, how
little I thought, when I loved Rachel, and she loved me,
that we should ever meet so happily as we soon shall.
Tell me how you found her? Does she know I am the
woman she once saved? Tell me all about her; and tell
it fast," prayed Christie, getting excited, as she more
fully grasped the happy fact that Rachel and Letty were
one. David came nearer, and his face kindled as he
spoke. " The ship sailed without her; she came later;
and, finding that her name was among the lost, she did
not deny it, for she was dead to us, and decided to
remain so till she had earned the right to be forgiven.
You know how she lived and worked, stood firm with
no one to befriend her till you came, and, by years of
patient well-doing, washed away her single sin. If any
one dares think I am ashamed to own her now, let him
know what cause I have to be proud of her; let him
come and see how tenderly I love her; how devoutly I
thank God for permitting me to find and bring my little
Letty home." Only the snow-flakes drifting against the
windowpane, and the wailing of the wind, was heard
for a moment; then David added, with brightening eyes
and a glad voice:
" I went into a hospital while away, to look after one of
my poor girls who had been doing well till illness
brought her there. As I was passing out I saw a sleeping
face, and stopped involuntarily:
it was so like Letty's. I never doubted she was dead; the
name over the bed was not hers; the face was sadly
altered from the happy, rosy one I knew, but it held me
fast; and as I paused the eyes opened,- Letty's own soft
eyes, -- they saw me, and, as if I was the figure of a
dream, she smiled, put up her arms and said, just as she
used to say, a child, when I woke her in her little bed 'Why, Davy!'- I can't tell any more, -only that when I
brought her home and put her in mother's arms, I felt as
if I was forgiven at last." He broke down there, and
went and stood behind the window curtains, letting no
one see the grateful tears that washed away the
bitterness of those long years.
Christie had taken up the miniature and was looking at
it, while her heart sang for joy that the lost was found,
when David came back to her, wearing the same look
she had seen the night she listened among the cloaks.
Moved and happy, with eager eyes and ardent manner,
yet behind it all a pale expectancy as if some great
crisis was at hand:
"Christie, I never can forget that when all others, even I,
cast Letty off, you comforted and saved her. What can I
do to thank you for it? " "Be my friend, and let me be
hers again," she answered, too deeply moved to think of
any private hope or pain. " Then the past, now that you
know it all, does not change your heart to us? " " It only
makes you dearer." " And if I asked you to come back
to the home that has been desolate since you went,
would you come?" "Gladly, David." "And if I dared to
say I loved you?" She only looked at him with a quick
rising light and warmth over her whole face; he
stretched both arms to her, and, going to him, Christie
gave her answer silently. Lovers usually ascend straight
into the seventh heaven for a time:
unfortunately they cannot stay long; the air is too
rarefied, the light too brilliant, the fare too ethereal, and
they are forced to come down to mundane things, as
larks drop from heaven's gate into their grassy nests.
David was summoned from that blissful region, after a
brief enjoyment of its divine delights, by Christie, who
looked up from her new refuge with the abrupt
question:
"What becomes of Kitty? He regarded her with a dazed
expression for an instant, for she had been speaking the
delightful language of lips and eyes that lovers use, and
the old tongue sounded harsh to him. " She is safe with
her father, and is to marry the'other one' next week."
"Heaven be praised!" ejaculated Christie, so fervently
that David looked suddenly enlightened and much
amused, as he said quickly:
"What becomes of Fletcher?" "He's safely out of the
way, and I sincerely hope he will marry some' other
one' as soon as possible." " Christie, you were jealous
of that girl." " David, you were jealous of that man."
Then they both burst out laughing like two children, for
heavy burdens had been lifted off their hearts and they
were bubbling over with happiness. "But truly, David,
weren't you a little jealous of P. F.?" persisted Christie,
feeling an intense desire to ask all manner of harassing
questions, with the agreeable certainty that they would
be fully answered. " Desperately jealous. You were so
kind, so gay, so altogether charming when with him,
that I could not stand by and see it, so I kept away. Why
were you never so to me? " "Because you never showed
that you cared for me, and he did. But it was wrong in
me to do it, and I repent of it heartily; for it hurt him
more than I thought it would-when the experiment
failed. I truly tried to love him, but I couldn't." " Yet he
had so much to offer, and could give you all you most
enjoy. It is very singular that you failed to care for him,
and preferred a poor old fellow like me," said David,
beaming at her like a beatified man. "I do love luxury
and pleasure, but I love independence more. I'm happier
poking in the dirt with you than I should be driving in a
fine carriage with' that piece of elegance' as Mr. Power
called him; prouder of being your wife than his; and
none of the costly things he offered me were half so
precious in my sight as your little nosegays, now
mouldering away in my treasure-box upstairs. Why,
Davy, I've longed more intensely for the right to push
up the curly lock that is always tumbling into your eyes,
than for Philip's whole fortune. Letty I do it now?"
"You may," and Christie did it with a tender satisfaction
that made David love her the more, though he laughed
like a boy at the womanly whim. "And so you thought I
cared for Kitty?" he said presently, taking his turn at the
new game. "How could I help it when she was so young
and pretty and fond of you?" "Was she?" innocently.
"Didn't you see it? How blind men are!" "Not always."
"David, did you see that I cared for you?" asked
Christie, turning crimson under the significant glance
he gave her. " I wish I had; I confess I once or twice
fancied that I caught glimpses of bliss round the corner,
as it were; but, before I could decide, the glimpses
vanished, and I was very sure I was a conceited
coxcomb to think it for a moment. It was very hard, and
yet I was glad."
"Glad!" "Yes, because I had made a sort of vow that I'd
never love or marry as a punishment for my cruelty to
Letty." " That was wrong, David." "I see it now; but it
was not hard to keep that fool'ish vow till you came;
and you see I've broken it without a shadow of regret
to-night." " You might have done it months ago and
saved me so much woe if you had not been a dear,
modest, morbidly conscientious bat," sighed Christie,
pleased and proud to learn her power, yet sorry for the
long delay. " Thank you, love. You see I didn't find out
why I liked my friend so well till I lost her. I had just
begun to feel that you were very dear, -- for after the
birthday you were like an angel in the house, Christie, -
- when you changed all at once, and I thought you
suspected me, and didn't like it. Your running away
when Kitty came confirmed my fear; then in came that - would you mind if I said -- confounded Fletcher? "
"Not in the least." " Well, as he didn't win, I won't be
hard on him; but I gave up then and had a tough time of
it; especially that first night when this splendid lover
appeared and received such a kind welcome." Christie
saw the strong hand that lay on David's knee clenched
slowly, as he knit his brows with a grim look, plainly
showing that he was not what she was inclined to think
him, a perfect saint. "Oh, my heart! and there I was
loving you so dearly all the time, and you wouldn't see
or speak or understand, but went away, left me to
torment all three of us," cried Christie with a tragic
gesture. "My dearest girl, did you ever know a man in
love do, say, or think the right thing at the right time? I
never did," said David, so penitently that she forgave
him on the spot. " Never mind, dear. It has taught us the
worth of love, and perhaps we are the better for the
seeming waste of precious time. Now I've not only got
you but Letty also, and your mother is mine in very
truth. Ah, how rich I am!" "But I thought it was all over
with me when I found Letty, because, seeing no more
of Fletcher, I had begun to hope again, and when she
came back to me I knew my home must be hers, yet
feared you would refuse to share it if you knew all. You
are very proud, and the purest-hearted woman I ever
knew." " And if I had refused, you would have let me
go and held fast to Letty?" " Yes, for I owe her every
thing." "You should have known me better, David. But
I don't refuse, and there is no need to choose between
us." " No, thank heaven, and you, my Christie! Imagine
what I felt when Letty told me all you had been to her.
If any thing could make me love you more than I now
do, it would be that! No, don't hide your face; I like to
see it blush and smile and turn to me confidingly, as it
has not done all these long months." "Did Letty tell you
what she had done for me?" asked Christie, looking
more like a rose than ever Kitty did.
"She told me every thing, and wished me to tell you all
her story, even the saddest part of it. I'd better do it now
before you meet again." He paused as if the tale was
hard to tell; but Christie put her hand on his lips saying
softly:
"Never tell it; let her past be as sacred as if she were
dead. She was my friend when I had no other:
she is my dear sister now, and nothing can ever change
the love between us." If she had thought David's face
beautiful with gratitude when he told the happier
portions of that history, she found it doubly so when
she spared him the recital of its darkest chapter, and
bade him " leave the rest to silence." "Now you will
come home? Mother wants you, Letty longs for you,
and I have got and mean to keep you all my life, God
willing! "I'd better die to-night and make a blessed end,
for so much happiness is hardly possible in a world of
woe," answered Christie to that fervent invitation. ":
We shall be married very soon, take a wedding trip to
any part of the world you like, and our honeymoon will
last for ever, Mrs. Sterling, Jr.," said David, soaring
away into the future with sublime disregard of
obstacles. Before Christie could get her breath after that
somewhat startling announcement, Mr. Power
appeared, took in the situation at a glance, gave them a
smile that was a benediction, and said heartily as he
offered a hand to each:
"Now I'm satisfied; I've watched and waited patiently,
and after many tribulations you have found each other
in good time;" then with a meaning look at Christie he
added slyly:
But David is'no hero' you know." She remembered the
chat in the strawberry bed, laughed, and colored
brightly, as she answered with her hand trustfully in
David's, her eyes full of loving pride and reverence
lifted to his face:
" I've seen both sides of the medal now, and found it
sterling gold.' Hero or not I'm content; for, though he
loves his mother much,' there is room in his heart for
me too; his old books' have given him something better
than learning, and he has convinced me that double
flowers' are loveliest and best."
Chapter XVI
Mustered In
CHRISTIE'S return was a very happy one, and could
not well be otherwise with a mother, sister, and lover to
welcome her back. Her meeting with Letty was
indescribably tender, and the days that followed were
pretty equally divided between her and her brother, in
nursing the one and loving the other. There was no
cloud now in Christie's sky, and all the world seemed in
bloom. But even while she enjoyed every hour of life,
and begrudged the time given to sleep, she felt as if the
dream was too beautiful to last, and often said:
"Something will happen:
such perfect happiness is not possible in this world."
"Then let us make the most of it," David would reply,
wisely bent on getting his honey while he could, and
not borrowing trouble for the morrow. So Christie
turned a deaf ear to her "prophetic soul," and gave
herself up to the blissful holiday that had come at last.
Even while March winds were howling outside, she
blissfully "poked in the dirt" with David in the greenhouse, put up the curly lock as often as she liked, and
told him she loved him a dozen times a day, not in
words, but in silent ways, that touched him to the heart,
and made his future look so bright he hardly dared
believe in it. A happier man it would have been difficult
to find just then; all his burdens seemed to have fallen
off, and his spirits rose again with an elasticity which
surprised even those who knew him best. Christie often
stopped to watch and wonder if the blithe young man
who went whistling and singing about the house, often
stopping to kiss somebody, to joke, or to exclaim with a
beaming face like a child at a party:
"Isn't every thing beautiful?" could be the sober, steady
David, who used to plod to and fro with his shoulders a
little bent, and the absent look in his eyes that told of
thoughts above or beyond the daily task. It was good to
see his mother rejoice over him with an exceeding great
joy; it was better still to see Letty's eyes follow him
with unspeakable love and gratitude in their soft depths;
but it was best of all to see Christie marvel and exult
over the discoveries she made:
for, though she had known David for a year, she had
never seen the real man till now. "Davy, you are a
humbug," she said one day when they were making up
a bridal order in the greenhouse. "I told you so, but you
wouldn't believe it," he answered, using long stemmed
rose-buds with as prodigal a hand as if the wedding was
to be his own. " I thought I was going to marry a quiet,
studious, steady-going man; and here I find myself
engaged to a romantic youth who flies about in the most
undignified manner, embraces people behind doors,
sings opera airs, -- very much out of tune by the way, -and conducts himself more like an infatuated Claude
Melnotte, than a respectable gentleman on the awful
verge of matrimony. Nothing can surprise me now:
I'm prepared for any thing, even the sight of my
Quakerish lover dancing a jig." "Just what I've been
longing to do! Come and take a turn:
it will do you good; " and, to Christie's utter
amazement, David caught her round the waist and
waltzed her down the boarded walk with a speed and
skill that caused less havoc among the flower-pots than
one would imagine, and seemed to delight the plants,
who rustled and nodded as if applauding the dance of
the finest double flower that had ever blossomed in
their midst. "I can't help it, Christie," he said, when he
had landed her breathless and laughing at the other end.
", I feel like a boy out of school, or rather a man out of
prison, and must enjoy my liberty in some way. I'm not
a talker, you know; and, as the laws of gravitation
forbid my soaring aloft anywhere, I can only express
my joyfully uplifted state of mind by 'prancing,' as you
call it. Never mind dignity:
let's be happy, and by and by I'll sober down." "I don't
want you to; I love to see you so young and happy, only
you are not the old David, and I've got to get acquainted
with the new one." "I hope you'll like him better than
the frost-bitten old David' you first knew and were kind
enough to love. Mother says I've gone back to the time
before we lost Letty, and I sometimes feel as if I had. In
that case you will find me a proud, impetuous,
ambitious fellow, Christie, and how will that suit?"
"' Excellently; I like pride of your sort; impetuosity
becomes you, for you have learned to control it if need
be; and the ambition is best of all. I always wondered at
your want of it, and longed to stir you up; for you did
not seem the sort of man to be contented with mere
creature comforts when there are so many fine things
men may do. What shall you choose, Davy?" "I shall
wait for time to show. The sap is all astir in me, and I'm
ready for my chance. I don't know what it is, but I feel
very sure that some work will be given me into which I
can put my whole heart and soul and strength. I spoilt
my first chance; but I know I shall have another, and,
whatever it is, I am ready to do my best, and live or die
for it as God wills." "So am I," answered Christie, with
a voice as earnest and a face as full of hopeful
resolution as his own. Then they went back to their
work, little dreaming as they tied roses and twined
smilax wreaths, how near that other chance was; how
soon they were to be called upon to keep their promise,
and how well each was to perform the part given them
in life and death. The gun fired one April morning at
Fort Sumter told many men like David what their work
was to be, and showed many women like Christie a new
right to claim and bravely prove their fitness to possess.
No need to repeat the story of the war begun that day; it
has been so often told that it will only be touched upon
here as one of the experiences of Christie's life, an
experience which did for her what it did for all who
took a share in it, and loyally acted their part.
The North woke up from its prosperous lethargy, and
began to stir with the ominous hum of bees when rude
hands shake the hive. Rich and poor were proud to
prove that they loved their liberty better than their
money or their lives, and the descendants of the brave
old Puritans were worthy of their race. Many said:' It
will soon be over;" but the wise men, who had warned
in vain, shook their heads, as that first disastrous
summer showed that the time for compromise was past,
and the stern reckoning day of eternal justice was at
hand. To no home in the land did the great trouble bring
a more sudden change than the little cottage in the lane.
All its happy peace was broken; excitement and
anxiety, grief and indignation, banished the sweet home
joys and darkened the future that had seemed so clear.
David was sober enough now, and went about his work
with a grim set to his lips, and a spark in his eyes that
made the three women look at one another pale with
unspoken apprehension. As they sat together, picking
lint or rolling bandages while David read aloud some
dismal tale of a lost battle that chilled their blood and
made their hearts ache with pity, each woman, listening
to the voice that stirred her like martial music, said
within herself:
"Sooner or later he will go, and I have no right to keep
him." Each tried to be ready to make her sacrifice
bravely when the time came, and each prayed that it
might not be required of her. David said little, but they
knew by the way he neglected his garden and worked
for the soldiers, that his heart was in the war. Day after
day he left Christie and his sister to fill the orders that
came so often now for flowers to lay on the grave of
some dear, dead boy brought home to his mother in a
shroud. Day after day he hurried away to help Mr.
Power in the sanitary work that soon claimed all hearts
and hands; and, day after day, he came home with what
Christie called the "heroic look" more plainly written
on his face. All that first summer, so short and strange;
all that first winter, so long and hard to those who went
and those who stayed, David worked and waited, and
the women waxed strong in the new atmosphere of selfsacrifice which pervaded the air, bringing out the sturdy
virtues of the North. "How terrible! Oh, when will it be
over!" sighed Letty one day, after hearing a long list of
the dead and wounded in one of the great battles of that
second summer. " Never till we have beaten!" cried
David, throwing down the paper and walking about the
room with his head up like a war-horse who smells
powder. "It is terrible and yet glorious. I thank heaven I
live to see this great wrong righted, and only wish I
could do my share like a man." "That is natural; but
there are plenty of men who have fewer ties than you,
who can fight better, and whose places are easier to fill
than yours if they die," said Christie, hastily. " But the
men who have most to lose fight best they say; and to
my thinking a soldier needs a principle as well as a
weapon, if he is to do real service." " As the only son of
a widow, you can't be drafted:
that's one comfort," said Letty, who could not bear to
give up the brother lost to her for so many years.
"I should not wait for that, and I know mother would
give her widow's mite if she saw that it was needed."
"Yes, Davy." The soft, old voice answered steadily; but
the feeble hand closed instinctively on the arm of this
only son, who was so dear to her. David held it close in
both of his, saying gratefully:
"Thank you, mother;" then, fixing his eyes on the
younger yet not dearer women, he added with a ring in
his voice that made their hearts answer with a prompt
"Ay, ay!" in spite of love or fear:
"Now listen, you dear souls, and understand that, if I do
this thing, I shall not do it hastily, nor without counting
well the cost. My first and most natural impulse was to
go in the beginning; but I stayed for your sakes. I saw I
was not really needed:
I thought the war would soon be over, and those who
went then could do the work. You see how mistaken we
were, and God only knows when the end will come.
The boys- bless their brave hearts! -- have done nobly,
but older men are needed now. We cannot sacrifice all
the gallant lads; and we who have more to lose than
they must take our turn and try to do as well. You own
this; I see it in your faces:
then don't hold me back when the time comes for me to
go. I must do my part, however small it is, or I shall
never feel as if I deserved the love you give me. You
will let me go, I am sure, and not regret that I did what
seemed to me a solemn duty, leaving the consequences
to the Lord! " "Yes, David," sister and sweetheart
answered, bravely forgetting in the fervor of the
moment what heavy consequences God might see fit to
send. "Good! I knew my Spartans would be ready, and I
won't disgrace them. I waited more than a year, and
done what I could. But all the while I felt that I was
going to get a chance at the hard work, and I've been
preparing for it. Bennet will take the garden and greenhouse off my hands this autumn for a year or longer, if I
like. He's a kind, neighborly man, and his boy will take
my place about the house and protect you faithfully.
Mr. Power cannot be spared to go as chaplain, though
he longs to desperately; so he is near in case of need,
and with your two devoted daughters by you, mother, I
surely can be spared for a little while." " Only one
daughter near her, David:
I shall enlist when you do," said Christie, resolutely.
"You mean it? " " I mean it as honestly as you do. I
knew you would go:
I saw you getting ready, and I made up my mind to
follow. I, too, have prepared for it, and even spoken to
Mrs. Amory. She has gone as matron of a hospital, and
promised to find a place for me when I was ready. The
day you enlist I shall write and tell her I am ready."
There was fire in Christie's eyes and a flush on her
cheek now, as she stood up with the look of a woman
bent on doing well her part. David caught her hands in
his, regardless of the ominous bandages they held, and
said, with tender admiration and reproach in his voice:
"You wouldn't marry me when I asked you this
summer, fearing you would be a burden to me; but now
you want to share hardship and danger with me, and
support me by the knowledge of your nearness. Dear,
ought I to let you do it? " " You will let me do it, and in
return I will marry you whenever you ask me,"
answered Christie, sealing the promise with a kiss that
silenced him. He had been anxious to be married long
ago, but when he asked Mr. Power to make him happy,
a month after his engagement, that wise friend said to
them:
"I don't advise it yet. You have tried and proved one
another as friends, now try and prove one another as
lovers; then, if you feel that all is safe and happy, you
will be ready for the greatest of the three experiments,
and then in God's name marry." " We will," they said,
and for a year had been content, studying one another,
finding much to love, and something to learn in the art
of bearing and forbearing. David had begun to think
they had waited long enough, but Christie still delayed,
fearing she was not worthy, and secretly afflicted by the
thought of her poverty. She had so little to give in
return for all she received that it troubled her, and she
was sometimes tempted to ask Uncle Enos for a modest
marriage portion. She never had yet, and now resolved
to ask nothing, but to earn her blessing by doing her
share in the great work. "I shall remember that," was all
David answered to that last promise of hers, and three
months later he took her at her word. For a week or two
they went on in the old way; Christie did her housework
with her head full of new plans, read books on nursing,
made gruel, plasters, and poultices, till Mrs. Sterling
pronounced her perfect; and dreamed dreams of a
happy time to come when peace had returned, and
David was safe at home with all the stars and bars a
man could win without dying for them. David set things
in order, conferred with Bennet, petted his womankind,
and then hurried away to pack boxes of stores, visit
camps, and watch departing regiments with a daily
increasing certainty that his time had come. One
September day he went slowly home, and, seeing
Christie in the garden, joined her, helped her finish
matting up some delicate shrubs, put by the tools, and
when all was done said with unusual gentleness:
" Come and walk a little in the lane." She put her arm in
his, and answered quickly:
" You've something to tell me:
I see it in your face." "Dear, I must go." "Yes, David."
"And you?" "I go too." " Yes, Christie." That was all:
she did not offer to detain him now; he did not deny her
right to follow. They looked each other bravely in the
face a moment, seeing, acknowledging the duty and the
danger, yet ready to do the one and dare the other, since
they went together. Then shoulder to shoulder, as if
already mustered in, these faithful comrades marched to
and fro, planning their campaign. Next evening, as Mrs.
Sterling sat alone in the twilight, a tall man in army
blue entered quietly, stood watching the tranquil figure
for a moment, then went and knelt down beside it,
saying, with a most unsoldierly choke in the voice:
"I've done it, mother:
tell me you're not sorry." But the little Quaker cap went
down on the broad shoulder, and the only answer he
heard was a sob that stirred the soft folds over the
tender old heart that clung so closely to the son who
had lived for her so long. What happened in the twilight
no one ever knew; but David received promotion for
bravery in a harder battle than any he was going to, and
from his mother's breast a decoration more precious to
him than the cross of the Legion of Honor from a royal
hand. When Mr. Power presently came in, followed by
the others, they found their soldier standing very erect
in his old place on the rug, with the firelight gleaming
on his bright buttons, and Bran staring at him with a
perplexed aspect; for the uniform, shorn hair, trimmed
beard, and a certain lofty carriage of the head so
changed his master that the sagacious beast was
disturbed. Letty smiled at him approvingly, then went
to comfort her mother who could not recover her
tranquillity so soon. But Christie stood aloof, looking at
her lover with something more than admiration in the
face that kindled beautifully as she exclaimed:
"0 David, you are splendid! Once I was so blind I
thought you plain; but now my' boy in blue' is the
noblest looking man I ever saw. Yes, Mr. Power, I've
found my hero at last! Here he is, my knight without
reproach or fear, going out to take his part in the
grandest battle ever fought. I wouldn't keep him if I
could; I'm glad and proud to have him go; and if he
never should come back to me I can bear it better for
knowing that he dutifully did his best, and left the
consequences to the Lord." Then, having poured out the
love and pride and confidence that enriched her
sacrifice, she broke down and clung to him, weeping as
so many clung and wept in those hard days when men
and women gave their dearest, and those who prayed
and waited suffered almost as much as those who
fought and died. When the deed was once done, it was
astonishing what satisfaction they all took in it, how
soon they got accustomed to the change, and what pride
they felt in our soldier." The loyal frenzy fell upon the
three quiet women, and they could not do too much for
their country. Mrs. Sterling cut up her treasured old
linen without a murmur; Letty made " comfort bags "
by the dozen, put up jelly, and sewed on blue jackets
with tireless industry; while Christie proclaimed that if
she had twenty lovers she would send them all; and
then made preparations enough to nurse the entire
party. David meantime was in camp, getting his first
taste of martial life, and not liking it any better than he
thought he should; but no one heard a complaint, and he
never regretted his " love among the roses," for he was
one of the men who had a " principle as well as a
weapon," and meant to do good service with both. It
would have taken many knapsacks to hold all the gifts
showered upon him by his friends and neighbors. He
accepted all that came, and furnished forth those of his
company who were less favored. Among these was
Elisha Wilkins, and how he got there should be told.
Elisha had not the slightest intention of enlisting, but
Mrs. Wilkins was a loyal soul, and could not rest till
she had sent a substitute, since she could not go herself.
Finding that Lisha showed little enthusiasm on the
subject, she tried to rouse him by patriotic appeals of
various sorts. She read stirring accounts of battles,
carefully omitting the dead and wounded; she turned
out, baby and all if possible, to cheer every regiment
that left; and was never tired of telling Wash how she
wished she could add ten years to his age and send him
off to fight for his country like a man. But nothing
seemed to rouse the supine Elisha, who chewed his quid
like a placid beast of the field, and showed no sign of a
proper spirit. " Very well," said Mrs. Wilkins resolutely
to herself, " ef I can't make no impression on his soul I
will on his stommick, and see how that'll work." Which
threat she carried out with such skill and force that
Lisha was effectually waked up, for he was "partial to
good vittles," and Cynthy was a capital cook. Poor
rations did not suit him, and he demanded why his
favorite dishes were not forthcoming. " We can't afford
no nice vittles now when our men are sufferin' so. I
should be ashamed to cook 'em, and expect to choke
tryin' to eat 'em. Every one is sacrificin' somethin', and
we mustn't be slack in doin' our part, -- the Lord knows
it's precious little, -- and there won't be no stuffin' in
this house for a consid'able spell. Ef I could save up
enough to send a man to do my share of the fightin', I
should be proud to do it. Anyway I shall stint the family
and send them dear brave fellers every cent I can git
without starvin' the children."
"Now, Cynthy, don't be ferce. Things will come out all
right, and it ain't no use upsettin' every thing and bein'
so darned uncomfortable," answered Mr. Wilkins with
unusual energy. "Yes it is, Lisha. No one has a right to
be comfortable in such times as these, and this family
ain't goin' to be ef I can help it," and Mrs. Wilkins set
down her flat-iron with a slam which plainly told her
Lisha war was declared. He said no more but fell a
thinking. He was not as unmoved as he seemed by the
general excitement, and had felt sundry manly impulses
to "up and at 'em," when his comrades in the shop
discussed the crisis with ireful brandishing of awls, and
vengeful pounding of sole leather, as if the rebels were
under the hammer. But the selfish, slothful little man
could not make up his mind to brave hardship and
danger, and fell back on his duty to his family as a
reason for keeping safe at home. But now that home
was no longer comfortable, now that Cynthy had
sharpened her tongue, and turned "ferce," and now -hardest blow of all -- that he was kept on short
commons, he began to think he might as well be on the
tented field, and get a little glory along with the
discomfort if that was inevitable. Nature abhors a
vacuum, and when food fell short patriotism had a
chance to fill the aching void. Lisha had about made up
his mind, for he knew the value of peace and quietness;
and, though his wife was no scold, she was the ruling
power, and in his secret soul he considered her a very
remarkable woman. He knew what she wanted, but was
not going to be hurried for anybody; so he still kept
silent, and Mrs. Wilkins began to think she must give it
up. An unexpected ally appeared however, and the good
woman took advantage of it to strike one last blow.
Lisha sat eating a late breakfast one morning, with a
small son at either elbow, waiting for stray mouthfuls
and committing petty larcenies right and left, for Pa was
in a brown study. Mrs. Wilkins was frying flapjacks,
and though this is not considered an heroical
employment she made it so that cay. This was a favorite
dish of Lisha's, and she had preparel it as a bait for this
cautious fish. To say that the fish rose at once and
swallowed the bait, hook and all, but feebly expresses
the justice done to the cakes by that long-suffering man.
Waiting till he had a tempting pile of the lightest,
brownest flapjacks ever seen upon his plate, and was
watching an extra big bit of butter melt luxuriously into
the warm bosom of the upper one, with a face as benign
as if some of the molasses he was trickling over them
had been absorbed into his nature, Mrs. Wilkins seized
the propitious moment to say impressively:
"David Sterlin' has enlisted!' Sho! has he, though? " "Of
course he has! any man with the spirit of a muskeeter
would." " Well, he ain't got a family, you see." "He's
got his old mother, that sister home from furrin' parts
somewheres, and Christie just going to be married. I
should like to know who's got a harder family to leave
than that?" Six young children is harder:
ef I went fifin' and drummin' off, who'd take care of
them I'd like to know?" " I guess I could support the
family ef I give my mind to it;" and Mrs. Wilkins
turned a flapjack with an emphasis that caused her lord
to bolt a hot triangle with dangerous rapidity; for well
he knew very little of his money went into the common
purse. She never reproached him, but the fact nettled
him now; and something in the tone of her voice made
that sweet morsel hard to swallow. "'Pears to me you're
in ruther a hurry to be a widder, Cynthy, shovin' me off
to git shot in this kind of a way," growled Lisha, ill at
ease. " I'd ruther be a brave man's widder than a
coward's wife, any day!" cried the rebellious Cynthy:
then she relented, and softly slid two hot cakes into his
plate; adding, with her hand upon his shoulder, " Lisha,
dear, I want to be proud of my husband as other women
be of theirs. Every one gives somethin', I've only got
you, and I want to do my share, and do it hearty." She
went back to her work, and Mr. Wilkins sat
thoughtfully stroking the curly heads beside him, while
the boys ravaged his plate, with no reproof, but a half
audible, "My little chaps, my little chaps!" She thought
she had got him, and smiled to herself, even while a
great tear sputtered on the griddle at those last words of
his. Imagine her dismay, when, having consumed the
bait, her fish gave signs of breaking the line, and
escaping after all; for Mr. Wilkins pushed back his
chair, and said slowly, as he filled his pipe:
"I'm blest ef I can see the sense of a lot of decent men
going off to be froze, and starved, and blowed up jest
for them confounded niggers." He got no further, for his
wife's patience gave out; and, leaving her cakes to burn
black, she turned to him with a face glowing like her
stove, and cried out:
"Lisha, ain't you got no heart? can you remember what
Hepsey told us, and call them poor, long-sufferin'
creeters names? Can you think of them wretched wives
sold from their husbands; them children as dear as ourn
tore from their mothers; and old folks kep slavin eighty
long, hard years with no pay, no help, no pity, when
they git past work? Lisha Wilkins, look at that, and say
no ef you darst!" Mrs. Wilkins was a homely woman in
an old calico gown, but her face, her voice, her attitude
were grand, as she flung wide the door of the little back
bedroom, and pointed with her tin spatula to the sight
beyond. Only Hepsey sitting by a bed where lay what
looked more like a shrivelled mummy than a woman.
Ah! but it was that old mother worked and waited for so
long:
blind now, and deaf; childish, and half dead with many
hardships, but safe and free at last; and Hepsey's black
face was full of a pride, a peace, and happiness more
eloquent and touching than any speech or sermon ever
uttered. Mr. Wilkins had heard her story, and been more
affected by it than he would confess:
now it came home to him with sudden force; the
thought of his own mother, wife, or babies torn from
him stirred him to the heart, and the manliest emotion
he had ever known caused him to cast his pipe at his
feet, put on his hat with an energetic slap, and walk out
of the house, wearing an expression on his usually
wooden face that caused his wife to clap her hands and
cry exultingly:
"I thought that would fetch him!" Then she fell to work
like an inspired woman; and at noon a sumptuous
dinner " smoked upon the board;" the children were
scrubbed till their faces shone; and the room was as
fresh and neat as any apartment could be with the
penetrating perfume of burnt flapjacks still pervading
the air, and three dozen ruffled nightcaps decorating the
clothes-lines overhead. " Tell me the instant minute you
see Pa a comin', and I'll dish up the gravy," was Mrs.
Wilkins's command, as she stepped in with a cup of tea
for old "Marm," as she called Hepsey's mother. "l He's
a comin', Ma!" called Gusty, presently. "No, he ain't:
it's a trainer," added Ann Lizy. "Yes, 'tis Pa! oh, my
eye! ain't he stunnin'!" cried Wash, stricken for the first
time with admiration of his sire. Before Mrs. Wilkins
could reply to these conflicting rumors her husband
walked in, looking as martial as his hollow chest and
thin legs permitted, and, turning his cap nervously in
his hands, said half-proudly, halfreproachfully:
" Now, Cynthy, be you satisfied?" "' Oh, my Lisha! I
be, I be!" and the inconsistent woman fell upon his
buttony breast weeping copiously. If ever a man was
praised and petted, admired and caressed, it was Elisha
Wilkins that day. His wife fed him with the fat of the
land, regardless of consequences; his children revolved
about him with tireless curiosity and wonder; his
neighbors flocked in to applaud, advise, and admire;
every one treated him with a respect most grateful to his
feelings; he was an object of interest, and with every
hour his importance increased, so that by night he felt
like a Commander-in-Chief, and bore himself
accordingly. He had enlisted in David's regiment, which
was a great comfort to his wife; for though her stout
heart never failed her, it grew very heavy at times; and
when Lisha was gone, she often dropped a private tear
over the broken pipe that always lay in its old place,
and vented her emotions by sending baskets of
nourishment to Private Wilkins, which caused that
bandy-legged warrior to be much envied and cherished
by his mates. "I'm glad I done it; for it will make a man
of Lisha; and, if I've sent him to his death, God knows
he'll be fitter to die than if he stayed here idlin' his life
away." Then the good soul openly shouldered the
burden she had borne so long in secret, and bravely
trudged on alone. "Another great battle!" screamed the
excited newsboys in the streets.
"Another great battle!" read Letty in the cottage parlor.
"Another great battle!" cried David, coming in with the
war-horse expression on his face a month or two after
he enlisted. The women dropped their work to look and
listen; for his visits were few and short, and every
instant was precious. When the first greetings were
over, David stood silent an instant, and a sudden mist
came over his eyes as he glanced from one beloved face
to another; then he threw back his head with the old
impatient gesture, squared his shoulders, and said in a
loud, cheerful voice, with a suspicious undertone of
emotion in it, however:
" My precious people, I've got something to tell you:
are you ready?" They knew what it was without a word.
Mrs. Sterling clasped her hands and bowed her head.
Letty turned pale and dropped her work; but Christie's
eyes kindled, as she answered with a salute:
"Ready, my General." "We are ordered off at once, and
go at four this afternoon. I've got a three hours' leave to
say goodby in. Now, let's be brave and enjoy every
minute of it." "We will:
what can I do for you, Davy?" asked Christie,
wonderfully supported by the thought that she was
going too. " Keep your promise, dear," he answered,
while the warlike expression changed to one of infinite
tenderness. "What promise?" "This;" and he held out
his hand with a little paper in it. She saw it was a
marriage license, and on it lay a wedding-ring. She did
not hesitate an instant, but laid her own hand in his, and
answered with her heart in her face:
I'll keep it, David." "I knew you would! " then holding
her close he said in a tone that made it very hard for her
to keep steady, as she had vowed she would do to the
last:
"I know it is much to ask, but I want to feel that you are
mine before I go. Not only that, but it will be a help and
protection to you, dear, when you follow. As a married
woman you will get on better, as my wife you will be
allowed to come to me if I need you, and as my" -- he
stopped there, for he could not add -- " as my widow
you will have my pension to support you." She
understood, put both arms about his neck as if to keep
him safe, and whispered fervently:
" Nothing can part us any more, not even death; for
love like ours will last for ever." " Then you are quite
willing to try the third great experiment? " "Glad and
proud to do it." " With no doubt, no fear, to mar your
consent." " Not one, David." "That's true love, Christie!
" Then they stood quite still for a time, and in the
silence the two hearts talked together in the sweet
language no tongue can utter. Presently David said
regretfully:
" I meant it should be so different. I always planned that
we'd be married some bright summer day, with many
friends about us; then take a happy little journey
somewhere together, and come back to settle down at
home in the dear old way. Now it's all so hurried,
sorrowful, and strange. A dull November day; no
friends but Mr. Power, who will be here soon; no
journey but my march to Washington alone; and no
happy coming home together in this world perhaps. Can
you bear it, love?" " Have no fear for me:
I feel as if I could bear any thing just now; for I've got
into a heroic mood and I mean to keep so as long as I
can. I've always wanted to live in stirring times, to have
a part in great deeds, to sacrifice and suffer something
for a principle or a person; and now I have my wish. I
like it, David:
it's a grand time to live, a splendid chance to do and
suffer; and I want to be in it heart and soul, and earn a
little of the glory or the martyrdom that will come in the
end. Surely I shall if I give you and myself to the cause;
and I do it gladly, though I know that my heart has got
to ache as it never has ached yet, when my courage
fails, as it will by and by, and my selfish soul counts the
cost of my offering after the excitement is over. Help
me to be brave and strong, David:
don't let me complain or regret, but show me what lies
beyond, and teach me to believe that simply doing the
right is reward and happiness enough." Christie was
lifted out of herself for the moment, and looked inspired
by the high mood which was but the beginning of a
nobler life for her. David caught the exaltation, and
gave no further thought to any thing but the duty of the
hour, finding himself stronger and braver for that long
look into the illuminated face of the woman he loved.
"I'll try," was all his answer to her appeal; then proved
that he meant it by adding, with his lips against her
cheek:
"I must go to mother and Letty. We leave them behind,
and they must be comforted." He went, and Christie
vanished to make ready for her wedding, conscious, in
spite of her exalted state of mind, that every thing was
very hurried, sad, and strange, and very different from
the happy day she had so often planned.
"No matter, we are well on't for love,' and that is all we
really need," she thought, recalling with a smile Mrs.
Wilkins's advice. "David sends you these, dear. Can I
help in any way?" asked Letty, coming with a cluster of
lovely white roses in her hand, and a world of affection
in her eyes. "I thought he'd give me violets," and a
shadow came over Christie's face. "But they are
mourning flowers, you know." "Not to me. The roses
are, for they remind me of poor Helen, and the first
work I did with David was arranging flowers like these
for a dead baby's little coffin." " My dearest Christie,
don't be superstitious:
all brides wear roses, and Davy thought you'd like
them," said Letty, troubled at her words. "Then I'll wear
them, and I won't have fancies if I can help it. But I
think few brides dress with a braver, happier heart than
mine, though I do choose a sober wedding-gown,"
answered. Christie, smiling again, as she took from a
half-packed trunk her new hospital suit of soft, gray,
woollen stuff. " Won't you wear the pretty silvery silk
we like so well?" asked Letty timidly, for something in
Christie's face and manner impressed her very much. "
No, I will be married in my uniform as David is," she
answered with a look Letty long remembered. "Mr.
Power has come," she said softly a few minutes later,
with an anxious glance at the clock. a Go dear, I'll come
directly. But first" -- and Christie held her friend close a
moment, kissed her tenderly, and whispered in a broken
voice:
" Remember, I don't take his heart from you, I only
share it with my sister and my mother." "I'm glad to
give him to you, Christie; for now I feel as if I had
partly paid the great debt I've owed so long," answered
Letty through her tears. Then she went away, and
Christie soon followed, looking very like a Quaker
bride in her gray gown with no ornament but delicate
frills at neck and wrist, and the roses in her bosom. "
No bridal white, dear? " said David, going to her. "Only
this," and she touched the flowers, adding with her hand
on the blue coat sleeve that embraced her:
"I want to consecrate my uniform as you do yours by
being married in it. Isn't it fitter for a soldier's wife than
lace and silk at such a time as this? " Much fitter:
I like it; and I find you beautiful, my Christie,"
whispered David, as she put one of her roses in his
button-hole. "Then I'm satisfied." " Mr. Power is
waiting:
are you ready, love?" Quite ready." Then they were
married, with Letty and her mother standing beside
them, Bennet and his wife dimly visible in the doorway, and poor Bran at his master's feet, looking up with
wistful eyes, half human in the anxious affection they
expressed. Christie never forgot that service, so simple,
sweet, and solemn; nor the look her husband gave her at
the end, when he kissed her on lips and forehead,
saying fervently, " God bless my wife!" A tender little
scene followed that can better be imagined than
described; then Mr. Power said cheerily:
"One hour more is all you have, so make the most of it,
dearly beloved. You young folks take a wedding trip to
the green-house, while we see how well we can get on
without you." David and Christie went smiling away
together, and if they shed any tears over the brief
happiness no one saw them but the flowers, and they
loyally kept the secret folded up in their tender hearts.
Mr. Power cheered the old lady, while Letty, always
glad to serve, made ready the last meal David might
ever take at home. A very simple little marriage feast,
but more love, good-will, and tender wishes adorned
the plain table than is often found at wedding
breakfasts; and better than any speech or song was
Letty's broken whisper, as she folded her arms round
David's empty chair when no one saw her, "Heaven
bless and keep and bring him back to us." How time
went that day! The inexorable clock would strike
twelve so soon, and then the minutes flew till one was
at hand, and the last words were still half said, the last
good-byes still unuttered. " I must go!" cried David
with a sort of desperation, as Letty clung to one arm,
Christie to the other. " I shall see you soon:
good-by, my husband," whispered Christie, setting him
free. "' Give the last kiss to mother," added Letty,
following her example, and in another minute David
was gone. At the turn of the lane, he looked back and
swung his cap; all waved their hands to him; and then
he marched away to the great work before him, leaving
those loving hearts to ask the unanswerable question:
"How will he come home?" Christie was going to town
to see the regiment off, and soon followed with Mr.
Power. They went early to a certain favorable spot, and
there found Mrs. Wilkins, with her entire family
perched upon a fence, on the spikes of which they
impaled themselves at intervals, and had to be plucked
off by the stout girl engaged to assist in this memorable
expedition. " Yes, Lisha's goin', and I was bound he
should see every one of his blessed children the last
thing, ef I took'em all on my back. He knows where to
look, and he's a goin' to see seven cheerful faces as he
goes by. Time enough to cry by me by; so set stiddy,
boys, and cheer loud when you see Pa," said Mrs.
Wilkins, fanning her hot face, and utterly forgetting her
cherished bonnet in the excitement of the moment. "I
hear drums! They're comin'!" cried Wash, after a long
half hour's waiting had nearly driven him frantic. The
two younger boys immediately tumbled off the fence,
and were with difficulty restored to their perches. Gusty
began to cry, Ann Elizy to wave a minute red cotton
handkerchief, and Adelaide to kick delightedly in her
mother's arms. "Jane Carter, take this child for massy
sake:
my legs do tremble so I can't h'ist her another minute.
Hold on to me behind, somebody, for I must see ef I do
pitch into the gutter," cried Mrs. Wilkins, with a gasp,
as she wiped her eyes on her shawl, clutched the railing,
and stood ready to cheer bravely when her conquering
hero came. Wash had heard drums every five minutes
since he arrived, but this time he was right, and began
to cheer the instant a red cockade appeared at the other
end of the long street. It was a different scene now than
in the first enthusiastic, hopeful days. Young men and
ardent boys filled the ranks then, brave by instinct,
burning with loyal zeal, and blissfully ignorant of all
that lay before them. Now the blue coats were worn by
mature men, some gray, all grave and resolute;
husbands and fathers with the memory of wives and
children tugging at their heart-strings; homes left
desolate behind them, and before them the grim
certainty of danger, hardship, and perhaps a captivity
worse than death. Little of the glamour of romance
about the war now:
they saw what it was, a long, hard task; and here were
the men to do it well. Even the lookers-on were
different. Once all was wild enthusiasm and glad
uproar; now men's lips were set, and women's smileless
even as they cheered; fewer handkerchiefs whitened the
air, for wet eyes needed them; and sudden lulls, almost
solemn in their stillness, followed the acclamations of
the crowd. All watched with quickened breath and
proud souls that living wave, blue below, and bright
with a steely glitter above, as it flowed down the street
and away to join the sea of dauntless hearts that for
months had rolled up against the South, and ebbed back
reddened with the blood of men like these. As the
inspiring music, the grand tramp drew near, Christie felt
the old thrill and longed to fall in and follow the flag
anywhere. Then she saw David, and the regiment
became one man to her. He was pale, but his eyes
shone, and his whole face expressed that two of the best
and bravest emotions of a man, love and loyalty, were
at their height as he gave his new made wife a long,
lingering look that seemed to say:
"I could not love thee, dear, so much, Loved I not honor
more." Christie smiled and waved her hand to him;
showed him his wedding roses still on her breast, and
bore up as gallantly as he, resolved that his last
impression of her should be a cheerful one. But when it
was all over, and nothing remained but the trampled
street, the hurrying crowd, the bleak November sky,
when Mrs. Wilkins sat sobbing on the steps like Niobe
with her children scattered about her, then Christie's
heart gave way, and she hid her face on Mr. Power's
shoulder for a moment, all her ardor quenched in tears
as she cried within herself:
" No, I could not bear it if I was not going too!"
Chapter XVII
The Colonel.
TEN years earlier Christie made her debut as an
Amazon, now she had a braver part to play on a larger
stage, with a nation for audience, martial music and the
boom of cannon for orchestra; the glare of battle-fields
was the " red light;" danger, disease, and death, the foes
she was to contend against; and the troupe she joined,
not timid girls, but high-hearted women, who fought
gallantly till the "demon" lay dead, and sang their song
of exultation with bleeding hearts, for this great
spectacle was a dire tragedy to them. Christie followed
David in a week, and soon proved herself so capable
that Mrs. Amory rapidly promoted her from one
important post to another, and bestowed upon her the
only honors left the women, hard work, responsibility,
and the gratitude of many men. " You are a treasure, my
dear, for you can turn your hand to any thing and do
well whatever you undertake. So many come with
plenty of good-will, but not a particle of practical
ability, and are offended because I decline their help.
The boys don't want to be cried over, or have their
brows' everlastingly swabbed,' as old Watkins calls it:
they want to be well fed and nursed, and cheered up
with creature comforts. Your nice beef-tea and cheery
ways are worth oceans of tears and cart-loads of tracts."
Mrs. Amory said this, as Christie stood waiting while
she wrote an order for some extra delicacy for a very
sick patient. Mrs. Sterling, Jr., certainly did look like an
efficient nurse, who thought more of "the boys" than of
herself; for one hand bore a pitcher of gruel, the other a
bag of oranges, clean shirts hung over the right arm, a
rubber cushion under the left, and every pocket in the
big apron was full of bottles and bandages, papers and
letters. " I never discovered what an accomplished
woman I was till I came here," answered Christie,
laughing. "I'm getting vain with so much praise, but I
like it immensely, and never was so pleased in my life
as I was yesterday when Dr. Harvey came for me to
take care of poor Dunbar, because no one else could
manage him."
" It's your firm yet pitiful way the men like so well. I
can't describe it better than in big Ben's words:' Mis
Sterlin' is the nuss for me, marm. She takes care of me
as ef she was my own mother, and it's a comfort jest to
see her round.' It's a gift, my dear, and you may thank
heaven you have got it, for it works wonders in a place
like this." " I only treat the poor fellows as I would have
other women treat my David if he should be in their
care. He may be any hour, you know." " And my boys,
God keep them S' The pen lay idle, and the gruel
cooled, as young wife and gray-haired mother forgot
their duty for a moment in tender thoughts of the
absent. Only a moment, for in came an attendant with a
troubled face, and an important young surgeon with the
well-worn little case under his arm. "' Bartlett's dying,
marm:
could you come and see to him? " says the man to Mrs.
Amory. " We have got to amputate Porter's arm this
morning, and he won't consent unless you are with him.
You will come, of course? " added the surgeon to
Christie, having tried and found her a woman with no "
confounded nerves" to impair her usefulness. So matron
and nurse go back to their duty, and dying Bartlett and
suffering Porter are all the more tenderly served for that
wasted minute. Like David, Christie had enlisted for the
war, and in the two years that followed, she saw all
sorts of service; for Mrs. Amory had influence, and her
righthand woman, after a few months' apprenticeship,
was ready for any post. The gray gown and comforting
face were known in many hospitals, seen on crowded
transports, among the ambulances at the front, invalid
cars, relief tents, and food depots up and down the land,
and many men went out of life like tired children
holding the hand that did its work so well. David
meanwhile was doing his part manfully, not only in
some of the great battles of those years, but among the
hardships, temptations, and sacrifices of a soldiers' life.
Spite of his Quaker ancestors, he was a good fighter,
and, better still, a magnanimous enemy, hating slavery,
but not the slave-holder, and often spared the master
while he saved the chattel. He was soon promoted, and
might have risen rapidly, but was content to remain as
captain of his company; for his men loved him, and he
was prouder of his influence over them than of any
decoration he could win. His was the sort of courage
that keeps a man faithful to death, and though he made
no brilliant charge, uttered few protestations of loyalty,
and was never heard to "damn the rebs," his comrades
felt that his brave example had often kept them steady
till a forlorn hope turned into a victory, knew that all
the wealth of the world could not bribe him from his
duty, and learned of him to treat with respect an enemy
as brave and less fortunate than themselves. A noble
nature soon takes its proper rank and exerts its
purifying influence, and Private Sterling won
confidence, affection, and respect, long before
promotion came; for, though he had tended his flowers
like a woman and loved his books like a student, he
now proved that he could also do his duty and keep his
honor stainless as a soldier and a gentleman. He and
Christie met as often as the one could get a brief
furlough, or the other be spared from hospital duty; but
when these meetings did come, they were wonderfully
beautiful and rich, for into them was distilled a
concentration of the love, happiness, and communion
which many men and women only know through years
of wedded life. Christie liked romance, and now she
had it, with a very sombre reality to give it an added
charm. No Juliet ever welcomed her Romeo more
joyfully than she welcomed David when he paid her a
flying visit unexpectedly; no Bayard ever had a more
devoted lady in his tent than David, when his wife came
through every obstacle to bring him comforts or to
nurse the few wounds he received. Love-letters, written
beside watch-fires and sick-beds, flew to and fro like
carrier-doves with wondrous speed; and nowhere in all
the brave and busy land was there a fonder pair than
this, although their honeymoon was spent apart in camp
and hospital, and well they knew that there might never
be for them a happy going home together. In her
wanderings to and fro, Christie not only made many
new friends, but met some old ones; and among these
one whose unexpected appearance much surprised and
touched her. She was " scrabbling " eggs in a tin basin
on board a crowded transport, going up the river with
the echoes of a battle dying away behind her, and
before her the prospect of passing the next- day on a
wharf serving out food to the wounded in an easterly
storm.
"0 Mrs. Sterling, do go up and see what's to be done!
We are all full below, and more poor fellows are lying
about on deck in a dreadful state. I'll take your place
here, but I can't stand that any longer," said one of her
aids, coming in heart-sick and exhausted by the ghastly
sights and terrible confusion of the day. "I'll go: keep
scrabbling while the eggs last, then knock out the head
of that barrel and make gruel till I pass the word to
stop." Forgetting her bonnet, and tying the ends of her
shawl behind her, Christie caught up a bottle of brandy
and a canteen of water, and ran on deck. There a sight
to daunt most any woman, met her eyes; for all about
her, so thick that she could hardly step without treading
on them, lay the sad wrecks of men:
some moaning for help; some silent, with set, white
faces turned up to the gray sky; all shelterless from the
cold wind that blew, and the fog rising fiom the river.
Surgeons and nurses were doing their best; but the boat
was loaded, and greater suffering reigned below. "
Heaven help us all!" sighed Christie, and then she fell
to work. Bottle and canteen were both nearly empty by
the time she came to the end of the long line, where lay
a silent figure with a hidden face. "Poor fellow, is he
dead?" she said, kneeling down to lift a corner of the
blanket lent by a neighbor. A familiar face looked up at
her, and a well remembered voice said courteously, but
feebly:
"Thanks, not yet. Excuse my left hand. I'm very glad to
see you." " Mr. Fletcher, can it be you!" she cried,
looking at him with pitiful amazement. Well she might
ask, for any thing more unlike his former self can
hardly be imagined. Unshaven, haggard, and begrimed
with powder, mud to the knees, coat half on, and, worst
of all, the right arm gone, there lay the "piece of
elegance " she had known, and answered with a smile
she never saw before:
"All that's left of me, and very much at your service. I
must apologize for the dirt, but I've laid in a mudpuddle for two days; and, though it was much easier
than a board, it doesn't improve one's appearance."
"What can I do for you? Where can I put you? I can't
bear to see you here!" said Christie, much afflicted by
the spectacle before her.
" Why not? we are all alike when it comes to this pass. I
shall do very well if I might trouble you for a draught of
water." She poured her last drop into his parched mouth
and hurried off for more. She was detained by the way,
and, when she returned, fancied he was asleep, but soon
discovered that he had fainted quietly away, utterly
spent with two days of hunger, suffering, and exposure.
He was himself again directly, and lay contentedly
looking up at her as she fed him with hot soup, longing
to talk, but refusing to listen to a word till he was
refreshed. " That's very nice," he said gratefully, as he
finished, adding with a pathetic sort. of gayety, as he
groped about with his one hand:
" I don't expect napkins, but I should like a
handkerchief. They took my coat off when they did my
arm, and the gentleman who kindly lent me this doesn't
seem to have possessed such an article." Christie wiped
his lips with the clean towel at her side, and smiled as
she did it, at the idea of Mr. Fletcher's praising burnt
soup, and her feeding him like a baby out of a tin cup. "
I think it would comfort you if I washed your face:
can you bear to have it done?" she asked. "If you can
bear to do it," he answered, with an apologetic look,
evidently troubled at receiving such services from her.
Yet as her hands moved gently about his face, he shut
his eyes, and there was a little quiver of the lips now
and then, as if he was remembering a time when he had
hoped to have her near him in a tenderer capacity than
that of nurse. She guessed the thought, and tried to
banish it by saying cheerfully as she finished:
" There, you look more like yourself after that. Now the
hands." "Fortunately for you, there is but one," and he
rather reluctantly surrendered a very dirty member.
"Forgive me, I forgot. It is a brave hand, and I am proud
to wash it! " " How do you know that?" he asked,
surprised at her little burst of enthusiasm, for as she
spoke she pressed the grimy hand in both her own. "
While I was recovering you from your faint, that man
over there informed me that you were his Colonel; that
you 'fit like a tiger,' and when your right arm was
disabled, you took your sword in the left and cheered
them on as if you were bound to beat the whole rebel
army."' " That's Drake's story," and Mr. Fletcher tried to
give the old shrug, but gave an irrepressible groan
instead, then endeavored to cover it, by saying in a
careless tone, "I thought I might get a little excitement
out of it, so I went soldiering like all the rest of you. I'm
not good for much, but I can lead the way for the brave
fellows who do the work. Officers make good targets,
and a rebel bullet would cause no sorrow in taking me
out of the world." "Don't say that! I should grieve
sincerely; and yet I'm very glad you came, for it will
always be a satisfaction to you in spite of your great
loss." " There are greater losses than right arms,"
muttered Mr. Fletcher gloomily, then checked himself,
and added with a pleasant change in voice and face, as
he glanced at the wedding-ring she wore; "This is not
exactly the place for congratulations, but I can't help
offering mine; for if I'm not mistaken your left hand
also has grown doubly precious since we met? "
Christie had been wondering if he knew, and was much
relieved to find he took it so well. Her face said more
than her words, as she answered briefly:
"6 Thank you. Yes, we were married the day David left,
and have both been in the ranks ever since." " Not
wounded yet? your husband, I mean," he said, getting
over the hard words bravely. Three times, but not badly.
I think a special angel stands before him with a shield;"
and Christie smiled as she spoke.' "I think a special
angel stands behind him with prayers that avail much,"
added Mr. Fletcher, looking up at her with an
expression of reverence that touched her heart. "Now I
must go to my work, and you to sleep:
you need all the rest you can get before you have to
knock about in the ambulances again," she said,
marking the feverish color in his face, and knowing
well that excitement was his only strength. " I -- ow can
I sleep in such an Inferno as this?"
" Try, you are so weak, you'll soon drop off;" and,
laying the cool tips of her fingers on his eyelids, she
kept them shut till he yielded with a long sigh of
mingled weariness and pleasure, and was asleep before
he knew it. When he woke it was late at night; but little
of night's blessed rest was known on board that boat
laden with a freight of suffering. Cries still came up
from below, and moans of pain still sounded from the
deck, where shadowy figures with lanterns went to and
fro among the beds that in the darkness looked like
graves. Weak with pain and fever, the poor man gazed
about him half bewildered, and, conscious only of one
desire, feebly called " Christie! " " Here I am;" and the
dull light of a lantern showed him her face very worn
and tired, but full of friendliest compassion. " What can
I do for you?" she asked, as he clutched her gown, and
peered up at her with mingled doubt and satisfaction in
his haggard eyes. "Just speak to me; let me touch you:
I thought it was a dream; thank God it isn't. How much
longer will this last?" he added, falling back on the
softest pillows she could find for him. "We shall soon
land now; I believe there is an officers' hospital in the
town, and you will be quite comfortable there." " I want
to go to your hospital:
where is it?" " I have none; and, unless the old hotel is
ready, I shall stay on the wharf with the boys until it is."
"Then I shall stay also. Don't send me away, Christie:
I shall not be a trouble long; surely David will let you
help me die?" and poor Fletcher stretched his one hand
imploringly to her in the first terror of the delirium that
was coming on. "I will not leave you:
I'll take care of you, and no one can forbid it. Drink
this, Philip, and trust to Christie.'" He obeyed like a
child, and soon fell again into a troubled sleep while
she sat by him thinking about David. The old hotel was
ready; but by the time he got there Mr. Fletcher was
past caring where he went, and for a week was too ill to
know any thing, except that Christie nursed him. Then
he turned the corner and began to recover. She wanted
him to go into more comfortable quarters; but he would
not stir as long as she remained; so she put him in a
little room by himself, got a man to wait on him, and
gave him as much of her care and time as, she could
spare from her many duties. He was not an agreeable
patient, I regret to say; he tried to bear his woes
heroically, but did not succeed very well, not being
used to any exertion of that sort; and, though in
Christie's presence he did his best, his man confided to
her that the Colonel was " as fractious as a teething
baby, and the domineeringest party he ever missed."
Some of Mr. Fletcher's attempts were comical, and
some pathetic, for though the sacred circle of her
wedding-ring was an effectual barrier against a look or
word of love, Christie knew that the old affection was
not dead, and it showed itself in his desire to win her
respect by all sorts of small sacrifices and efforts at
self-control. He would not use many of the comforts
sent him, but insisted on wearing an army dressinggown, and slippers that cost him a secret pang every
time his eye was affronted by their ugliness. Always
after an angry scene with his servant, he would be
found going round among the men bestowing little
luxuries and kind words; not condescendingly, but
humbly, as if it was an atonement for his own
shortcomings, and a tribute due to the brave fellows
who bore their pains with a fortitude he could not
imitate.
"Poor Philip, he tries so hard I must pity, not despise
him; for he was never taught the manly virtues that
make David what he is," thought Christie, as she went
to him one day with an unusually happy heart. She
found him sitting with a newly opened package before
him, and a gloomy look upon his face. " See what
rubbish one of my men has sent me, thinking I might
value it," he said, pointing to a broken sword-hilt and
offering her a badly written letter. She read it, and was
touched by its affectionate respect and manly
sympathy; for the good fellow had been one of those
who saved the Colonel when he fell, and had kept the
broken sword as a trophy of his bravery, "thinking it
might be precious in the eyes of them that loved him." "
Poor Burny might have spared himself the trouble, for
I've no one to give it to, and in my eyes it's nothing but
a bit of old metal," said Fletcher, pushing the parcel
away with a half-irritated, half-melancholy look. " Give
it to me as a parting keepsake. I have a fine collection
of relics of the brave men I have known; and this shall
have a high place in my museum when I go home," said
Christie, taking up the "bit of old metal" with more
interest than she had ever felt in the brightest blade.
"Parting keepsake! are you going away?" asked
Fletcher, catching at the words in anxious haste, yet
looking pleased at her desire to keep the relic. "Yes, I'm
ordered to report in Washington, and start to-morrow."
" Then I'll go as escort. The doctor has been wanting
me to leave for a week, and now I've no desire to stay,"
he said eagerly. But Christie shook her head, and began
to fold up paper and string with nervous industry as she
answered:
"I am not going directly to Washington:
I have a week's furlough first." " And what is to become
of me? " asked Mr. Fletcher, as fietfully as a sick child;
for he knew where her short holiday would be passed,
and his temper got the upperhand for a minute. " You
should go home and be comfortably nursed:
you'll need care for some time; and your friends will be
glad of a chance to give it I've no doubt." " I have no
home, as you know; and I don't believe I've got a friend
in the world who cares whether I live or die." " This
looks as if you were mistaken;" and Christie glanced
about the little room, which was full of comforts and
luxuries accumulated during his stay. His face changed
instantly, and he answered with the honest look and
tone never given to any one but her. "I beg your pardon:
I'm an ungrateful brute. But you see I'd just made up
my mind to do something worth the doing, and now it is
made impossible in a way that renders it hard to bear.
You are very patient with me, and I owe my life to your
care:
I never can thank you for it; but I will take myself out
of your way as soon as I can, and leave you free to
enjoy your happy holiday. Heaven knows you have
earned it!"
He said those last words so heartily that all the
bitterness went out of his voice, and Christie found it
easy to reply with a cordial smile:
"I shall stay and see you comfortably off before I go
myself. As for thanks and reward I have had both; for
you have done something worth the doing, and you give
me this." She took up the broken blade as she spoke,
and carried it away, looking proud of her new trophy.
Fletcher left next day, saying, while he pressed her
hand as warmly as if the vigor of two had gone into his
one:
" You will let me come and see you by and by when
you too get your discharge:
won't you?" "So gladly that you shall never again say
you have no home. But you must take care of yourself,
or you will get the long discharge, and we can't spare
you yet," she answered warmly. "No danger of that:
the worthless ones are too often left to cumber the
earth; it is the precious ones who are taken," he said,
thinking of her as he looked into her tired face, and
remembered all she had done for him. Christie shivered
involuntarily at those ominous words, but only said,
"Good-by, Philip," as he went feebly away, leaning on
his servant's arm, while all the men touched their caps
and wished the Colonel a pleasant journey.
Chapter XVIII
Sunrise.
THREE months later the war seemed drawing toward
an end, and Christie was dreaming happy dreams of
home and rest with David, when, as she sat one day
writing a letter full of good news to the wife of a
patient, a telegram was handed to her, and tearing it
open she read:
"Captain Sterling dangerously wounded. Tell his wife
to come at once. E. WILKINS." " No bad news I hope,
ma'am? " said the young fellow anxiously, as his halfwritten letter fluttered to the ground, and Christie sat
looking at that fateful strip of paper with all the strength
and color stricken out of her face by the fear that fell
upon her. " It might be worse. They told me he was
dying once, and when I got to him he met me at the
door. I'll hope for the best now as I did then, but I never
felt like this before," and she hid her face as if daunted
by ominous forebodings too strong to be controlled. In
a moment she was up and doing as calm and steady as
if her heart was not torn by an anxiety too keen for
words. By the time the news had flown through the
house, she was ready; and, coming down with no
luggage but a basket of comforts on her arm, she found
the hall full of wan and crippled creatures gathered
there to see her off, for no nurse in the hospital was
more beloved than Mrs. Sterling. Many eyes followed
her, -- many lips blessed her, many hands were
outstretched for a sympathetic grasp:
andl, as the ambulance went clattering away, many
hearts echoed the words of one grateful ghost of a man,
" The Lord go with her and stand by her as she's stood
by us." It was not a long journey that lay before her; but
to Christie it seemed interminable, for all the way one
unanswerable question haunted her, " Surely God will
not be so cruel as to take David now when he has done
his part so well and the reward is so near." It was dark
when she arrived at the appointed spot; but Elisha
Wilkins was there to receive her, and to her first
breathless question, "How is David? " answered
briskly:
" Asleep and doin' well, ma'am. At least I should say so,
and I peeked at him the last thing before I started."
"Where is he?"' In the little hospital over yonder. Camp
warn't no place for him, and I fetched him here as the
nighest, and the best thing I could do for him." " How is
he wounded?" "Shot in the shoulder, side, and arm." "
Dangerously you said?" "c No, ma'am, that warn't and
ain't my opinion. The sergeant sent that telegram, and I
think he done wrong.
The Captain is hit pretty bad; but it ain't by no means
desperate accordin' to my way of thinkin'," replied the
hopeful Wilkins, who seemed mercifully gifted with an
unusual flow of language. " Thank heaven! Now go on
and tell me all about it as fast as you can," commanded
Christie, walking along the rough road so rapidly that
Private Wilkins would have been distressed both in
wind and limb if discipline and hardship had not done
much for him. "Well, you see we've been skirmishin'
round here for a week, for the woods are full of rebs
waitin' to surprise some commissary stores that's
expected along. Contrabands is always comin' into
camp, and we do the best we can for the poor devils,
and send 'em along where they'll be safe. Yesterday
four women and a boy come:
about as desperate a lot as I ever see; for they'd been
two days and a night in the big swamp, wadin' up to
their waists in mud and water, with nothin' to eat, and
babies on their backs all the way. Every woman had a
child, one dead, but she'd fetched it, 6 so it might be
buried free,' the poor soul said." Mr. Wilkins stopped an
instant as if for breath, but the thought of his own "little
chaps" filled his heart with pity for that bereaved
mother; and he understood now why decent men were
willing to be shot and starved for " the confounded
niggers," as he once called them. " Go on," said
Christie, and he made haste to tell the little story that
was so full of intense interest to his listener. "I never
saw the Captain so worked up as he was by the sight of
them wretched women. He fed and warmed 'em,
comforted their poor scared souls, give what clothes we
could find, buried the dead baby with his own hands,
and nussed the other little creeters as if they were his
own. It warn't safe to keep 'em more'n a day, so when
night come the Captain got 'em off down the river as
quiet as he could. Me and another man helped him, for
he wouldn't trust no one but himself to boss the job. A
boat was ready, -- blest if I know how he got it, -- and
about midnight we led them women down to it. The
boy was a strong lad, and any of'em could help row, for
the current would take 'em along rapid. This way,
ma'am; be we goin' too fast for you?" "Not fast enough.
Finish quick." "We got down the bank all right, the
Captain standing in the little path that led to the river to
keep guard; while Bates held the boat stiddy and I put
the women in. Things was goin' lovely when the poor
gal who'd lost her baby must needs jump out and run up
to thank the Captain agin for all he'd done for her.
Some of them sly rascals was watchin' the river:
they see her, heard Bates call out,' Come back, wench;
come back!' and they fired. She did come back like a
shot, and we give that boat a push that sent it into the
middle of the stream. Then we run along below the
bank, and come out further down to draw off the rebs.
Some followed us and we give it to 'em handsome. But
some warn't deceived, and we heard'em firm' away at
the Captain; so we got back to him as fast as we could,
but it warn't soon enough. -Take my arm, Mis' Sterlin':
it's kinder rough here." "And you found him? " -- "Lyin'
right acrost the path with two dead men in front of him;
for he'd kep 'em off like a lion till the firn' brought up a
lot of our fellers and the rebs skedaddled. I thought he
was dead, for by the starlight I see he was bleedin'
awful, -- hold on, my dear, hold on to me, -- he warn't,
thank God, and looked up at me and sez, sez he,' Are
they safe?'' They be, Captain,' sez I. 'Then it's all right,'
sez he, smilin' in that bright way of his, and then
dropped off as quiet as a lamb. We got him back to
camp double quick, and when the surgeon see them
three wounds he shook his head, and I mistrusted that it
warn't no joke. So when the Captain come to I asked
him what I could do or git for him, and he answered in
a whisper,' My wife.'" For an instant Christie did " hold
on" to Mr. Wilkins's arm, for those two words seemed
to take all her strength away. Then the thought that
David was waiting for her strung her nerves and gave
her courage to bear any thing. "Is he here?" she asked
of her guide a moment later, as he stopped before a
large, half-ruined house, through whose windows dim
lights and figures were seen moving to and fro. "Yes,
ma'am; we've made a hospital of this; the Captain's got
the best room'in it, and now he's got the best nuss that's
goin' anywheres. Won't you have a drop of something
jest as a stand-by before you see him?" "Nothing; take
me to him at once." "Here we be then. Still sleepin':
that looks well." Mr. Wilkins softly led the way down a
long hall, opened a door, and after one look fell back
and saluted as the Captain's wife passed in. A surgeon
was bending over the low bed, and when a hoarse voice
at his elbow asked:
" Ow is he?" The doctor answered without looking up:
"Done for: this shot through the lungs will finish him
before morning I'm afraid." "Then leave him to me:
I am his wife," said the voice, clear and sharp now with
the anguish those hard words had brought. "Good God,
why did no one tell me! My dear lady, I thought you
were a nurse!" cried the poor surgeon rent with remorse
for what now seemed the brutal frankness of his
answer, as he saw the white face of the woman at his
side, with a look in her eyes harder to see than the
bitterest tears that ever fell. " I am a nurse. If you can
do nothing, please go and leave him to me the little
while he has to live." Without a word the surgeon
vanished, and Christie was alone with David. The
instant she saw him she felt that there was no hope, for
she had seen too many faces wear the look his wore to
be deceived even by her love. Lying with closed eyes
already sunken by keen suffering, hair damp with the
cold dew on his forehead, a scarlet spot on either cheek,
gray lines about the mouth, and pale lips parted by the
painful breaths that came in heavy gasps or fluttered
fitfully. This was what Christie saw, and after that long
look she knew the truth, and sunk down beside the bed,
crying with an exceeding bitter cry:
" 0 David, 0 my husband, must I give you up so soon? "
I-is eyes opened then, and he turned his cheek to hers,
whispering with a look that tried to be a smile, but
ended in a sigh of satisfaction:
"I I knew you'd come;" then, as a tearless sob shook her
from head to foot, he added steadily, though each
breath cost a pang, " Yes, dear, I must go first, but it
won't be hard with you to help me do it bravely." In that
supremely bitter moment there returned to Christie's
memory certain words of the marriage service that had
seemed so beautiful when she took part in it:
"For better for worse, till death us do part." She had
known the better, so short, so sweet! This was the
worse, and till death came she must keep faithfully the
promise made with such a happy heart. The thought
brought with it unexpected strength, and gave her
courage to crush down her grief, seal up her tears, and
show a brave and tender face as she took that feeble
hand in hers ready to help her husband die. He saw and
thanked her for the effort, felt the sustaining power of a
true wife's heart, and seemed to have no other care,
since she was by him steadfast to the end. He lay
looking at her with such serene and happy eyes that she
would not let a tear, a murmur, mar his peace; and for a
little while she felt as if she had gone out of this
turbulent world into a heavenly one, where love reigned
supreme. But such hours are as brief as beautiful, and at
midnight mortal suffering proved that immortal joy had
not yet begun. Christie had sat by many death-beds, but
never one like this; for, through all the bitter pangs that
tried his flesh, David's soul remained patient and
strong, upheld by the faith that conquers pain and
makes even Death a friend. In the quiet time that went
before, he had told his last wishes, given his last
messages of love, and now had but one desire, -- to go
soon that Christie might be spared the trial of. seeing
suffering she could neither lighten nor share. "Go and
rest, dear; go and rest," he whispered more than once.
"Let Wilkins come:
this is too much for you. I thought it would be easier,
but I am so strong life fights for me inch by inch." But
Christie would not go, and for her sake David made
haste to die. Hour after hour the tide ebbed fast, hour
after hour the man's patient soul sat waiting for release,
and hour after hour the woman's passionate heart clung
to the love that seemed drifting away leaving her alone
upon the shore. Once or twice she could not bear it, and
cried out in her despair:
"No, it is not just that you should suffer this for a
creature whose whole life is not worth a day of your
brave, useful, precious one! Why did you pay such a
price for that girl's liberty?" she said, as the thought of
her own wrecked future fell upon her dark and heavy.
"Because I owed it; -- she suffered more than this
seeing her baby die; -- I thought of you in her place,
and I could not help doing it." The broken answer, the
reproachful look, wrung Christie's heart, and she was
silent:
for, in all the knightly tales she loved so well, what Sir
Galahad had rescued a more wretched, wronged, and
helpless woman than the poor soul whose dead baby
David buried tenderly before he bought the mother's
freedom with his life? Only one regret escaped him as
the end drew very near, and mortal weakness brought
relief from mortal pain. The first red streaks of dawn
shone in the east, and his dim eyes brightened at the
sight; "Such a beautiful world!" he whispered with the
ghost of a smile, " and so much good work to do in it, I
wish I could stay and help a little longer," he added,
while the shadow deepened on his face. But soon he
said, trying to press Christie's hand, still holding his:
You will do my part, and do it better than I could. Don't
mourn, dear heart, but work; and by and by you will be
comforted." "I will try; but I think I shall soon follow
you, and need no comfort here," answered Christie,
already finding consolation in the thought. "What is it,
David?" she asked a little later, as she saw his eyes turn
wistfully toward the window where the rosy glow was
slowly creeping up the sky. " I want to see the sun rise;that used to be our happy time; -turn my face toward
the light, Christie, and we'll wait for it together." An
hour later when the first pale ray crept in at the low
window, two faces lay upon the pillow; one full of the
despairing grief for which there seems no balm; the
other with lips and eyes of solemn peace, and that
mysterious expression, lovelier than any smile, which
death leaves as a tender token that all is well with the
new-born soul. To Christie that was the darkest hour of
the dawn, but for David sunrise had already come.
Chapter XIX
Little Heart S-Ease.
WHEN it was all over, the long journey home, the
quiet funeral, the first sad excitement, then came the
bitter moment when life says to the bereaved:
" Take up your burden and go on alone." Christie's had
been the still, tearless grief hardest to bear, most
impossible to comfort; and, while Mrs. Sterling bore
her loss with the sweet patience of a pious heart, and
Letty mourned her brother with the tender sorrow that
finds relief in natural ways, the widow sat among them
as tranquil, colorless, and mute, as if her soul had
followed David, leaving the shadow of her former self
behind. " He will not come to me, but I shall go to
him," seemed to be the thought that sustained her, and
those who loved her said despairingly to one another:'
Her heart is broken:
she will not linger long." But one woman wise in her
own motherliness always answered hopefully:
"Don't you be troubled; Nater knows what's good for
us, and works in her own way. Hearts like this don't
break, and sorrer only makes 'em stronger. You mark
my words:
the blessed baby that's a comin' in the summer will
work a merrycle, and you'll see this poor dear a happy
woman yet."
Few believed in the prophecy; but Mrs. Wilkins stoutly
repeated it and watched over Christie like a mother;
often trudging up the lane in spite of wind or weather to
bring some dainty mess, some remarkable puzzle in red
or yellow calico to be used as a pattern for the little
garments the three women sewed with such tender
interest, consecrated with such tender tears; or news of
the war fresh from Lisha who " was goin' to see it
through ef he come home without a leg to stand on." A
cheery, hopeful, wholesome influence she brought with
her, and all the house seemed to brighten as she sat
there freeing her mind upon every subject that came up,
from the delicate little shirts Mrs. Sterling knit in spite
of failing eyesight, to the fall of Richmond, which, the
prophetic spirit being strong within her, Mrs. Wilkins
foretold with sibylline precision. She alone could win a
faint smile from Christie with some odd saying, some
shrewd opinion, and she alone brought tears to the
melancholy eyes that sorely needed such healing dew;
for she carried little Adelaide, and without a word put
her into Christie's arms, there to cling and smile and
babble till she had soothed the bitter pain and hunger of
a suffering heart. She and Mr. Power held Christie up
through that hard time, ministering to soul and body
with their hope and faith till life grew possible again,
and from the dust of a great affliction rose the
sustaining power she had sought so long. As spring
came on, and victory after victory proclaimed that the
war was drawing to an end, Christie's sad resignation
was broken by gusts of grief so stormy, so inconsolable,
that those about her trembled for her life. It was so hard
to see the regiments come home proudly bearing the
torn battle-flags, weary, wounded, but victorious, to be
rapturously welcomed, thanked, and honored by the
grateful country they had served so well; to see all this
and think of David in his grave unknown, unrewarded,
and forgotten by all but a faithful few.
"I used to dream of a time like this, to hope and plan for
it, and cheer myself with the assurance that, after all our
hard work, our long separation, and the dangers we had
faced, David would get some honor, receive some
reward, at least be kept for me to love and serve and
live with for a little while. But these men who have
merely saved a banner, led a charge, or lost an arm, get
all the glory, while he gave his life so nobly; yet few
know it, no one thanked him, and I am left desolate
when so many useless ones might have been taken in
his place. Oh, it is not just! I cannot forgive God for
robbing him of all his honors, and me of all my
happiness." So lamented Christie with the rebellious
protest of a strong nature learning submission through
the stern discipline of grief. In vain Mr. Power told her
that David had received a better reward than any human
hand could give him, in the gratitude of many women,
the respect of many men. That to do bravely the daily
duties of an upright life was more heroic in God's sight,
than to achieve in an enthusiastic moment a single deed
that won the world's applause; and that the seeming
incompleteness of his life was beautifully rounded by
the act that caused his death, although no eulogy
recorded it, no song embalmed it, and few knew it but
those he saved, those he loved, and the Great
Commander who promoted him to the higher rank he
had won. Christie could not be content with this
invisible, intangible recompense for her hero:
she wanted to see, to know beyond a doubt, that justice
had been done; and beat herself against the barrier that
baffles bereaved humanity till impatient despair was
wearied out, and passionate heart gave up the struggle.
Then, when no help seemed possible, she found it
where she least expected it, in herself. Searching for
religion, she had found love:
now seeking to follow love she found religion. The
desire for it had never left her, and, while serving
others, she was earning this reward; for when her life
seemed to lie in ashes, from their midst, this slender
spire of flame, purifying while it burned, rose trembling
toward heaven; showing her how great sacrifices turn to
greater compensations; giving her light, warmth, and
consolation, and teaching her the lesson all must learn.
God was very patient with her, sending much help, and
letting her climb up to Him by all the tender ways in
which aspiring souls can lead unhappy hearts. David's
room had been her refuge when those dark hours came,
and sitting there one day trying to understand the great
mystery that parted her from David, she seemed to
receive an answer to her many prayers for some sign
that death had not estranged them. The house was very
still, the window open, and a soft south wind was
wandering through the room with hints of May-flowers
on its wings. Suddenly a breath of music startled her, so
airy, sweet, and short-lived that no human voice or
hand could have produced it. Again and again it came, a
fitful and melodious- sigh, that to one made
superstitious by much sorrow, seemed like a spirit's
voice delivering some message from another world.
Christie looked and listened with hushed breath and
expectant heart, believing that some special answer was
to be given her. But in a moment she saw it was no
supernatural sound, only the south wind whispering in
David's flute that hung beside the window.
Disappointment came first, then warm over her sore
heart flowed the tender recollection that she used to call
the old flute "David's voice," for into it he poured the
joy and sorrow, unrest and pain, he told no living soul.
How often it had been her lullaby, before she learned to
read its language; how gaily it had piped for others;
how plaintively it had sung for him, alone and in the
night; and now how full of pathetic music was that
hymn of consolation fitfully whispered by the wind's
soft breath. Ah, yes! this was a better answer than any
supernatural voice could have given her; a more helpful
sign than any phantom face or hand; a surer
confirmation of her hope than subtle argument or sacred
promise: for it brought back the memory of the living,
loving man so vividly, so tenderly, that Christie felt as
if the barrier was down, and welcomed a new sense of
David's nearness with the softest tears that had flowed
since she closed the serene eyes whose last look had
been for her. After that hour she spent the long spring
days lying on the old couch in his room, reading his
books, thinking of his love and life, and listening to "
David's voice." She always heard it now, whether the
wind touched the flute with airy fingers or it hung mute;
and it sung to her songs of patience, hope, and cheer,
till a mysterious peace came to her, and she discovered
in herself the strength she had asked, yet never thought
to find. Under the snow, herbs of grace had been
growing silently; and, when the heavy rains had melted
all the frost away, they sprung up to blossom
beautifully in the sun that shines for every spire of
grass, and makes it perfect in its time and place. Mrs.
WVilkins was right; for one June morning, when she
laid " that blessed baby" in its mother's arms, Christie's
first words were:
"Don't let me die: I must live for baby now," and
gathered David's little daughter to her breast, as if the
soft touch of the fumbling hands had healed every
wound and brightened all the world. "I told you so; God
bless 'em both!" and Mrs. Wilkins retired precipitately
to the hall, where she sat down upon the stairs and cried
most comfortable tears; for her maternal heart was full
of a thanksgiving too deep for words. A sweet, secluded
time to Christie, as she brooded over her little treasure
and forgot there was a world outside. A fond and
jealous mother, but a very happy one, for after the
bitterest came the tenderest experience of her life. She
felt its sacredness, its beauty, and its high
responsibilities; accepted them prayerfully, and found
unspeakable delight in fitting herself to bear them
worthily, always remembering that she had a double
duty to perform toward the fatherless little creature
given to her care. It is hardly necessary to mention the
changes one small individual made in that feminine
household. The purring and clucking that went on; the
panics over a pin-prick; the consultations over a pellet
of chamomilla; the raptures at the dawn of a first smile;
the solemn prophecies of future beauty, wit, and
wisdom in the bud of a woman; the general adoration of
the entire family at the wicker shrine wherein lay the
idol, a mass of flannel and cambric with a bald head at
one end, and a pair of microscopic blue socks at the
other. Mysterious little porringers sat unreproved upon
the parlor fire, small garments aired at every window,
lights burned at unholy hours, and three agitated
nightcaps congregated at the faintest chirp of the
restless bird in the maternal nest. Of course Grandma
grew young again, and produced nursery reminiscences
on every occasion; Aunt Letty trotted day and night to
gratify the imaginary wants of the idol, and Christie
was so entirely absorbed that the whole South might
have been swallowed up by an earthquake without
causing her as much consternation as the appearance of
a slight rash upon the baby. No flower in David's
garden throve like his little June rose, for no wind was
allowed to visit her too roughly; and when rain fell
without, she took her daily airing in the green-house,
where from her mother's arms she soon regarded the
gay sight with such sprightly satisfaction that she
seemed a little flower herself dancing on its stem. She
was named Ruth for grandma, but Christie always
called her " Little Heart's-ease," or "Pansy," and those
who smiled at first at the mother's fancy, came in time
to see that there was an unusual fitness in the name. All
the bitterness seemed taken out of Christie's sorrow by
the soft magic of the child:
there was so much to live for now she spoke no more of
dying; and, holding that little hand in hers, it grew
easier to go on along the way that led to David. A
prouder mother never lived; and, as baby waxed in
beauty and in strength, Christie longed for all the world
to see her. A sweet, peculiar, little face she had, sunny
and fair; but, under the broad forehead where the bright
hair fell as David's used to do, there shone a pair of
dark and solemn eyes, so large, so deep, and often so
unchildlike, that her mother wondered where she got
them. Even when she smiled the shadow lingered in
these eyes, and when she wept they filled and
overflowed with great, quiet tears like flowers too full
of dew. Christie often said remorsefully:
"My little Pansy! I put my own sorrow into your baby
soul, and now it looks back at me with this strange
wistfulness, and these great drops are the unsubmissive
tears I locked up in my heart because I would not be
grateful for the good gift God gave me, even while he
took that other one away. O Baby, forgive your mother;
and don't let her find that she has given you clouds
instead of sunshine." This fear helped Christie to keep
her own face cheerful, her own heart tranquil, her own
life as sunny, healthful, and hopeful as she wished her
child's to be. For this reason she took garden and greenhouse into her own hands when Bennet gave them up,
and, with a stout lad to help her, did well this part of the
work that David bequeathed to her. It was a pretty sight
to see the mother with her year-old daughter out among
the fresh, green things:
the little golden head bobbing here and there like a stray
sunbeam; the baby voice telling sweet, unintelligible
stories to bird and bee and butterfly; or the small
creature fast asleep in a basket under a rose-bush,
swinging in a hammock from a tree, or in Bran's
keeping, rosy, vigorous, and sweet with sun and air, and
the wholesome influence of a wise and tender love.
While Christie worked she planned her daughter's
future, as mothers will, and had but one care concerning
it. She did not fear poverty, but the thought of being
straitened for the means of educating little Ruth
afflicted her. She meant to teach her to labor heartily
and see no degradation in it, but she could not bear to
feel that her child should be denied the harmless
pleasures that make youth sweet, the opportunities that
educate, the society that ripens character and gives a
rank which money cannot buy. A little sum to put away
for Baby, safe from all risk, ready to draw from as each
need came, and sacredly devoted to this end, was now
Christie's sole ambition. With this purpose at her heart,
she watched her fruit and nursed her flowers; found no
task too hard, no sun too hot, no weed too
unconquerable; and soon the garden David planted
when his life seemed barren, yielded lovely harvests to
swell his little daughter's portion. One day Christie
received a letter from Uncle Enos expressing a wish to
see her if she cared to come so far and " stop a spell." It
both surprised and pleased her, and she resolved to go,
glad that the old man remembered her, and proud to
show him the great success of her life, as she
considered Baby. So she went, was hospitably received
by the ancient cousin five times removed who kept
house, and greeted with as much cordiality as Uncle
Enos ever showed to any one. He looked askance at
Baby, as if he had not bargained for the honor of her
presence; but he said nothing, and Christie wisely
refrained from mentioning that Ruth was the most
remarkable child ever born. She soon felt at home, and
went about the old house visiting familiar nooks with
the bitter, sweet satisfaction of such returns. It was sad
to miss Aunt Betsey in the big kitchen, strange to see
Uncle Enos sit all day in his arm-chair too helpless now
to plod about the farm and carry terror to the souls of
those who served him. He was still a crabbed, gruff, old
man; but the narrow, hard, old heart was a little softer
than it used to be; and he sometimes betrayed the
longing for his kindred that the aged often feel when
infirmity makes them desire tenderer props-than any
they can hire. Christie saw this wish, and tried to gratify
it with a dutiful affection which could not fail to win its
way. Baby unconsciously lent a hand, for Uncle Enos
could not long withstand the sweet enticements of this
little kinswoman. He did not own the conquest in
words, but was seen to cuddle his small captivator in
private; allowed all sorts of liberties with his spectacles,
his pockets, and bald pate; and never seemed more
comfortable than when she confiscated his newspaper,
and sitting on his knee read it to him in a pretty
language of her own. "She's a good little gal; looks
consid'able like you; but you warn't never such a quiet
puss as she is," he said one day, as the child was
toddling about the room with an old doll of her mother's
lately disinterred from its tomb in the garret. " She is
like her father in that. But I get quieter as I grow old,
uncle," answered Christie, who sat sewing near him.
"You be growing old, that's a fact; but somehow it's
kind of becomin'. I never thought you'd be so much of a
lady, and look so well after all you've ben through,"
added Uncle Enos, vainly trying to discover what made
Christie's manners so agreeable in spite of her plain
dress, and her face so pleasant in spite of the gray hair
at her temples and the lines about her mouth. It grew
still pleasanter to see as she smiled and looked up at
him with the soft yet bright expression that always
made him think of her mother. "I'm glad you don't
consider me an entire failure, uncle. You know you
predicted it. But though I have gone through a good
deal, I don't regret my attempt, and when I look at
Pansy I feel as if I'd made a grand success." "You
haven't made much money, I guess. If you don't mind
tellin', what have you got to live on? asked the old man,
unwilling to acknowledge any life a success, if dollars
and cents were left out of it. " Only David's pension and
what I can make by my garden."
"The old lady has to have some on't, don't she?" She
has a little money of her own; but I see that she and
Letty have two-thirds of all I make." "' That ain't a fair
bargain if you do all the work." " Ah, but we don't make
bargains, sir:
we work for one another and share every thing
together." 6" So like women!" grumbled Uncle Enos,
longing to see that " the property was fixed up square."
" How are you goin' to eddicate the little gal? I s'pose
you think as much of culter and so on as ever you did,"
he presently added with a gruff laugh. "More,"
answered Christie, smiling too, as she remembered the
old quarrels. "I shall earn the money, sir. If the garden
fails I can teach, nurse, sew, write, cook even, for I've
half a dozen useful accomplishments at my fingers'
ends, thanks to the education you and dear Aunt Betsey
gave me, and I may have to use them all for Pansy's
sake." Pleased by the compliment, yet a little
conscience-stricken at the small share he deserved of it,
Uncle Enos sat rubbing up his glasses a minute, before
he led to the subject he had in his mind. "Ef you fall
sick or die, what then?" " I've thought of that," and
Christie caught up the child as if her love could keep
even death at bay. But Pansy soon struggled down
again, for the dirty-faced doll was taking a walk and
could not be detained. " If I am taken from her, then my
little girl must do as her mother did. God has orphans in
His special care, and He won't forget her I am sure."
Uncle Enos had a coughing spell just then; and, when
he got over it, he said with an effort, for even to talk of
giving away his substance cost him a pang:
"I'm gettin' into years now, and it's about time I fixed up
matters in case I'm took suddin'. I always meant to give
you a little suthing, but as you didn't ask for't, I took
good care on't, and it ain't none the worse for waitin' a
spell. I jest speak on't, so you needn't be anxious about
the little gal. It ain't much, but it will make things easy I
reckon."
" You are very kind, uncle; and I am more grateful than
I can tell. I don't want a penny for myself, but I should
love to know that my daughter was to have an easier
life than mine." "I s'pose you thought of that when you
come so quick?" said the old man, with a suspicious
look, that made Christie's eyes kindle as they used to
years ago, but she answered honestly:
" I did think of it and hope it, yet I should have come
quicker if you had been in the poor-house." Neither
spoke for a minute; for, in spite of generosity and
gratitude, the two natures struck fire when they met as
inevitably as flint and steel. ("What's your opinion of
missionaries," asked Uncle Enos, after a spell of
meditation. If I had any money to leave them, I should
bequeath it to those who help the heathen here at home,
and should let the innocent Feejee Islanders worship
their idols a little longer in benighted peace," answered
Christie, in her usual decided way. " That's my idee
exactly; but it's uncommon hard to settle which of them
that stays at home you'll trust your money to. You see
Betsey was always pesterin' me to give to charity
things; but I told her it was better to save up and give it
in a handsome lump that looked well, and was a credit
to you. When she was dyin' she reminded me on't, and I
promised I'd do suthing before I follered. I've been
turnin' on't over in my mind for a number of months,
and I don't seem to find anything that's jest right.
You've ben round among the charity folks lately
accordin' to your tell, now what would you do if you
had a tidy little sum to dispose on?"
" Help the Freed people." The answer came so quick
that it nearly took the old gentleman's breath away, and
he looked at his niece with his mouth open after an
involuntary, "Sho!" had escaped him. "( David helped
give them their liberty, and I would so gladly help them
to enjoy it! " cried Christie, all the old enthusiasm
blazing up, but with a clearer, steadier flame than in the
days when she dreamed splendid dreams by the kitchen
fire. "Well, no, that wouldn't meet my views. What else
is there?" asked the old man quite unwarmed by her
benevolent ardor. " Wounded soldiers, destitute
children, ill-paid women, young people struggling for
independence, homes, hospitals, schools, churches, and
God's charity all over the world." "That's the pesky part
on't:
there's such a lot to choose from; I don't know much
about any of 'em," began Uncle Enos, looking like a
perplexed raven with a treasure which it cannot decide
where to hide. "Whose fault is that, sir?" The question
hit the old man full in the conscience, and he winced,
remembering how many of Betsey's charitable impulses
he had nipped in the bud, and now all the accumulated
alms she would have been so glad to scatter weighed
upon him heavily. He rubbed his bald head with a
yellow bandana, and moved uneasily in his chair, as if.
he wanted to get up and finish the neglected job that
made his helplessness so burdensome. "I'll ponder on't a
spell, and make up my mind," was all he said, and
never renewed the subject again.
But he had very little time to ponder, and he never did
make up his mind; for a few months after Christie's
long visit ended, Uncle Enos " was took suddin', " and
left all he had to her. Not an immense fortune, but far
larger than she expected, and great was her anxiety to
use wisely this unlooked-for benefaction. She was very
grateful, but she kept nothing for herself, feeling that
David's pension was enough, and preferring the small
sum he earned so dearly to the thousands the old man
had hoarded up for years. A good portion was put by
for Ruth, something for " mother and Letty" that want
might never touch them, and the rest she kept for
David's work, believing that, so spent, the money would
be blest.
Chapter XX
At Forty.
IT'S CLEARLY twenty years since I set out to seek
my fortune. It has been a long search, but I think I have
found it at last. I only asked to be a useful, happy
woman, and my wish is granted:
for, I believe I am useful; I know I am happy." Christie
looked so as she sat alone in the flowery parlor one
September afternoon, thinking over her life with a
grateful, cheerful spirit. Forty to-day, and pausing at
that half-way house between youth and age, she looked
back into the past without bitter regret or unsubmissive
grief, and forward into the future with courageous
patience; for three good angels attended her, and with
faith, hope, and charity to brighten life, no woman need
lament lost youth or fear approaching age. Christie did
not, and though her eyes filled with quiet tears as they
were raised to the faded cap and sheathed sword
hanging on the wall, none fell; and in a moment tender
sorrow changed to still tenderer joy as her glance
wandered to rosy little Ruth playing hospital with her
dollies in the porch. Then they shone with genuine
satisfaction as they went from the letters and papers on
her table to the garden, where several young women
were at work with a healthful color in the cheeks that
had been very pale and thin in the spring. " I think
David is satisfied with me; for I have given all my heart
and strength to his work, and it prospers well," she said
to herself, and then her face grew thoughtful, as she
recalled a late event which seemed to have opened a
new field of labor for her if she chose to enter it. A few
evenings before she had gone to one of the many
meetings of working-women, which had made some stir
of late. Not a first visit, for she was much interested in
the subject and full of sympathy for this class of
workers. There were speeches of course, and of the
most unparliamentary sort, for the meeting was
composed almost entirely of women, each eager to tell
her special grievance or theory. Any one who chose got
up and spoke; and whether wisely or foolishly each
proved how great was the ferment now going on, and
how difficult it was for the two classes to meet and help
one another in spite of the utmost need on one side and
the sincerest good-will on the other. The workers
poured out their wrongs and hardships passionately or
plaintively, demanding or imploring justice, sympathy,
and help; displaying the ignorance, incapacity, and
prejudice, which make their need all the more pitiful,
their relief all the more imperative. The ladies did their
part with kindliness, patience, and often unconscious
condescension, showing in their turn how little they
knew of the real trials of the women whom they longed
to serve, how very narrow a sphere of usefulness they
were fitted for in spite of culture and intelligence, and
how rich they were in generous theories, how poor in
practical methods of relief. One accomplished creature
with learning radiating from every pore, delivered a
charming little essay on the strong-minded women of
antiquity; then, taking labor into the region of art,
painted delightful pictures of the time when all would
work harmoniously together in an Ideal Republic,
where each did the task she liked, and was paid for it in
liberty, equality, and fraternity. Unfortunately she
talked over the heads of her audience, and it was like
telling fairy tales to hungry children to describe Aspasia
discussing Greek politics with Pericles and Plato
reposing upon ivory couches, or Hypatia modestly
delivering philosophical lectures to young men behind a
Tyrian purple curtain; and the Ideal Republic met with
little favor from anxious seamstresses, type-setters, and
shop-girls, who said ungratefully among themselves, "
That's all very pretty, but I don't see how it's going to
better wages among us now." Another eloquent sister
gave them a political oration which fired the
revolutionary blood in their veins, and made them eager
to rush to the State-house en masse, and demand the
ballot before one-half of them were quite clear what it
meant, and the other half were as unfit for it as any
ignorant Patrick bribed with a dollar and a sup of
whiskey. A third well-wisher quenched their ardor like
a wet blanket, by reading reports of sundry labor
reforms in foreign parts; most interesting, but made
entirely futile by differences of climate, needs, and
customs. She closed with a cheerful budget of statistics,
giving the exact number of needle-women who had
starved, gone mad, or committed suicide during the past
year; the enormous profits wrung by capitalists from the
blood and muscles of their employes; and the alarming
increase in the cost of living, which was about to
plunge the nation into debt and famine, if not
destruction generally. When she sat down despair was
visible on many countenances, and immediate
starvation seemed to be waiting at the door to clutch
them as they went out; for the impressible creatures
believed every word and saw no salvation anywhere.
Christie had listened intently to all this; had admired,
regretted, or condemned as each spoke; and felt a
steadily increasing sympathy for all, and a strong desire
to bring the helpers and the helped into truer relations
with each other. The dear ladies were so earnest, so
hopeful, and so unpractically benevolent, that it grieved
her to see so much breath wasted, so much good-will
astray; while the expectant, despondent, or excited
faces of the workwomen touched her heart; for well she
knew how much they needed help, how eager they were
for light, how ready to be led if some one would only
show a possible way. As the statistical extinguisher
retired, beaming with satisfaction at having added her
mite to the good cause, a sudden and uncontrollable
impulse moved Christie to rise in her place and ask
leave to speak. It was readily granted, and a little stir of
interest greeted her; for she was known to many as Mr.
Power's friend, David Sterling's wife, or an army nurse
who had done well.
Whispers circulated quickly, and faces brightened as
they turned toward her; for she had a helpful look, and
her first words pleased them. When the president
invited her to the platform she paused on the lowest
step, saying with an expressive look and gesture:
"I am better here, thank you; for I have been and mean
to be a working-woman all my life." "Hear! hear!" cried
a stout matron in a gay bonnet, and the rest indorsed the
sentiment with a hearty round. Then they were very
still, and then in a clear, steady voice, with the
sympathetic undertone to it that is so magical in its
effect, Christie made her first speech in public since she
left the stage. That early training stood her in good
stead now, giving her self-possession, power of voice,
and ease of gesture; while the purpose at her heart lent
her the sort of simple eloquence that touches,
persuades, and convinces better than logic, flattery, or
oratory. What she said she hardly knew:
words came faster than she could utter them, thoughts
pressed upon her, and all the lessons of her life rose
vividly before her to give weight to her arguments,
value to her counsel, and the force of truth to every
sentence she uttered. She had known so many of the
same trials, troubles, and temptations that she could
speak understandingly of them; and, better still, she had
conquered or outlived so many of them, that she could
not only pity but help others to do as she had done.
Having found in labor her best teacher, comforter, and
friend, she could tell those who listened that, no matter
how hard or humble the task at the beginning, if
faithfully and bravely performed, it would surely prove
a stepping-stone to some thing better, and with each
honest effort they were fitting themselves for the nobler
labor, and larger liberty God meant them to enjoy. The
women felt that this speaker was one of them; for the
same lines were on her face that they saw on their own,
her hands were no fine lady's hands, her dress plainer
than some of theirs, her speech simple enough for all to
understand; cheerful, comforting, and full of practical
suggestion, illustrations out of their own experience,
and a spirit of companionship that uplifted their
despondent hearts. Yet more impressive than any thing
she said was the subtle magnetism of character, for that
has a universal language which all can understand.
They saw and felt that a genuine woman stood down
there among them like a sister, ready with head, heart,
and hand to help them help themselves; not offering
pity as an alms, but justice as a right. Hardship and
sorrow, long effort and late-won reward had been hers
they knew; wifehood, motherhood, and widowhood
brought her very near to them; and behind her was the
background of an earnest life, against which this figure
with health on the cheeks, hope in the eyes, courage on
the lips, and the ardor of a wide benevolence warming
the whole countenance stood out full of unconscious
dignity and beauty; an example to comfort, touch, and
inspire them. It was not a long speech, and in it there
was no learning, no statistics, and no politics; yet it was
the speech of the evening, and when it was over no one
else seemed to have any thing to say. As the meeting
broke up Christie's hand was shaken by many
roughened by the needle, stained with printer's ink, or
hard with humbler toil; many faces smiled gratefully at
her, and many voices thanked her heartily. But sweeter
than any applause were the words of one woman who
grasped her hand, and whispered with wet eyes:
" I knew your blessed husband; he was very good to
me, and I've been thanking the Lord he had such a wife
for his reward! " Christie was thinking of all this as she
sat alone that day, and asking herself if she should go
on; for the ladies had been as grateful as the women;
had begged her to come and speak again, saying they
needed just such a mediator to bridge across the space
that now divided them from those they wished to serve.
She certainly seemed fitted to act as interpreter between
the two classes; for, from the gentleman her father she
had inherited the fine instincts, gracious manners, and
unblemished name of an old and honorable race; from
the farmer's daughter, her mother, came the equally
valuable dower of practical virtues, a sturdy love of
independence, and great respect for the skill and
courage that can win it. Such women were much
needed and are not always easy to find; for even in
democratic America the hand that earns its daily bread
must wear some talent, name, or honor as an ornament,
before it is very cordially shaken by those that wear
white gloves. "Perhaps this is the task my life has been
fitting me for," she said. "A great and noble one which I
should be proud to accept and help accomplish if I can.
Others have finished the emancipation work and done it
splendidly, even at the cost of all this blood and sorrow.
I came too late to do any thing but give my husband and
behold the glorious end. This new task seems to offer
me the chance of being among the pioneers, to do the
hard work, share the persecution, and help lay the
foundation of a new emancipation whose happy success
I may never see. Yet. I had rather be remembered as
those brave beginners are, though many of them missed
the triumph, than as the late comers will be, who only
beat the drums and wave the banners when the victory
is won." Just then the gate creaked on its hinges, a step
sounded in the porch, and little Ruth ran in to say in an
audible whisper:
" It's a lady, mamma, a very pretty lady: can you see
her?" " Yes, dear, ask her in." There was a rustle of
sweeping silks through the narrow hall, a vision of a
very lovely woman in the door-way, and two daintily
gloved hands were extended as an eager voice asked:
"Dearest Christie, don't you remember Bella Carrol?"
Christie did remember, and had her in her arms directly,
utterly regardless of the imminent destruction of a
marvellous hat, or the bad effect of tears on violet
ribbons. Presently they were sitting close together,
talking with April faces, and telling their stories as
women must when they meet after the lapse of years. A
few letters had passed between them, but Bella had
been abroad, and Christie too busy living her life to
have much time to write about it. "Your mother, Bella?
how is she, and where?" "Still with Augustine, and he
you know is melancholy mad: very quiet, very patient,
and very kind to every one but himself. His penances
for the sins of his race would soon kill him if mother
was not there to watch over him. And her penance is
never to leave him." "Dear child, don't tell me any
more; it is too sad. Talk of yourself and Harry. Now
you smile, so am sure all is well with him." "Yes, thank
heaven! Christie, I do believe fate means to spare us as
dear old Dr. Shirley said. I never can be gay again, but I
keep as cheerful and busy as I can, for Harry's sake, and
he does the same for mine. We shall always be together,
and all in all to one another, for we can never marry and
have homes apart you know. We have wandered over
the face of the earth for several years, and now we
mean to settle down and be as happy and as useful as
we can." "' That's brave! I am so glad to hear it, and so
truly thankful it is possible. But tell me, Bella, what
Harry means to do? You spoke in one of your first
letters of his being hard at work studying medicine. Is
that to be his profession?" " Yes; I don't know what
made him choose it, unless it was the hope that he
might spare other families from a curse like ours, or
lighten it if it came. After Helen's death he was a
changed creature; no longer a wild boy, but a man. I
told him what you said to me, and it gave him hope. Dr.
Shirley confirmed it as far as he dared; and Hal
resolved to make the most of his one chance by
interesting himself in some absorbing study, and
leaving no room for fear, no time for dangerous
recollections. I was so glad, and mother so comforted,
for we both feared that sad trouble would destroy him.
He studied hard, got on splendidly, and then went
abroad to finish off. I went with him; for poor August
was past hope, and mamma would not let me help her.
The doctor said it was best for me to be away, and
excellent for Hal to have me with him, to cheer him up,
and keep him steady with a little responsibility. We
have been happy together in spite of our trouble, he in
his profession, and I in him; now he is ready, so we
have come home, and now the hardest part begins for
me." " How, Bella?" "He has his work and loves it:
I have nothing after my duty to him is done. I find I've
lost my taste for the old pleasures and pursuits, and
though I have tried more sober, solid ones, there still
remains much time to hang heavy on my hands, and
such an empty place in my heart, that even Larry's love
cannot fill it. I'm afraid I shall get melancholy, -- that is
the beginning of the end for us, you know." As Bella
spoke the light died out of her eyes, and they grew
despairing with the gloom of a tragic memory. Christie
drew the beautiful, pathetic face down upon her bosom,
longing to comfort, yet feeling very powerless to
lighten Bella's burden. But Christie's little daughter did
it for her. Ruth had been standing near regarding the
"pretty lady," with as much wonder and admiration as if
she thought her a fairy princess, who might vanish
before she got a good look at her. Divining with a
child's quick instinct that the princess was in trouble,
Ruth flew into the porch, caught up her latest and
dearest treasure, and presented it as a sure consolation,
with such sweet good-will, that Bella could not refuse,
although it was only a fuzzy caterpillar in a little box. "I
give it to you because it is my nicest one and just ready
to spin up. Do you like pussy-pillars, and know how
they do it? " asked Ruth, emboldened by the kiss she
got in return for her offering. "' Tell me all about it,
darling," and Bella could not help smiling, as the child
fixed her great eyes upon her, and told her little story
with such earnestness, that she was breathless by the
time she ended. "At first they are only grubs you know,
and stay down in the earth; then they are like this, nice
and downy and humpy, when they walk; and when it's
time they spin up and go to sleep. It's all dark in their
little beds, and they don't know what may happen
to'em; but they are not afraid 'cause God takes care of
'em. So they wait and don't fret, and when it's right for
'em they come out splendid butterflies, all beautiful and
shining like your gown. They are happy then, and fly
away to eat honey, and live in the air, and never be
creeping worms any more." " That's a pretty lesson for
me," said Bella softly, " I accept and thank you for it,
little teacher; I'll try to be a patient 'pussy-pillar' though
it is dark, and I don't know what may happen to me; and
I'll wait hopefully till it's time to float away a happy
butterfly." "Go and get the friend some flowers, the
gayest and sweetest you can find, Pansy," said Christie,
and, as the child ran off, she added to her friend:
"Now we must think of something pleasant for you to
do. It may take a little time, but I know we shall find
your niche if we give our minds to it." "That's one
reason why I came. I heard some friends of mine
talking about you yesterday, and they seemed to think
you were equal to any thing in the way of good works.
Charity is the usual refuge for people like me, so I wish
to try it. I don't mind doing or seeing sad or
disagreeable things, if it only fills up my life and helps
me to forget." "You will help more by giving of your
abundance to those who know how to dispense it
wisely, than by trying to do it yourself, my dear. I never
advise pretty creatures like you to tuck up their silk
gowns and go down into the sloughs with alms for the
poor, who don't like it any better than you do, and so
much pity and money are wasted in sentimental
charity." " Then what shall I do?" " If you choose you
can find plenty of work in your own class; for, if you
will allow me to say it, they need help quite as much as
the paupers, though in a very different way." "Oh, you
mean I'm to be strong-minded, to cry aloud and spare
not, to denounce their iniquities, and demand their
money or their lives?" "Now, Bella, that's personal; for
I made my first speech a night or two ago." "I know
you did, and I wish I'd heard it. I'd make mine to-night
if I could do it half as well as I'm told you did,"
interrupted Bella, clapping her hands with a face full of
approval. But Christie was in earnest, and produced her
new project with all speed.
"I want you to try a little experiment for me, and if it
succeeds you shall have all the glory; I've been waiting
for some one to undertake it, and I fancy you are the
woman. Not every one could attempt it; for it needs
wealth and position, beauty and accomplishments,
much tact, and more than all a heart that has not been
spoilt by the world, but taught through sorrow how to
value and use life well." "Christie, what is it? this
experiment that needs so much, and yet which you
think me capable of trying?" asked Bella, interested and
flattered by this opening. "I want you to set a new
fashion:
you know you can set almost any you choose in your
own circle; for people are very like sheep, and will
follow, their leader if it happens to be one they fancy. I
don't ask you to be a De Stael, and have a brilliant
salon:
I only want you to provide employment and pleasure
for others like yourself, who now are dying of frivolity
or ennui." "I should love to do that if I could. Tell me
how." " Well, dear, I want you to make Harry's home as
beautiful and attractive as you can; to keep all the
elegance and refinement of former times, and to add to
it a new charm by setting the fashion of common sense.
Invite all the old friends, and as many new ones as you
choose; but have it understood that they are to come as
intelligent men and women, not as pleasure-hunting
beaux and belles; give them conversation instead of
gossip; less food for the body and more for the mind;
the healthy stimulus of the nobler pleasures they can
command, instead of the harmfil excitements of present
dissipation. In short, show them the sort of society we
need more of, and might so easily have if those who
possess the means of culture cared for the best sort, and
took pride in acquiring it. Do you understand, Bella?" 6
Yes, but it's a great undertaking, and you could do it
better than I." " Bless you, no! I haven't a single
qualification for it but the will to have it done. I'm
'strong-minded,' a radical, and a reformer. I've done all
sorts of dreadful things to get my living, and I have
neither youth, beauty, talent, or position to back me up;
so I should only be politely ignored if I tried the
experiment myself. I don't want you to break out and
announce your purpose with a flourish; or try to reform
society at large, but I do want you to devote yourself
and your advantages to quietly insinuating a better state
of things into one little circle. The very fact of your
own want, your own weariness, proves how much such
a reform is needed. There are so many fine young
women longing for something to fill up the empty
places that come when the first flush of youth is over,
and the serious side of life appears; so many promising
young men learning to conceal or condemn the high
ideals and the noble purposes they started with, because
they find no welcome for them. You might help both by
simply creating a purer atmosphere for them to breathe,
sunshine to foster instead of frost to nip their good
aspirations, and so, even if you planted no seed, you
might encourage a timid sprout or two that would one
day be a lovely flower or a grand tree all would admire
and enjoy." As Christie ended with the figure suggested
by her favorite work, Bella said after a thoughtful
pause:
" But few of the women I know can talk about any
thing but servants, dress, and gossip. Here and there one
knows something of music, art, or literature; but the
superior ones are not favorites with the larger class of
gentlemen." "Then let the superior women cultivate the
smaller class of men who do admire intelligence as well
as beauty. There are plenty of them, and you had better
introduce a few as samples, though their coats may not
be of the finest broadcloth, nor their fathers 'solid men.'
Women lead in society, and when men find that they
can not only dress with taste, but talk with sense, the
lords of creation will be glad to drop mere twaddle and
converse as with their equals. Bless my heart!" cried
Christie, walking about the room as if she had mounted
her hobby, and was off for a canter, "how people can go
on in such an idiotic fashion passes my understanding.
Why keep up an endless clatter about gowns and
dinners, your neighbors' affairs, and your own aches,
when there is a world full of grand questions to settle,
lovely things to see, wise things to study, and noble
things to imitate. Bella, you must try the experiment,
and be the queen of a better society than any you can
reign over now." " It looks inviting, and I will try it
with you to help me. I know Harry would like it, and I'll
get him to recommend it to his patients. If he is as
successful here as elsewhere they will swallow any
dose he orders; for he knows how to manage people
wonderfully well. He prescribed a silk dress to a
despondent, dowdy patient once, telling her the
electricity of silk was good for her nerves:
she obeyed, and when well dressed felt so much better
that she bestirred herself generally and recovered; but to
this day she sings the praises of Dr. Carrol's electric
cure." Bella was laughing gaily as she spoke, and so
was Christie as she replied:
"That's just what I want you to do with your patients.
Dress up their minds in their best; get them out into the
air; and cure their ills by the magnetism of more active,
earnest lives." They talked over the new plan with
increasing interest; for Christie did not mean that Bella
should be one of the brilliant women who shine for a
little while, and then go out like a firework. And Bella
felt as if she had found something to do in her own
sphere, a sort of charity she was fitted for, and with it a
pleasant sense of power to give it zest. When Letty and
her mother came in, they found a much happier looking
guest than the one Christie had welcomed an hour
before. Scarcely had she introduced them when voices
in the lane made all look up to see old Hepsey and Mrs.
Wilkins approaching. " Two more of my dear friends,
Bella:
a fugitive slave and a laundress. One has saved scores
of her own people, and is my pet heroine. The other has
the bravest, cheeriest soul I know, and is my private
oracle." The words were hardly out of Christie's mouth
when in they came; Hepsey's black face shining with
affection, and Mrs. Wilkins as usual running over with
kind words. " My dear ereeter, the best of wishes and
no end of happy birthdays. There's a triflin' keepsake;
tuck it away, and look at it byme by. Mis' Sterlin', I'm
proper glad to see you lookin' so well. Aunt Letty,
how's that darlin' child? I ain't the pleasure of your
acquaintance, Miss, but I'm pleased to see you. The
children all sent love, likewise Lisha, whose bones is
better sense I tried the camfire and red flannel." Then
they settled down like a flock of birds of various
plumage and power of song, but all amicably disposed,
and ready to peck socially at any topic which might turn
up. Mrs. Wilkins started one by exclaiming as she "laid
off" her bonnet:
" Sakes alive, there's a new picter! Ain't it beautiful?'" "
Colonel Fletcher brought it this morning. A great artist
painted it for him, and he gave it to me in a way that
added much to its value," answered Christie, with both
gratitude and affection in her face; for she was a woman
who could change a lover to a friend, and keep him all
her life. It was a quaint and lovely picture of Mr.
Greatheart, leading the fugitives from the City of
Destruction. A dark wood lay behind; a wide river
rolled before; Mercy and Christiana pressed close to
their faithful guide, who went down the rough and
narrow path bearing a cross-hilted sword in his right
hand, and holding a sleeping baby with the left. The sun
was just rising, and a long ray made a bright path
athwart the river, turned Greatheart's dinted armor to
gold, and shone into the brave and tender face that
seemed to look beyond the sunrise. " There's just a hint
of Davy in it that is very comforting to me," said Mrs.
Sterling, as she laid her old hands softly together, and
looked up with her devout eyes full of love. " Dem
women oughter bin black," murmured Hepsey,
tearfully; for she considered David worthy of a place
with old John Brown and Colonel Shaw. "The child
looks like Pansy, we all think," added Letty, as the little
girl brought her nosegay for Aunty to tie up prettily.
Christie said nothing, because she felt too much; and
Bella was also silent because she knew too little. But
Mrs. Wilkins with her kindly tact changed the subject
before it grew painful, and asked with sudden interest:
"When be you a goin' to hold forth agin, Christie? Jest
let me know beforehand, and I'll wear my old gloves:
I tore my best ones all to rags clappin' of you; it was so
extra good." " I don't deserve any credit for the speech,
because it spoke itself, and I couldn't help it. I had no
thought of such a thing till it came over me all at once,
and I was up before I knew it. I'm truly glad you liked
it, but I shall never make another, unless you think I'd
better. You know I always ask your advice, and what is
more remarkable usually take it," said Christie, glad to
consult her oracle. " Hadn't you better rest a little before
you begin any new task, my daughter? You have done
so much these last years you must be tired," interrupted
Mrs. Sterling, with a look of tender anxiety. "You know
I work for two, mother," answered Christie, with the
clear, sweet expression her face always wore when she
spoke of David. " I am not tired yet:
I hope I never shall be, for without my work I should
fall into despair or ennui. There is so much to be done,
and it is so delightful to help do it, that I never mean to
fold my hands till they are useless. I owe all I can do,
for in labor, and the efforts and experiences that grew
out of it, I have found independence, education,
happiness, and religion." "Then, my dear, you are ready
to help other folks into the same blessed state, and it's
your duty to do it! " cried Mrs. Wilkins, her keen eyes
full of sympathy and commendation as they rested on
Christie's cheerful, earnest face. "Ef the sperrit moves
you to speak, up and do it without no misgivin's. I think
it was a special leadin' that night, and I hope you'll
foller, for it ain't every one that can make folks laugh
and cry with a few plain words that go right to a body's
heart and stop there real comfortable and fillin'. I guess
this is your next job, my dear, and you'd better ketch
hold and give it the right turn; for it's goin' to take time,
and women ain't stood alone for so long they'll need a
sight of boostin'."
There was a general laugh at the close of Mrs. Wilkins's
remarks; but Christie answered seriously:
I accept the task, and will do my share faithfully with
words or work, as shall seem best. We all need much
preparation for the good time that is coming to us, and
can get it best by trying to know and help, love and
educate one another, -- as we do here." With an
impulsive gesture Christie stretched her hands to the
friends about her, and with one accord they laid theirs
on hers, a loving league of sisters, old and young, black
and white, rich and poor, each ready to do her part to
hasten the coming of the happy end.
Me too!" cried little Ruth, and spread her chubby hand
above the rest:
a hopeful omen, seeming to promise that the coming
generation of women will not only receive but deserve
their liberty, by learning that the greatest of God's gifts
to us is the privilege of sharing His great work. " Each
ready to do her part to hasten the coming of the happy
end."
-- End --
End of Work: A Story Of Experience by Louisa May Alcott for Arthur's
Classic Novels